You are on page 1of 351

~~~~~~~~~~~~~

Beneath You
By Cinnamon

Chapter One

I am not yours, not lost in you,


Not lost, although I long to be
Lost as a candle lit at noon,
Lost as a snowflake in the sea.

You love me, and I find you still


A spirit beautiful and bright,
Yet I am I, who long to be
Lost as a light is lost in light.

Oh plunge me deep in love -- put out


My senses, leave me deaf and blind,
Swept by the tempest of your love,
A taper in a rushing wind.

--?I Am Not Yours?, Sarah Teasdale

Beautiful was not a word Harry Potter used often, and it certainly was not a
word he would have used to describe autumn. He didn?t like it. The dead
leaves crackling on the ground when he walked, the trees growing more
exposed with every day, and the thick smell of wet dirt that was heavy on
the cold air all served to make it his least favorite time of year. Only the
beginning of the Quidditch season made it in any way redeemable, and then,
only if he was having a good season, which, of course, he usually was.

Spring was more to his taste, more of a beginning than an ending, where
things came back to life rather than died. He liked the smell of clover in the
air, though he never knew that was what he liked about spring so much. He
just knew he liked it and didn?t spend time deciding why. There wasn?t
enough time in the world to think about the reasons for everything, and
Harry had long ago decided that the smell of clover was something he would
not think about. The smell of fresh clover and the crackle of dead leaves
were all too frivolous to think about.

Instead, as he walked home alone through the darkness, Harry was thinking
about Quidditch. The first match of the season between Gryffindor and
Slytherin was scheduled for the next day, and he was grimly determined not
to let the other house take a lead in house points by winning the match.

The only sound was the grinding leaves under his boots and the wind
blowing through the trees, and Harry, for the first time, considered that
setting out alone for Hogwarts was not the best idea. However, it had been a
Hogsmeade weekend and he, Ron, and Hermione had all gone to the Three
Broomsticks together, drinking butterbeer to ward off the early-October chill
and laughing the way they always seemed to when they were together. There
was Quidditch to think about, however, and Harry had left shortly before
dusk, leaving his friends to return to the castle. He needed to be well rested
to beat Slytherin, after all.

Harry had just noted with relief that he would soon be in sight of the castle,
when a strange noise nearby made him freeze, his eyes widening a tiny bit. It
sounded like some sort of wild animal in pain. Harry had not known Hagrid
for all these years without at least a small degree of the other man?s love for
animals rubbing off on him, so, clutching his wand in case he needed a quick
stunning spell to help him escape, Harry followed the noises off the path and
into the trees.

He stopped abruptly when the exact cause of the noise was revealed in the
silver moonlight.

?What,? he asked in a voice that implied he very much did not really want to
know, ?on earth are you doing to that tree??

Draco Malfoy stiffened at the sound of his voice and slowly pulled his head
out of the hollow in the trunk of the tree and turned around. He insolently
ran his eyes over Harry?s body and then said, carefully enunciating every
syllable, ?I am drunk.?

Harry smirked. ?Which must be why you had mistaken that poor tree for a
person and started molesting it. Though, had you thought the tree was a
Slytherin, I can see how you?d make that mistake. Ugly lot, you Slytherins.?
Malfoy?s eyes, already glazed from too much Firewhiskey, narrowed. ?No,?
he said, voice slightly slurred. ?I am drunk because you are an illusion sent
to torment me in my drunken state.?

Snickering, Harry sneered, ?Damn, Malfoy, you even manage to sound like
a prissy git when you?re sotted.?

Malfoy shook his head, lost his balance, and fell against the tree trunk. He
reached one arm back into the trunk and started rummaging again. ?Piss off,
Potter,? he said in a dismissive tone, turning his back to Harry.

?What are you doing?? Harry asked again.

?Looking for more whiskey,? Malfoy muttered.

?Oh.? Harry briefly considered telling him that he had obviously had enough
whiskey, but the prospect of playing Quidditch in the morning against a
hungover Draco was too good to pass up.

?Don?t you want to know why?? Malfoy called over his shoulder, fumbling
with a bottle that was too tall to pull through the hole. ?Why I?m drunk, I
mean.?

?Not particularly.?

But Malfoy was a chatty drunk. He managed to pull the whiskey bottle out
of the tree and leaned against the trunk. ?Father says I?ve got to stay here for
Christmas.?

Harry rolled his eyes. ?Poor you, Malfoy. Honestly, cry me a river, because I
care. Really, I do.?

?Don?t get your knickers in a knot, Potter, just because you always have to
stay here over the holidays doesn?t mean the rest of us want to.?

?There are worse places to be,? Harry said with a shrug, turning to leave.

?Oh, you can say that,? Malfoy called woefully. ?You indeed can say that,
Potter. But you don?t have to share a dorm with Crabbe. And your
roommate doesn?t insist upon shagging Pansy practically every night,
forgetting that you?re in the bed across the way.? He took a long swallow of
whiskey.

Harry had turned back around, inspecting Malfoy critically, and with more
than a little amusement. ?Malfoy, honestly, spare me the details? I didn?t
expect you to have it in you to be this pathetic. Getting drunk in the forest
while your thug shags Pansy in your room? Nasty.?

?This is my secret stash,? Malfoy said with a nod, indicating the hole in the
tree. ?No one knows its here.?

Harry rolled his eyes. ?I do.?

Malfoy considered this for a moment, swaggering closer with a thoughtful


smirk. ?I suppose it?s not so secret anymore then. Now it?ll have to be a
place I keep things I want you to find, and there certainly aren?t many of
those.? He drank more whiskey thoughtfully. ?I?ll have to find a new
stashing place, you?ll steal this one, I?m sure.?

Draco was close enough now for Harry to smell the whiskey on his breath
and spilled on his clothing, and he wrinkled his nose, stepping away. ?I
don?t drink whiskey, Malfoy, so your stash is safe from me.?

?Ah, yes,? Malfoy said in a voice heavy with woeful amusement. ?The
Paragon Of Goodness and Perfection would hardly lower himself to drink
whiskey like us mere mortals. But then, a Gryffindor and a Muggle lover
would never appreciate whiskey of so fine a caliber as this, so your
ignorance is forgivable.? The entire speech was made all the more ridiculous
in that it was slurred and made Malfoy sound years younger, like a child.

?Bugger off, Malfoy,? Harry snapped, having grown tired even of watching
Malfoy humiliate himself in his drunken state. He turned to leave again, and
Malfoy grabbed his arm.

?You think you?re better than us,? he hissed. ?You and your little friends.
Heroes and champions of the school.?

?We think we?re better than you? C?mon, you?re a Malfoy, who could
possibly think they?re better than you?? Harry said sarcastically.
?You, apparently, and wrongly so,? Draco snorted. ?You?re not, you know.
You?re just like everyone else.?

Harry glanced over his shoulder and said coldly, ?I am just like everybody
else, Malfoy, and even then, I?m a good ways better than you.? He shoved
him hard, easily knocking Malfoy to the ground, and walked away without
glancing back. Malfoy cursed at him and shouted as many insults as he
could remember, but Harry walking away lost precedence to the whiskey he
had spilled when he fell.

Malfoy eventually made it back to the castle and collapsed onto his bed to
sleep off the whiskey, but Harry didn?t care one way or the other, and spent
an hour before bed going over various Quidditch maneuvers he had taught
the team during practices over the last month and hoped to try out against
Slytherin the next day. Then, he opened the notebook he, Ron, and
Hermione wrote in together, and scribbled a few lines about seeing Malfoy
drunk in the woods. He was sure Ron would find it amusing.

The notebook had been Hermione?s idea. They would take it with them to
class, writing in it whenever they felt like it, messages to each other or
thoughts they had had, sometimes nothing more than doodles made out of
boredom. It was a way to keep in touch even when seventh year classes
threatened to overwhelm them. After writing in it for a while, they would
trade off who got to take it to class, and that person would comment on what
the last person had written and then write something if the mood stuck. By
now, the book was half full of jokes, comments on various classes and
teachers, complaints on homework, and even some more serious things, like
thoughtful predictions on what Voldemort?s next move might be and
discussions on Sirius?s whereabouts, all protected with code words and
such, of course.

Harry finished writing and set his quill aside, climbing into bed. Ron had
just snuck into the dormitory when he finally drifted off to sleep.

***

Waking up early and on the Quidditch pitch before dawn, Harry spent the
early morning hours lazily circling the pitch, getting a feel for the weather
conditions, the wind, and the visibility, planning how he?d have to adjust the
game plans for those contingencies. It was a crisp, cold October day with a
haze of gray clouds just thick enough to block the sun and not dark enough
to warn of rain; perfect Quidditch conditions. He entered the Great Hall for
breakfast eager to get on with the match, sure that it would be a Gryffindor
victory.

?Big game today, right, Harry? You?re going to slaughter Slytherin!? Ron
called happily when Harry entered the Hall.

Davis Connelly, the fifth year who played Keeper, overheard and grinned.
?Of course we are, mate,? he said easily, his broad face lit up with
excitement. ?Don?t we always??

?With Harry as our Seeker,? Seamus, a Chaser, boasted, ?we can never
lose!?

The other Gryffindors cheered, and the Slytherin table all turned to look and
scowl at them.

?Good luck, Gryffindor,? a few of the Ravenclaws called, and Harry smiled
to himself. It was just a normal game, after all. And Quidditch was always
something to smile about, especially when it meant slaughtering Slytherin
the way they always did.

***

The whole student body had gathered to watch the game, and Harry took his
place above the other players, calling a few words of encouragement to his
teammates. He had been made captain after Angelina had graduated.

The game started, and Harry?s eyes scanned the field, watching the
progression of the Quaffle almost absently as he searched for the Snitch. He
cast a few amused glances at Malfoy, who looked more like he was about to
keel over and fall from his broom than offer any competition in catching the
Snitch, but he knew better than to underestimate Malfoy. After all, it would
be a very Slytherinish thing to do, to appear hungover to lull him into a false
sense of security and then trounce him by easily catching the Snitch.

A Bludger nearly knocked Malfoy from his broom, and Harry laughed.
Scowling, Malfoy glared at him, before a glitter of gold caught his eye a
short ways above. Harry saw it at the same time, and they both soared
upwards together, Malfoy with grim determination not to fall of his broom
and to humiliate Harry by beating him when he could barely keep his
breakfast down, and Harry with vague amusement at the wretched look in
Malfoy?s eyes.

The Snitch darted away, and Harry cursed softly. Gryffindor and Slytherin
were tied for points now, and he circled the pitch restlessly. He was about to
go up a little higher to get a better view, when Malfoy suddenly dove
straight down and Harry instinctively followed. His broom was faster and
his technique more polished, especially since Malfoy was wobbling a little,
his hands too shaky to keep the broom straight, and Harry easily caught up
with him. He was flying nearly straight down, too close to Malfoy to pull
away without risking getting the ends of their brooms tangled, but he didn?t
care. His eyes were still restlessly scanning the ground below for the Snitch.

They were nearly to the ground when Harry realized what Malfoy had done,
pretending to see the Snitch to throw Harry off, and he cursed at himself for
not realizing it before. Malfoy heard the curse and laughed softly.

There were only seconds left before they?d hit the ground, and Harry moved
to turn out of the dive. He was too close, however, and Malfoy hadn?t
turned. Harry knocked into him, sending him off balance, and Malfoy,
whose balance was already shaky at best, slipped sideways, yelping a little
and holding fast to his broom. The ends of their brooms had gotten tangled,
and Harry tried desperately to pull away, but it was too late, and, only
seconds since beginning the dive, both of them slammed into the ground
with a cracking of bones and broomsticks, and blackness swallowed Harry
just as the agony of his broken bones tore into his mind and made him
scream.

Beside him, just as broken and bloody, Malfoy muttered, ?Weak, Potter,?
before losing consciousness as well.

***

Draco was haunted by dreams where dark shadows like cobwebs kept
brushing over his face, no matter how hard he struggled to push them away,
cool and leathery like bat wings. He woke up clawing at his face, and it took
him a few seconds to realize that it wasn?t real. And then his aching body
reminded him of what had happened and where he was, and he moaned a
little, grimacing.
Pomfrey had mended all his broken bones and fixed up his cuts and bruises,
but his nerves still ached from the beating he had sustained. There was
nothing Pomfrey could do to cure startled nerves, and his had been very
startled at the sudden impact with the ground.

Pushing himself into a sitting position gradually, Draco pushed his hair out
of his eyes, wincing at how limp and dirty it felt, and was about to call out
for Pomfrey to demand to be allowed back to his common room, when a
voice nearby startled him. It was Potter, who was still unconscious, and
talking in his sleep.

?Don?t touch me,? he mumbled, turning restlessly on his side. Draco


smirked, watching him.

?Don?t tell me the Boy-Who-Lived has nightmares,? he whispered to


himself. His smirk widened. ?Now what does Potter the Paragon of
Perfection have to be afraid of? Voldemort? My father?? He scoffed, ?You
should be scared, Potter.?

Potter?s lips were compressed into a tiny line, and his face extremely pale
now. He was tossing and turning even more restlessly, his hands clenching
and unclenching into fists. ?Don?t,? he whimpered. ?Ginny, don?t touch
me.?

Draco nearly choked on his own saliva. A startled burst of laughter erupted
from his throat, echoing loudly in the empty room and nearly waking Potter.
Though he did not wake up, the noise had served to startle him out of the
nightmare, and he drifted into easy sleep again, sighing and relaxing his
fists. Draco even loathed indirectly helping Potter escape from his
nightmare.

Before Draco could quite come to grips with the idea that, rather than being
haunted by images of his own death at the hands of Voldemort, Potter had
nightmares of being touched by Ginny Weasley, the door opened and a
sliver of light lit up the dim room. Granger was peering into the room.

?Harry?? she called nervously. ?Are you awake, Harry?? She pushed the
door open a little bit farther. When she saw Draco watching her, she
squeaked a little and looked as though she were going to turn and run.
?Books, Granger?? Draco drawled, rolling his eyes at the pile of books she
was carrying. ?You?re bringing him books??

She glanced nervously at the book she held and then back up at him. ?Yes.
It?s his homework,? she said.

?By all means, come in and leave them then. Very important, homework is,
especially for unconscious people. Gives them something to pass the time
with, you know??

She scowled. ?I?m not afraid of you.?

Draco smiled slowly. ?Of course not,? he sneered.

She nodded, though she didn?t look certain if he was just being sarcastic.
?I?ll just leave the books, then. When he wakes up, will you tell him??

?No.?

?You don?t even know what I wanted you to tell him!?

?I?m not going to tell him anything. Why would I tell him anything? I hate
him, remember? So just leave the books and go, you?re making me ache
even more than I did before you got in here, and I assure you, it?s not the
good kind of ache. It?s kind of like a throbbing sort of burst blood vessel,
right behind the eyes. Not pleasant.?

?Are you always this nasty when you first wake up?? she snapped, slamming
the books down on the table beside Potter?s bed.

?I?m not being nasty, Granger,? he replied absently. ?I?m being honest.
Now do hurry up.?

She scowled at him and then turned away, reaching into her robes and
pulling a small, leather bound notebook out of her pocket. She glanced
nervously at him and then slipped it on top of the pile of homework she?d
brought, before hurrying out of the room.

It wasn?t even a full minute after the door had closed before Draco was
gingerly getting out of bed and making his way over to the table, curiosity
making it easy to forget his protesting nerves. He snatched the small book
off the table and brought it over to the window where the light was better,
inspecting the worn cover carefully.

?A journal?? he whispered to himself, impressed not that Potter would keep


a journal, because that was a rather girlish hobby, really, but impressed that
he, the son of Voldemort?s second-in-command would be so lucky as to find
it and be given a glimpse into the inner workings of Potter?s mind. ?How
sweet, Potter, Granger brought you your journal.?

?What?? Potter asked groggily from the other bed, having just woken up. He
squinted at Draco, looking extremely bad tempered. Draco quickly slipped
the journal into his trousers and smiled, his most charming, Slytherinish
smile, even as he frantically thought Potter?s journal is in my trousers.
Potter?s journal is IN my trousers. Oh, shit. What am I doing?

?Nothing.?

Potter glanced around, still squinting, and fumbling for his glasses. ?What
happened?? His voice sounded thick and deeper than usual.

?Quidditch accident,? Draco replied in a chipper tone.

Potter slipped his glasses on, his eyes narrowed now for a different reason.
?Oh yeah. You were hungover and nearly killed me,? he accused.

?Now, Potter, if you weren?t so clumsy at pulling out of a Feint, we


wouldn?t have gotten tangled up,? Draco scolded. ?If Pomfrey ever shows
up, tell her I?m better and left.?

?I?m not giving anyone your messages!? Potter snapped.

For a moment, Draco was strangely disconcerted. He smirked. ?You and I


are more alike than you thought, Potter, because that?s just what I said to
Granger.? He slipped out of the room before Potter could protest that the
accident had been his fault or before he could ask exactly what Hermione
had wanted Draco to tell him.

Draco snickered all the way back to his common room.

***
It was halfway through Double Potions with the Slytherins the next day and
Harry was watching Snape rather absently as the professor did a
demonstration of a very complex potion Harry hadn?t bothered to listen to
the explanation for. Hermione would undoubtedly lend him her notes if he
decided to study for this class anyway.

Snape had just added the last ingredient to the potion, leading to a rather
anticlimactic soft popping sound, when Hermione leaned over and poked his
shoulder. ?Where?s the book?? she hissed.

Harry blinked. ?What??

?The book!? she repeated. ?There?s something I want to write in it.?

?I don?t have it, I haven?t seen it since Saturday,? he whispered back.

?I left it for you in the hospital wing.?

?It wasn?t there. Are you sure??

?Is there a problem?? Snape interrupted, arching one dark brow. His eyes
were fixed on Harry?s face, and Harry fought the urge to squirm like a
nervous first year. ?Mister Potter??

?No, sir,? Harry replied, licking his lips nervously.

?Alright then, Mister Potter, allow me to make a small wager. Since you
seem to be so anxious to leave my classroom to talk with your friends, I?ll
dismiss class early today on the condition that you prove you were listening
to me by telling me exactly what the properties of Gobbler?s Ink are.? He
smiled in a predatory fashion, and waited for Harry to answer. All of the
Gryffindors turned to stare at him beseechingly, the chance to escape the
dungeon an hour early something they had all been yearning for, and the
Slytherins scowled at the knowledge that their freedom rested in the clumsy
hands of a Gryffindor.

Harry swallowed hard, and said, ?I?m sorry, sir, I don?t know.?

With a triumphant and sour smirk, Snape said silkily, ?I didn?t think so,
Mister Potter. Ten points from Gryffindor for interrupting my class and not
paying attention. Now then. The preparation of Gobbler?s Ink, as I have
shown you, is an exacting process.? Snape went on to list the attributes of
different concentrations of the ink, and Harry leaned back in his chair,
preparing to slip back into his stance of ?I?m listening, Professor?Really, I
Am? that he had perfected after six full years of Professor Snape?s long and
boring Potions class. Before he could settle into the stance, however,
Malfoy?s eyes met his across the room, and he smirked in some strange,
knowing sort of way that made Harry incredibly nervous.

Before he could scowl in return, Hermione, who had waited until Snape
turned away, leaned over and whispered, ?Sorry,? her face looking
incredibly pale the way it only did during final exams or Snape?s Potions
class.

Harry shrugged easily and by the time he?d turned back, Malfoy had turned
away, almost as if nothing had happened.

Unnerved, Harry settled back into his chair and assumed his pretend-
listening expression, all the while wondering what Malfoy could possibly
know about him that would inspire that smirk. The possibilities left him
cold.

***

At Hermione?s insistence, Harry had searched his dorm for the notebook but
it wasn?t there. Together, the three of them searched the common room and
checked with Madam Pomfrey, but she hadn?t seen it, and then, at a loss,
they had finally gone to the library, sitting at a table in the back.

?We can?t just let it be lost,? Hermione hissed, looking pinched and irritated.
?If any of the professors found that and looked at the drawings Ron did of
them and thought I did it, I?d be in so much trouble! The notebook does
have my name on the cover, you remember.?

?Come on, Hermione,? Ron scoffed. ?They know you?re not creative
enough to draw like that. Besides, they?re great pictures.?

?Yeah, if Snape really had a broomstick shoved up his arse and Dumbledore
really had birds flying out of his ears,? Harry snickered.

Ron looked injured, though his eyes glittered with amusement. ?You
laughed just as hard as I did at those, Harry. And besides, Hermione, if you
hadn?t insisted we keep that book and write to each other in it, none of this
would have happened.?

?If you hadn?t insisted on only writing about how much you hate each one
of our professors, it wouldn?t have been a problem!? she cried.

?That?s not all I wrote about,? Ron argued. ?I also wrote about what a git
Malfoy is.?

?Malfoy!? Hermione?s eyes widened. ?He may have it! Harry, do you think
he has it? Oh, please don?t let him have it, if he reads that, he can? he can
use all of that stuff I said about McGonagall on that day I was annoyed at
her for taking five marks off my assignment against me! He can blackmail
me! Oh, Harry, you?ve got to get it back!? Her eyes were shining with tears,
and Harry grimaced. The idea of Malfoy having that book was nasty enough
without Hermione getting all weepy about it.

?How am I supposed to get it back?? Harry asked.

?Just ask him if he has it,? she begged.

?You know what an arse he is, Hermione, he?ll hardly just give it back!?

?You can always threaten to beat his head in if he doesn?t,? Ron suggested
brightly. ?Oooh, and let me help.?

***

Harry waited until the evening, when he knew the Slytherin team would be
practicing. Then, wearing his crimson and gold scarf to ward off the autumn
chill, he left the castle and made his way to the pitch, climbing up to the
stands to sit and wait for the practice to be over so he could ask Malfoy
about the book. He didn?t expect a straight answer, just as he didn?t expect
to escape this without a thousand insults against his mother, father,
parentage in general, intelligence, and worthiness as a human being.
However, he was feeling confrontational himself and looked forward to
unleashing that on Malfoy, who was always good for that sort of thing.

It wasn?t long before the Slytherin team noticed him sitting there and Zabini,
the captain, flew over to hover near, scowling. ?What are you doing here,
Potter?? he snarled. ?Spying on our team??
Harry laughed. ?If I was going to spy on you, I?d do it from my tower where
it?s warmer, and I certainly wouldn?t do it on your team. I?d choose a team I
could learn something from.?

Zambini growled some sort of insult that Harry didn?t catch. ?What do you
want then?? He asked finally.

?To talk to Malfoy, actually. Whenever you guys are done.?

Zambini looked startled, and then he smirked. After all, it was unseemly for
one team captain to beat up another, especially when one of those captains
was a lanky, awkward, speccy git like Potter. It was quite another story to
allow one seeker to beat up another. It was almost expected. ?Practice is
finished now anyway,? he said, his eyes guarded, a tight smirk on his lips.
?I?ll tell Malfoy you?re waiting.?

Malfoy laughed when Zambini gave him the message, but Harry didn?t care.
He had climbed down from the stands and was waiting on the ground when
Malfoy, who took his time, finally landed and sauntered over.

?What?? he asked, mild curiosity the only emotion in his tone, though
amusement glittered in his eyes.

?You took it, didn?t you? Our book.?

Malfoy looked thoughtful for a moment, as if considering whether or not to


confess or not. Finally, he smirked. ?It was quite a disappointing read.?

?I want it back.?

?You?ll have to find it.?

?Give it to me.?

?Nothing is ever that easy, Potter.?

Harry smiled grimly. ?Give it back, Malfoy, because your entire team left
you and we?re the only ones out here and if I were to attack you this time,
you wouldn?t have your precious Slytherins to protect you.?
?Ouch, Potter, I?m very nearly scared,? Malfoy snickered. ?You?ll have to
find it. I want you to find it.?

?Malfoy??

But Malfoy, laughing as if he knew some great inner joke that Harry was too
thick to catch on to, hopped back on his broomstick and took off into the
sky, flying back towards the castle. Soon Harry was alone on the pitch as the
sun started to set.

?Bloody prat,? he mumbled to himself. ?He wants me to find it? How am I


supposed to do that if he doesn?t tell me where it is??

***

It shouldn?t have taken him as long as it did to figure out where Malfoy had
put the book, but he wasn?t used to having to decipher riddles from Malfoy.
Usually all he needed to figure out after a discussion with the Slytherin was
whether or not his mother, father, intelligence, looks, or friends had been
insulted, or rather to what degree, as the insults were almost a certainty. He
managed to figure things out shortly after he had finished his homework and
gone to bed.

Malfoy had basically told him where to find it, after all, though he had been
drunk at the time and Harry hadn?t been sure he would be able to remember
it in the morning.

Unwilling to listen to Hermione over breakfast the next morning, worriedly


predicting the consequences, should any of the professors find the notebook,
Harry snuck out of bed, grabbed his invisibility cloak, and hurried from the
room.

It was only a quick jog to the hollow tree, and Harry smiled grimly as he
peered into the hole. The notebook was there, and he pulled it out, turning to
hurry back to bed. The wind was cold and he didn?t want to be out any
longer than necessary.

Something made him pause, however. There was something else in the
hollow and Harry grabbed his wand. ?Lumos,? he whispered, squinting into
the dark crevice as his wand began to glow. Malfoy had removed his stash of
whiskey as he had promised, but now there was a quill and some ink lying in
the hollow.

?A quill?? Harry whispered out loud. ?Like he?s expecting a reply??

Eyes widening a tiny bit, he flipped to the last page that had been written on,
scanning it quickly in the light of his wand.

Hermione had scribbled a message there and it read, ?Harry! I can?t believe
you?d do something so reckless that once again put you in the hospital
wing! But then, everyone knows you?d give your life if it meant winning a
Quidditch game. I missed you in Charms today, and picked up your
homework. Ron?s being annoying; I think he misses you too, though he
won?t say it. Get well soon! He?s never this insufferable when you?re
around!?

In the margin, Ron had scribbled, ?Insufferable?? Shut up, Hermione! But I
do wish you were here, Harry. It?s boring without you.?

Harry easily recognized Hermione?s careful writing and Ron?s scrawl. The
elegant writing below that made him scowl, however. Malfoy had written in
the book.

?Cute, Potter. Here I was, expecting a deep, thoughtful look into the inner
workings of The Mind of the Boy Who Lived, and instead, I got a mess of
doodles and class notes Granger was too frightened to actually pass in
class. Lovely. It almost makes me wish I were worthy enough to belong to
this exclusive little club of yours. Then again?No, it really doesn?t. You
realize that if I ever respected you before, even as a worthy enemy, this has
totally destroyed that, don?t you??

Harry flipped through the entire book, and on nearly every page, in the same
elegant writing, there was a sarcastic comment about the entry or the
drawing. On the page where Hermione had gone on about what she thought
the Death Eaters were planning (which included various unlikely plots such
as taking over the word through subliminal messages disseminated through
owl post), he had written, ?I sincerely hope you are not the brains in this
group, Granger.? On the page where Ron had drawn an elaborate picture of
Malfoy kissing Snape?s ass, he had written, ?You wish, Weasley. Kindly
refrain from involving me in anymore of your sexual fantasies, because if my
real self finds it this nauseating, I bet the me you dreamed up found it even
more distasteful.?

There was a large part of the journal that talked about Sirius, and Harry
scanned it worriedly, suddenly sick that Malfoy now knew information that
could possibly get Sirius caught again, or get him and Dumbledore in
trouble. However, there were no comments there, and Harry could only hope
that Malfoy had skipped these pages. With a shaking hand, he tore out the
pages and crumpled them in his fist.

All the way through, on every page. At first, Harry felt violated. That git had
gotten to read all of their private thoughts, had sullied them with his
Slytherin ink and his sarcastic comments. Had somehow managed to worm
his way into the one thing that had belonged to the three of them solely, that
no one else was supposed to even know about.

He slammed the book shut, his fingers tracing the front cover where
Hermione had carefully etched her name. Malfoy had removed the letters
and instead, written his own, in a final show of ownership, as if he had
conquered it, claimed it, made it his. And Harry was furious. He grabbed the
quill and ink from the hollow and sat on the roots of the tree, leaning back
against the trunk. Intending to write something scathing, he flipped to the
last page again and lifted the quill to his lip, narrowing his eyes as he tried to
decide where to begin.

He dipped the quill into the ink and then, in the light given off by his
glowing wand, he brought the quill to the page.

And then, Harry couldn?t refrain a smile. After all, if he forgot, for a
moment, that it was Malfoy who had made the comments, they were quite
funny, and very true as well. Most of the stuff in the book was pointless,
stupid, and boring. Who wouldn?t have mocked it?

Not knowing what he was going to say, Harry was faintly surprised as he
replied to the Slytherin?s last note. ?You?re just annoyed that Ron?s
drawings of you made you look a thousand times worse than you look in real
life.? He frowned. Implying that Malfoy was anything less than the lopsided
hunchback he appeared to be in Ron?s drawings was hardly a good place to
start. Still, he continued. ?How do you know the inner workings of my mind
aren?t just a collection of childish doodles and notes anyway? Don?t mock
what you don?t understand. But then, you?ve always been good for that,
haven?t you? ?

He chewed on the quill absently, rereading what Malfoy had written and
then his own reply. The tip of the quill had just been sharpened, and it
slashed his lower lip. He yelped at the sting, sucking his lip into his mouth
as he examined the nib, rubbing his index finger carefully against it. The
sharp edge easily cut deep into his fingertip and blood welled out of the cut,
dribbling down his finger and dripping all over his lap. He dropped the quill,
hissing at the stinging pain in his finger, and it landed on the blood-
splattered ground beside the pot of ink, which had been hit by a few falling
drops as well. Grabbing his wand and muttering a First Level Healing spell,
he easily healed the cut, scowling. He hadn?t gotten any blood on the
journal, which was lucky, but his hands were stained with it.

Picking up the journal, quill, and ink, he put all three back in the hollow and,
absently wondering what he was doing and why, he returned to the castle.

At first, he considered waking Ron up and telling him about the hollow and
the journal, but it was quite late, and he decided he could just as easily tell
him in the morning.

Still wondering why he hadn?t just taken the journal from the hollow and
returned it to Hermione in the morning, Harry finally drifted off into a heavy
sleep.

***

Harry had every intention of telling Hermione what had happened to the
book the next morning, but instead, he overslept, had to skip breakfast, and
barely made it to Potions in time. Bursting into the classroom, panting and
flushed, he had just slid into his seat when Professor Snape arrived.

?You were nearly late,? Hermione pointed out, but Harry didn?t hear. He
was too busy scowling at Malfoy, who had turned around to smirk at him.

?Why does he keep doing that?? Ron whispered, irritated.

?What?? Harry shot him a startled glance.

?Malfoy. He keeps looking at you, all superior-like.?


?He?s always done that,? Harry replied, feeling strangely flustered.

?Not like that,? Ron argued, still whispering, while Snape got the supplies
out to finish yesterday?s Gobbler?s Ink. ?It?s like he?s set some giant trap
and is only waiting for you to step into it. I?d be careful if I were you, Harry.
Honestly.?

Harry rolled his eyes and waved off Ron?s concern, feeling rather guilty
over the incident with the book now, and deciding not to tell Ron and
Hermione what he had done. Instead, he?d go down to the hollow as soon as
he had a free moment, and retrieve the book, use magic to erase Malfoy?s
writing, and it would be like the entire thing had never happened.

As they left potions, Hermione grabbed Harry?s arm. ?Harry,? she said.
?Did you find the book??

?Uhh, no,? Harry replied, not meeting her eyes. He was suddenly aware of
someone watching him and glanced up. Over Hermione?s shoulder, he could
see Malfoy watching him, a strange look in his eyes. Just to unnerve the
Slytherin, Harry grinned. The other boy actually stumbled a bit, his eyes
widening a fraction, and then he scowled darkly and turned the corner.

?What are you smiling at?? Hermione snapped, turning around to glare at
the backs of the departing students. ?This isn?t something to laugh at, Harry.
It?s worse than I thought it was, honestly, don?t you remember? We talked
about Snuffles in that book! What if someone??

?They won?t,? Harry said firmly. ?Trust me. Nothing will happen to S?to
Snuffles. I promise you that.?

She didn?t look sure, and Ron, who?d been delayed in the classroom being
lectured by Snape and losing god knows how many house points, hurried
into the hall, scowling. ?C?mon, Harry, Divination next,? he panted, jerking
his head. ?And you know that means if we don?t hurry, we?ll be late, and
Trelawney?ll spend the first half of the class telling you that you?re going to
be attacked by a thousand garden gnomes who?ll delight in tearing you apart
with their teeth or something.?

He hurried away and, with a reassuring smile for Hermione, Harry said,
?Trust me, it?ll be fine, Hermione. I?ll take care of it.? Then he took off after
Ron, leaving Hermione, looking disgruntled and irritated, to go to
Arithmancy by herself.

***

Harry had an hour after his last class and before Quidditch practice, and he
used this to run down to the hollow, intent on grabbing the book, erasing the
evidence, and giving it back to Hermione at dinner. However, the words
scrawled in green ink at the back made him freeze.

?You ripped out the stuff about Sirius, Potter, how disappointing. That was
the best part of this entire book.?

Malfoy had read the parts about Sirius. Nervousness made his hands tremble
as Harry scribbled back a reply. ?If you tell anyone, Malfoy, I?ll kill you. I
swear, I?ll kill you. Swear you won?t tell, give me your word, or I swear??

He dropped the book back in the hollow and grimly went to the Quidditch
pitch for practice.

A nervous ball of energy had coiled in his stomach, almost like a snake, that
kept him jumpy for the rest of the day as he waited for Aurors and
Dementors to descend upon the castle and drag him and Dumbledore off to
Azkaban in punishment for helping Sirius escape. They?d be tortured until
he told where Sirius was currently hiding; he knew they would, and he was
worried that he?d crack and tell them.

But dinner came and went and the sun set, and still, nothing happened.

Harry snuck out alone, telling Hermione and Ron that he needed to go find
Professor Flitwick and ask for help on his homework, just before bedtime. It
was a feeble excuse, especially considering that Hermione could have helped
just as well as Flitwick, but the nervous tick Harry had developed in his left
eye convinced Ron and Hermione to let it go and let him leave
unquestioned.

He hurried out of the castle and straight to the hollow. His hands were
shaking so badly that he could hardly hold the book and his glowing wand at
the same time.
Malfoy?s reply was messier than normal, and short. He had obviously been
in a hurry, and the idea of him sneaking about and running to the hollow to
read his own replies made Harry dizzy and strangely pleased at the same
time.

?My word, Potter? What good would my word be? Surely you wouldn?t trust
my word.?

He picked up the quill and scribbled, ?Not your word, but the word of a
Malfoy. Surely you have some family code about keeping your word.
Promise me.?

Still nervous, but feeling a bit better at the knowledge that Malfoy hadn?t
told yet, Harry returned to his dorm, finished his homework, and went to
sleep.

***

Promise me. For a long while, under the light of the golden moon, Draco
stared at the strange words, twirling the quill between his fingers. A promise
to Harry Potter? He didn?t owe Potter a thing, let alone something as
personal as a promise.

But the chance to have something to give, if only for the satisfaction of
having something to take away later, made it worth it, and Draco smiled a
little, and replied.

?Calm down, Potter, before you give yourself a nosebleed. We do have a


family code about keeping our word, yes, but only if it serves us to keep it.
But I?ll give you my word. Besides, it?s hardly as if I care about the life and
times of some fugitive from Azkaban. You keeping his secrets, however, that
intrigues me. He did, after all, kill your parents. But I confess to not caring
overly much. Contrary to what you may think, the entire world doesn?t sit
on the edge of their seats waiting in suspense to learn about the sordid little
criminal secrets of Harry Potter, Boy-Who-Lived. There are other things to
think about, you know.?

He waited a few seconds for the ink to dry and then closed the book,
slipping it carefully back into the hollow and lying the quill and ink on top.
He checked his watch, made sure enough time had gone by for Pansy and
Crabbe to be done with their nearly nightly ritual of shagging rather loudly,
and started back to the castle.

His dorm room was quiet; Pansy must have snuck back to her own room by
now, and Draco got ready for bed, leaving his robes in a messy pile at the
foot of his bed. That was one of his secrets, actually. The fact that he hardly
gave a damn about things being neat and orderly and perfect. There were
more important things to think about. Which was why his father, always
concerned with public appearance, had enchanted all his robes to fold
themselves in the middle of the night and stack themselves neatly in his
chest of dirty laundry.

Silently, with a soft whisper of fabric, his robes started doing just that, but
Draco didn?t notice. He?d already fallen asleep.

***

They were finishing up Gobbler?s Ink in Potions class the next day and
Draco was sitting in the second row beside Blaise, who was snickering under
his breath as he drew lurid, naked pictures of Lavender Brown on his
parchment.

Professor Snape was just finishing up the ink he?d been brewing for the last
few days and Draco watched with rather detached interest. He already knew
most of the seventh year potions as he had excelled at Potions all through
school and had been bored over the summer, studying them on his own. It
had been more interesting than following the house elves around the manor
looking for spots they had missed while scrubbing the floors, at any rate.

Draco only started paying complete attention near the end of the class, when
Snape snapped, ?Mister Potter. Not paying attention again? But then,
obviously, as you demonstrated a few days ago, your knowledge of
Gobbler?s Ink is extensive.? Draco smirked, turning around to watch
Harry?s face slowly turn red.

?I?m sorry, professor,? Harry said, casting a sullen glare at Draco. ?I


dropped my quill.?

Snape was smiling grimly. ?But you were paying attention??


?Yes, sir.?

?Then perhaps you wouldn?t mind telling the class what the first property of
Gobbler?s Ink is?? Snape asked coolly. Draco glanced back at Harry and
smirked again.

?Uhh? I don?t recall, sir,? Harry mumbled.

?Please, sir, I know it!? Hermione cried, putting her hand up. ?The first
property of Gobbler?s??

?Do shut up, Miss Granger,? Snape barked, turning away. Draco put up his
own hand. ?Yes, Mister Malfoy? Perhaps you can enlighten us??

?The first property of Gobbler?s Ink is that, when made with the blood of an
enemy, it works like the Imperius Curse. It makes the writer follow the
orders of his enemy whose blood is in the ink, and the more you it is used,
the stronger and more powerful the effects,? Draco quoted smoothly.

Snape smiled. ?Very good, Draco. Ten points from Gryffindor for disrupting
me once again, and twenty to Slytherin for showing Gryffindor how they
ought to act in my classroom.?

Draco felt both Potter and Granger?s eyes glaring into the back of his head,
but didn?t turn around. He was smiling widely, however, and feeling rather
smug, both of which lasted until Potions ended and he walked out of the
dungeons. Crabbe, who had decided that morning that he was too sick to go
to class, was waiting in the hall, and his face was pale, his eyes bloodshot
and red with tears.

?Oh, bloody hell,? Draco muttered. ?What is it??

?Pansy!? Crabbe cried. ?She broke up with me.?

Elation at the possibility of not having to wait for Crabbe and Pansy to finish
shagging before he could go to bed filled him, but he restrained a sunny
smile. Crabbe was, after all, a friend of sorts. He glanced over at Pansy, who
was talking and giggling with Millicent and some of the younger girls as
they walked down the hall, and then turned back to Crabbe. ?You?re worth
more than she is anyway,? he said loyally. Loyalty, after all, was another
Malfoy Family Trait. Another one of those traits that only lasted as long as
they were useful.

?But I loved her!? Crabbe cried.

?Alright, alright, calm down, do you want me to talk to her for you?? Draco
sighed, and Goyle nodded eagerly.

?I?ll talk to her,? Goyle offered. It wasn?t often that he spoke, and when he
did, it wasn?t to offer something intelligent to the conversation.

?No, you?ll just mess it up, I want Draco do to it,? Crabbe argued. ?Fine,?
Draco said, trying to avoid yet another fight between Crabbe and Goyle that
he would have to mediate. ?I?ll talk to her for you.?

?Oh, bother,? Ron called loudly as he, Harry, and Hermione finally filed out
of the Potions dungeon. ?I had wondered what that smell was.?

Draco?s eyes narrowed incredulously and he turned to face Weasley, a


vaguely amused smirk on his face. ?Weasel, are you implying that Crabbe,
Goyle, and I smell foully? Because, honestly, as far as insults go, that was
pretty weak.?

?And uncalled for,? Crabbe agreed.

Potter was carefully concealing his emotions, though Draco, studying his
face, suddenly wondered if perhaps Potter found his friend?s awkward insult
as pathetic as he had. There was a tightness in the other boy?s lips that
seemed to indicate that he was hiding a smile, or even a smirk. ?Ron, let?s
go,? the dark-haired boy said, sliding his eyes away from his rival. Draco
didn?t notice; for some reason, he was still studying Potter?s mouth,
probably only because he knew it would make him nervous. Yes, just
because of that. Proof that it was working, Potter?s tongue flicked out and
licked his dried lips nervously. Draco?s eyes flicked away and he smiled.

No? Granger argued, which was enough even to surprise Draco. Usually she
was the first one to back away from a confrontation with him. He forced
himself to turn way from Potter and pay attention to the conversation. ?I
want to talk to you.? She pointed at Draco, her eyes dark with fury.
With me? Draco asked, amused. ?What have you got to say, little
Mudblood??

Weasley growled low in his throat and would have snapped something in
reply if Potter hadn?t shaken his head so firmly, again drawing Draco?s
gaze. ?I want my book back,? Granger snarled. ?I know you stole it, in the
hospital wing. I?ve searched all over for it, and I want it back.?

Draco smiled and opened his mouth to reply, but Potter beat him to it. ?He
doesn?t have it. Hermione, Malfoy doesn?t have it.?

Again, Draco was surprised, and he glanced at Potter but didn?t speak,
waiting to see what his game was. Granger?s hands flew to her hips. ?Then
where is it??

Draco didn?t take his gaze away from Potter?s face, so he saw as the boy
struggled to think up a compelling lie. Finally, even if the whole idea of
Potter lying to his best friends for him, Draco Malfoy, The Enemy, was quite
amusing, Draco decided to help him out. He didn?t bother to consider why
he?d even consider such a thing. ?I burnt it,? he lied, and it was Potter?s turn
to look startled. Draco smiled cruelly. ?Your stupid journal?s gone, Granger,
let it go. Honestly, it was an immature hobby anyway, and I destroyed it.?

The girl?s eyes narrowed. ?Why??

?Because it was yours and I wanted to,? Draco replied with an easy shrug.

?That doesn?t surprise me,? Weasley sneered.

?Look, let?s just go. The journal?s gone, I saw Malfoy light it on fire,?
Potter said suddenly, grabbing Granger?s arm. His face looked grimly
determined now, and once again, Draco couldn?t look away. It was like
staring out a window during a thunderstorm, watching all the emotions pass
over Potter?s face. Morbidly fascinating. A

Malfoy would never be so transparent. ?Let?s go, Ron, we?ve got to get to
Divination.?

?You saw him?? Hermione asked, scowling. ?Then why didn?t you stop
him??
Potter was backing away down the hall, and Draco watched, intrigued. His
face had gone a strange shade of red, all because he was lying to his friends.
It was interesting, Draco never had that much trouble lying to anyone,
whether they be his friends or enemies. ?You didn?t want any teachers
finding it, and I figured it was for the best!? was Potter?s answer. ?Ron,
come on!?

With one last hateful glare, Weasley took off down the hall after his friend,
and Granger, still mumbling to herself, followed.

?You?re still going to talk to her, right?? Crabbe asked.

Draco blinked. He?d forgotten Crabbe and Goyle were there. ?What??

Pansy. You?re still going to talk to her, right??

Oh. Oh, yes. I suppose.

We’re going to be late for Defense Against The Dark Arts,Goyle announced
suddenly.

Draco scowled. He hated being late. Then stop slowing me down,he


snapped, pushing past them and leading the way to their next class.

Beneath You
By Cinnamon

Chapter Two

Take your time, if I'm lying to you,


I know you'll find that you believe me, you believe me
Feel the sun on your face and tell me what you're thinking
Catch the snow on your tongue and show me how it tastes
Take my hand and if I'm lying to you, I'll always be alone,
if I'm lying to you

-- ?Take My Hand?, Dido

Harry snuck out at lunch to check the book. He was nervous about what
Malfoy was going to say about how he had lied to Hermione about it and
couldn?t stomach the idea of suffering through his afternoon classes not
knowing.

He hurriedly flipped open to the last page.

?Perhaps you should take lessons from me, Potter, and learn to PAY
ATTENTION IN CLASS. You wouldn?t get yelled at half as much as you do.
But I do enjoy that startled, pale look you get on your face whenever Snape
catches you daydreaming. However, I don?t enjoy that look nearly as much
as the red and patchy one you get when lying to Granger. Amusing, Potter,
very amusing.?

Harry couldn?t help it; he smiled a little. ?Trouble in Slytherin Paradise, I


see, between Pansy and Crabbe? Heartbreaking, really. I was going to
nominate them for Best Couple at the Halloween Ball. And as for paying
attention in Potions, if Snape weren?t such a dull and boring professor, and
Potions not such a dull and boring class, perhaps I would pay attention
more. As it is, I don?t think it?s worth my time. At least you should thank me
for providing you with a new excuse to toady to the greasy git.?

He slipped the book back and ran all the way back to the castle, wondering
why he was sneaking around writing to Draco Malfoy, and wondering even
more why? why he sort of liked it. It was something that was his that he
didn?t have to share. Everything else was public, everything from the time
he was one year old on had become public knowledge, and he had nothing
that was not partially owned by Hermione and Ron or his Quidditch team or
his aunt and uncle. But this was his. Well, his and Malfoy?s.

Which was altogether too disturbing to think about.

***

The next morning at breakfast, Hermione triumphantly pulled a notebook


from her bag. It had a purple cover and was covered in huge outlines of
daisies.

?What,? Ron asked in horror, staring at the nearly glowing cover, ?is that??

?Well, since Malfoy destroyed our other book,? she shot a quick glare at
Harry, ?I got a new one we can use. I already started writing in it.? She
flipped open the cover. ?It?s a list of things we?ve got to do to get ready for
the Halloween Ball.?

?Things we?ve got to do?? Ron asked, scowling. ?I was thinking of just?
showing up. Maybe. If I felt like it. Which I probably won?t.?

Hermione glared. ?It?s a costume ball, Ron, you can?t just show up, you?ve
got to wear a costume.?

Harry slid the notebook across the table, reading over the list in horror.
?Hermione, this is ridiculous. No one needs this much time to come up with
a costume.?

She grinned. ?But I figure we could do something amazing, something that


makes a statement. We could all go as house elves, only wrap ourselves in
chains. Or we could all go as garden gnomes, but black and blue to
symbolize bruises.?

?Oh c?mon, Hermione, that?s gross.? Ron rolled his eyes. ?I thought this
whole idea of a costume party was bad enough without turning it into a
public statement.?

?I?m not going,? Harry declared.

Hermione?s eyes widened. ?You?ve got to go, Harry!?

?Why?? He shrugged. ?I?ve got to? study.? He hoped fervently that she
would be satisfied with that. It was only a small lie. He just didn?t want to
go.

?Study,? Ron repeated. He grinned. ?And I?ve got to help him. We?ve got a
huge?Divination exam the next day. Yeah.?

Hermione?s eyes were narrow slits now, and her voice acidic. ?Do what you
wish, I couldn?t care less. Now, if you don?t mind, I?ve got to go do some
studying in the library before class. One of you take the book and write in it,
so I?ll have something to read in Charms. That class is frightfully boring
now that I?ve memorized the textbook.?
She swept away and Harry looked down at the purple notebook in distaste.
Ron nudged it closer to him. ?Go on then, Harry,? he said with a smirk.
?You take it.?

Rolling his eyes, Harry took the book and put it with his others.

***

Potions is boring, Harry had written in Hermione?s book. He paused,


chewing the end of his quill and looking thoughtful. He couldn?t think of
anything to write. Oddly enough, writing in this purple monstrosity of a
book seemed rather empty. He had liked writing in the other book, found it
amusing then, but now, it seemed rather pointless. After all, he?d be talking
to Hermione and Ron in a minute or two anyway.

Scoffing softly in annoyance, he slammed the book shut. Hermione was just
going to have to find her own entertainment in Charms class.

After Potions, he tossed the book at Hermione, mumbled some excuse, and
took off running out of the castle and into the trees. He only had a few
minutes before his next class, but he had to check the hollow.

There wasn?t a reply, and he was disappointed. As it was, he was late for
Divination anyway, and Trelawney had already started the lesson. She
watched him woefully as he ran, gasping for breath, into the class, sliding
into a seat beside Ron.

?Harry,? she said, gently chiding. ?I shall forgive your lateness, but only
because I understand the cause. You are undergoing an important life
change, child. But don?t worry; it happens to everyone.?

Rather than waste his time trying to figure out what she was talking about,
Harry pulled out a quill and parchment. Trelawney went back to teaching,
and Harry tried to catch his breath.

Ron slipped the notebook onto his desk. Where were you? he had written.

Harry glanced at him and then back at the notebook, swallowing down his
guilt. Forgot something in the common room, he scribbled, passing the
notebook back. Ron scowled at him but didn?t reply, and after class, Harry
didn?t give him time to ask any more questions. He hurried out of the tower
before Ron had even finished packing up his books. He didn?t want to have
to answer any more questions because he didn?t like lying to his friend and
he knew that he certainly couldn?t tell Ron the truth. Ron would think it
meant something other than what it did mean. And what did it mean? He
wasn?t quite sure. That he and Malfoy still hated each other and had decided
to fight through writing rather than talking, so as not to disturb any more
professors or get in any more trouble? Maybe. Hopefully.

***

I suppose you could call it trouble in Slytherin Paradise, Potter, if you call
Crabbe and Pansy shagging some sort of paradise, which I certainly don?t.
Apparently she is in love with someone else, or so she says. Quite tragic,
especially considering who it is she claims to like. See, this is why I don?t
believe in love. It?s rubbish, all of it. Especially if she can love someone like
HIM. It?s quite disturbing, though you probably wouldn?t agree, should I
tell you who it is she claims to like. I?ve seen the way you look at him,
Potter, and do believe there is more going on between you two than you like
to admit.

Harry?s eyes widened. ?What the hell?? he whispered to himself, twirling


the quill and trying to figure out exactly what it was Malfoy was implying.
?Who is it? Though I can understand her falling for someone else, I mean,
being with Crabbe must have been rather redundant and irritating, he?s not
much for intelligent conversation, is he? There are only a few people I could
see as not being a step up from Crabbe? and yes, Malfoy, you?re one of
them.

And as for not believing in love?it?s rather sad, isn?t it, to be this young and
have already lost faith in it. I believe in it, and I?ve never really been in
love, so you shouldn?t give up--?

Harry paused, eyes widening. Giving Malfoy advice on love? Oh, no.
Ridiculous. He scribbled it out quickly. ?I don?t believe in love either.
Rubbish and a waste of time besides. As long as I?ve got Quidditch to
occupy my mind, I?m happy. I can?t see how life would be better with
someone to give chocolates to and? you know, puppies and love sonnets and
that sort of thing. I?d be embarrassed to be in love.?

Stashing the book and the quill back in the hollow, he walked slowly back to
the castle, shivering from the chill.
***

Draco laughed when he read what Potter had written. ?Stupid git,? he
commented out loud, still amused. ?Lower than Vincent, am I? Come on,
now, Potter, that was rather clumsy, wasn?t it? Do try to make your insults
a bit more gracefully constructed, it pains me to have to read through your
clumsy attempts at cleverness. And as for the unlucky chap whom Pansy
claims to be in love with, I certainly can?t betray my house?s secrets to
YOU, Potter. It just wouldn?t be right.

As for the rest of it? well, I?ve always rather suspected that you and your
broomstick had a SPECIAL relationship. Saw you polishing it on the
Quidditch stands one day, I was quite, erm?DISTURBED to see the way you
handled it. You stroked it like it was?well? Let me just say, Potter, that I
think you?ve got some issues that a girlfriend might be able to help with! At
least it?ll save me from ever having to watch you and your broomstick bond
with oil in public. Honestly, Potter, some things are just not meant to be
done in public!?

He slipped the book back and walked back to the castle, laughing a little. It
was amusing, really, despite all the reasons why it should have been deadly
serious. It was Potter, after all, and every thing they?d ever shared had been
spiteful and furious. This didn?t fall into that category, however; or at least,
it didn?t anymore. At the beginning, it was about violating something sacred
between Potter and his friends. Now? something else. Though certainly not
something pleasant. Certainly. Except that he had the odd feeling that the
last half of his note had been less spiteful and more?teasing than it should
have been. Besides, he really hadn?t minded watching Potter polish his
broom. He?d found it oddly? fascinating. Morbidly fascinating, of course,
and only because Potter had been so absorbed in it. Certainly not because of
his fingers and the way they ?

Draco scowled. ?Of course not.?

Pansy was sitting alone in the common room, sobbing, when Draco stepped
inside. He inwardly winced, taking a deep, bracing breath, and asked,
?Pansy, love, what?s wrong?? in his sweetest, most caring voice. After all, if
Slytherins couldn?t be sweet to each other, who could they be sweet to?

She lifted her head, which had been buried in her hands. ?Draco? Oh, Draco,
it?s terrible,? she wailed.
He sat beside her and patted her shoulder. ?What?s terrible? Did something
happen??

?Yes. It?s Vincent, he?s so furious. Did you tell him??

?I didn?t tell him anything,? Draco lied. ?Did he do something??

?He said that if I didn?t fall back in love with him, he?d tell ? he?d tell
everyone that I like??

The situation had just turned dire. If anyone found out who exactly it was
that Pansy had convinced herself she was in love with, the Slytherin
reputation would be at risk. Hell, it would be ruined. After all, Slytherins did
not go about expressing undying love for Gryffindors. It just wasn?t done.

?He won?t tell a soul,? Draco said, his eyes hard. ?Trust me, Pansy, he
won?t tell a soul.?

?I?ve tried not to like him, Draco, really I have!? she sniffled now. ?But then
in Potions, he leant me a quill when mine got all mangled because I had
forgotten that I wasn?t to chew them unless they were sugar quills, like you
told me, and he was so sweet to point out that I?d gotten ink on my lips, and
even to spell it out for me when I forgot the cleansing incantation. And when
I thanked him, he smiled and it was that adorable crooked smile and??

?I thought you said you were going to stop liking him,? Draco snapped,
sickened at the mental images her gushing words were evoking. ?We?d
decided that it wasn?t good for the house.?

At this, Pansy?s eyes went wide and shining. A heartfelt sigh welled up in
her throat. ?But, oh, Draco, I can?t help it!?

Feeling rather nauseous, Draco suggested, ?Perhaps there is a potion we can


have Pomfrey make for you??

She scowled. ?I wouldn?t give this up for the world, Draco! It?s like there
are a thousand butterflies in my stomach all fluttering about nervously in
hopes that he will look at me tomorrow morning and smile again! It?s the
most exquisite feeling, I just can?t??
He clapped one hand over her mouth. ?If I hear one more stupidly sugary
word out of your mouth about butterflies, love, Gryffindors, or Weasleys, I
swear, Pansy, I?ll put such a curse on you that you won?t even know what
hit you,? he snarled, patience finally running out.

Her eyes were huge and she swallowed loudly, nodding against his hand. He
smiled grimly in satisfaction, taking his hand away. ?But Draco,? she said in
a tiny voice. ?I can?t help it.?

?Honestly, Pansy, I?m beginning to think you?d be less annoying if you


were with the stupid prat rather than mooning about him in our common
room. At least then you?d be gushing on to him rather than to me!? An idea
had slowly unfurled itself in his mind and he greeted it with streamers and
confetti. It was a way to make the talk of butterflies and crooked smiles stop
at least, and that had suddenly become more of a priority, even more
important than what was best for the house. After all, his health depended on
making Pansy stop her disgusting moping. If he had to listen to one more
sappy, love-struck word from her, he?d vomit and never stop. And that had
to be bad for his health. Besides, on the upside, Crabbe wouldn?t have
anyone to shag until all hours of the night if Pansy was off with someone
else.

?What am I going to do?? she said now, shoulders slumped.

?Well?? Draco drew the word out thoughtfully. ?Have you considered
talking to him about it??

Her eyes widened in surprise. ?Talking to him? But Draco, he?s a


Gryffindor!?

Draco grimaced and then said, ?Yes, but we certainly cannot populate the
word with pure blooded wizards relying solely on the gene pool of our own
house, after all. I mean, honestly, inbreeding would soon become a problem,
and the whole idea of people only dating within their own house is, when
you think about it, ridiculous. Besides, the Weasleys are a?a pure-
blooded?respectable?? Each word burned his throat, ?old family.?

?You?ll let me?? she asked, leaping up from her seat. ?You?ll let me see
him??

?Since when have I been the one to grant permission?? Draco asked dryly.
?Oh, don?t be silly, Draco, you?ve always been the head of our house, you
know you have. No one would dare do anything without your permission.
You know what?s best for us.?

He rolled his eyes but didn?t reply, feeling thoroughly greasy from her
gushing words. ?So just go talk to him. What do I care? Just don?t let him in
our common room, of course, and any shagging?? he was nearly sick again
?? must be done in his room, not in yours. I refuse to let a Gryffindor into
our dungeons, under any circumstances.?

?Of course,? she said, eyes clouded with other worries. ?But Draco, what if
he doesn?t even like me?? She would have gone into a tearful, depressed
monologue of self-doubt, but Draco held up one hand in surrender.

?I?ll? I?ll work on it for you,? he offered, scowling. ?As long as you don?t
say another word about it, I?ll work on it.?

?Work on it? How??

He grimaced. ?I seem to have gained bit of sway over the Gryffindors


recently,? he admitted, rolling his eyes. ?I?ll see what I can do.?

***

Harry didn?t have time after class to check the hollow for a reply, because
he had scheduled Quidditch practice right after class in preparation for the
rematch between Gryffindor and Slytherin that had been scheduled for
Friday, two days away. Slytherin had scheduled the pitch for practice on
Thursday, so it was their last chance to practice before the match. They
practiced until it grew too dark to see and, exhausted, changed, showered,
and went back to Gryffindor Tower to quickly finish their homework. By the
time he?d finished scribbling a bunch of Divination rubbish, Harry was so
exhausted that he could only barely manage to stumble up the stairs to his
dorm room and collapse into bed.

He woke up sometime in the early morning hours, chased from sleep by


vaguely unsettling dreams he could not remember. Sitting up and groggily
reaching for his glasses, he glanced around the dorm room, but everyone
else was sleeping.
Knowing he probably wouldn?t get back to sleep for a while, Harry crawled
out of bed with the intention of going to the owlery to send off his latest
letter to Sirius, stop by the kitchens for a snack, and maybe head out to the
hollow to write a reply to Malfoy.

It was to be an exercise of self-will, to see if he could finish his other tasks


before dashing out to the hollow. He had to prove to himself that he was not
addicted to this? That he didn?t need?

?Oh, bloody hell,? Harry growled. ?Who cares??

He went straight to the hollow.

It was a cold night and he shivered in his pajamas, casting a soft warming
spell. He was in a rather thoughtful, solemn mood, and twirled the quill
absently as he read what Malfoy had written.

?It?s a bloody cold night,? he wrote in reply, ?but I couldn?t sleep. Strange
dreams. Don?t know why I?m even out here, and I don?t even know why I?m
writing in here. Maybe so that I can think of more ?clumsy? and ?graceless?
insults to attack you with only so that in the morning you can come here and
tell me how I am worthless because I don?t have your Slytherinish sense of
sarcasm and wit. But then I suppose I?d have to reply with something to the
effect of ?so??, because, as I?ve mentioned, Gryffindors such as myself lack
the particular skill of sarcasm. So what?s the point, Malfoy? What, really, is
the point of this? Is there even one? A point to anything? Maybe the whole
point is to perform whatever ?destiny? has set out for us. In that case, I shall
fall in love with Ginny Weasley, be best friends with Hermione and Ron
(who will one day fall in love with each other), stumble my way through my
studies, become Quidditch Player Extraordinaire, and die at the hands of
Voldemort as my father did. Oh. And you and I would hate each other
bitterly until the end of time. Honestly, I don?t think I like having my entire
life left up to fate. But then those of us with destinies cannot fight the
inevitable, can we?

?On a more amusing note (yes, the images you created for me of me and my
broomstick did make me laugh, by the way, you stupid prat. I didn?t know
you watched me, if I did, I promise, I would have put on more of a show),
SHOULD I end up married to Ginny Weasley, I?ll probably still have to rely
on?umm, ?polishing my own broomstick?, because she doesn?t seem the
type to willing help with that. So I?m afraid my destiny decrees that my
broomstick and I shall always be alone. Rather heroic. And Dumbledore
thought the whole Boy-Who-Lived-Voldemort incident was heroic.?

He was snickering even as he finished it, glad to have had something break
him out of his morose mood, even if it had been something Malfoy had said.

At lunch the next day, Harry didn?t bother to go to the Great Hall. He did
not feel up to Hermione?s determination to discover what, exactly, it was
that was bothering him, or Ron?s attempts to cheer him up by describing in
vivid detail exactly how Gryffindor would slaughter Slytherin in the up-
coming match.

After all, he?d heard it all before.

So instead, he wrapped his crimson and gold scarf around his neck and
struck out for the hollow. There was a reply waiting there for him, written in
familiar elegant script.

?? Well then. Love, I don?t believe in, Potter, but the very idea of your future
as you laid it out in your last note?THAT I could see happening. It?s very
amusing as well. As for me, my destiny is probably that I shall marry some
gorgeous third cousin of mine, part Veela, from good breeding stock, who
throws marvelous dinner parties, doesn?t like words that are more than
three syllables long, and likes ballroom dancing and fancy-dress parties. So
either way, I say fuck destiny. Just like love, I choose not to believe in it.

?And, oh, Potter, don?t get philosophical on me now, I don?t like it. Quite
frankly, there is no point to this or life either, it?s all just a random chain of
disconnected accidents that eventually lead to death. This is just another of
those mistakes we?ll regret when we?re older. For now, it?s an easy way to
pass the time? I mean, honestly, it?s a lot less time consuming than making
sure I pass you in the hall to insult you between classes or trying to throw
things at your head in potions.

?And besides? Who cares what fate has in store for you, Wonder Boy? You
haven?t been doing too badly for yourself, being a ?hero? and a ?celebrity?
and all. It?s quite disgusting. But then, the thing about fame is that anyone
who doesn?t have it mopes about being unimportant and anyone who DOES
have it mopes because of it. But shall I infer from your rather pathetic
ramblings that you do not WISH to marry-and-have-red-haired-children?
Why ever not? That Weasley girl is so? adequate. I do however agree that
Weasley and Granger are certainly nauseating enough as just friends. And,
as much as this pains me to suggest, perhaps you and I can come up with a
compromise? You see, there is a favor I wish to ask of you? And trust me, as
much as I hate Gryffindors as a whole, I hate you worst of all, so this pains
me to ask more than it ever could for you to accept. And if the night was
cold, this morning is doubly so. I think I can smell snow on the air. I loathe
winter, and much prefer autumn. Something about the smell of falling
leaves.?

Harry nearly dropped the quill; he was so surprised that Malfoy would ask
anything of him. ?A favor? What?s in it for me? And if my philosophic
nature surprised you, Malfoy, imagine my horror at discovering you have a
poetic side. ?Smell snow on the air?? Snow doesn?t have a smell. And
falling leaves smell like rot, death, and decay. Autumn is the nastiest month
of all. Spring?s much better. Cleaner.?

He slipped the book back into its hiding place, smiling a little, his mood a
little lighter, and feeling strangely excited as he wondered what, exactly,
Malfoy thought to ask of him.

Classes that afternoon were long and he was restless throughout them.
Hermione and Ron did not bother to ask him where he had been at lunch,
though they did stare at him and whisper every now and again. He was not
aware of it, however. He was not aware of much until in Care of Magical
Creatures, his last class of the day, they were having an oral exam on the
nature of Demiguises and Hagrid asked Malfoy for an answer.

?The first defense of a Demiguise?? Malfoy stammered, caught off guard.


He hadn?t been paying attention. ?Why? to run away. Isn?t it??

?Honestly, Malfoy,? Harry drawled, startling even Hagrid. He usually didn?t


speak out in class. ?You expect one of the most difficult creatures to capture
simply to run away? Its first defense is that it can turn invisible, it?s fur is
spun into invisibility cloaks.?

Rather than scowl as he usually did, Malfoy shocked everyone, Harry


included, by smiling knowingly, the smirk an answer to the challenge in
Harry?s eyes.
After class, Harry returned to the hollow. Malfoy had not yet replied, but he
scribbled, ? Perhaps you should take lessons from me, Malfoy, and learn to
PAY ATTENTION IN CLASS.?

He walked away from the hollow humming softly to himself.

The Slytherins were already practicing for the next day?s match, and he
paused before going inside to study Malfoy?s flying technique. Without the
hangover, he was graceful and fast, nearly as fast as Harry himself was, and
that was a worry, of course.

Except that at the moment, it seemed more like something to admire.

He stood there for a long while, watching Draco fly.

***

That night, after Draco had replied to Potter in the book, Draco sat in his
common room, while the other Slytherins talked cheerfully of the first
snowfall of the season, which had surprised everyone by coming so soon,
and the Quidditch match the next day. Draco sat alone in front of the fire,
watching the flames thoughtfully. If anyone had asked him what, exactly,
he?d been thinking about, he wouldn?t have been able to reply, because he
really wasn?t thinking of anything specific. He was just thinking obscure
little thoughts that Potter, of course, would have called ?poetic?, that were
really just introspective. Guilty thoughts, mostly regarding Potter. It seemed
wrong, somehow, to take advantage of things as they were now. However, it
was too late to turn back. The spell had been cast, and if this was Potter?s
Destiny, it was too late for Draco to stop it.

?Did you talk to him?? Pansy asked softly, coming to sit beside him. For a
minute, Draco feared that she meant Potter, and he flushed.

?What?? he asked, stalling.

?Vincent. Did you talk to him??

?Oh. Oh, no, I didn?t. I should though. I will.? He nodded.

She smiled in relief. ?And? and did you talk to Ron??


Draco?s nose wrinkled in distaste. ?Of course not. You couldn?t pay me
enough to talk to Weasley. But I?m working on it, you?ll just have to trust
me.?

She smiled, a bright and sunny smile that almost made her pretty, and
shocked the hell out of him by hugging him suddenly. Nobody touched a
Malfoy without permission. ?Thank you,? she whispered, kissing his cheek.
She?d hurried out of the common room before he could get over his shock
and reprimand her.

Grimacing, Draco scrubbed his cheek with the back of his hand.
?Disgusting,? he mumbled to himself. ?What?s wrong with me? First
shoving books down my trousers, then communicating to Potter through the
damned thing, then offering to fix Pansy up with Weasley. If I didn?t know
any better, I?d say that stupid journal was cursed before I ever got my hands
on it.?

?Draco?? Blaise asked, looking worried. ?You?re not talking to yourself, are
you??

Draco laughed. ?Of course not. Malfoys don?t talk to themselves.?

Blaise didn?t look convinced.

***

It was dark when Harry made his way to the hollow, the glowing light of his
wand the only thing to guide him. It had started to snow a while earlier, tiny,
icy droplets that stuck to his eyelashes. It was too early for snow.

He read Draco?s reply in the glowing light of his wand. ?Of course winter
has a smell, Potter. It smells like icicles and pine trees, the kind of coldness
that tickles the back of your noise and makes your lips chap up; frost and
cold fire. You?re less imaginative than I thought if you cannot imagine what
winter smells like. Then again, Gryffindors aren?t known for their
imagination. Smelling winter on the air is hardly poetic, Potter. You
disappoint me if you think that is poetry.

?As for the favor? Perhaps with a little bit of cooperation, you and I can
solve this issue of whether or not everything is accidental or led by fate. You
see, you claim that it is ?fated? that Granger and Weasley end up together. I
say that if they do, it is mere coincidence. Shall we dare to prove this fate
thing of yours wrong??

Harry considered for a moment, shivering, and then he replied, ?Prove fate
wrong? How do you propose we do this? Because even if we manage to
prove it wrong, maybe it was fated that we do so? See? Everything in life is
a consequence of a million things that have already happened and there is
no way to prove that what does happen wasn?t fate. It DID happen,
therefore it was supposed to happen. It?s not possible, Malfoy. But still, this
favor you keep mentioning does intrigue me. What is it?

Oh, and on a side note, I refuse to believe that the Ever Estimable Malfoy?s
lips EVER chap up, and if they do, the fact that they give off a distinctive
odor while doing it disturbs me more than you will ever know.?

He hurried back to the castle, freezing, and back to his common room,
quickly finishing his homework.

Later that night, Harry was sitting at the window in his dorm room. All his
roommates were still in the common room, he could distantly hear their
chatter and laughter, but he had developed a headache and, after taking a
potion for it, come upstairs where it was quieter. He?d opened the window in
his room, letting in the chilly air, and climbed up on the windowsill
watching the tiny white drops twirling lazily from the dark sky.

He sniffed a few times, cautiously, but didn?t smell any difference in the air.
No icicles, no pine, no cold fire. Just the rotting leaves of autumn that he
hated. The smell of decay and rot.

Ron appeared then, in the doorway, beaming. There was always something
about the first snowfall that brought out bright smiles and shining faces,
childlike enthusiasm and excitement. ?It?s snowing!? he cried. ?I knew it
was going to snow tonight, I could just smell it!?

Harry?s eyes narrowed. ?It?s not even November,? he said stiffly. ?It?s too
soon for snow, and it?ll mean bad conditions for Quidditch tomorrow.?

Ron shrugged. ?It?ll probably be finished by then anyway, and first


snowfalls never stick on the ground, so don?t worry about it. Besides, you
can beat Slytherin, no matter what happens.?
?Yeah, like I did last time.?

?That wasn?t your fault, Malfoy was hung over, you told me that.?

Harry shrugged, not in the mood for Ron?s enthusiasm. He was feeling
strangely thoughtful. ?I guess. We?ll have to see what happens.?

Ron studied him in the darkness. ?You alright? You?ve been acting
strangely.?

?I?m fine. Just a headache.?

?Aren?t you cold??

?No.?

Ron studied him for a moment longer and then nodded curtly, looking hurt.
?Fine then. I?ll be downstairs.?

Harry nodded and Ron left. Turning back to the window, Harry watched the
snow falling for a few minutes more before climbing down from the window
and closing it. He changed into his pajamas and crawled into bed, though it
was a long time before he managed to fall asleep.

***

The next morning before breakfast, Harry woke early and went outside, his
usual ritual every morning of a Quidditch match. Though the grass had a
light dusting of frost on it, the snow hadn?t stuck. It was a cold day and his
breath fogged in the air as he walked, frost crunching beneath his feet. He?d
brought his broomstick but lacked the inclination to fly; he wanted his feet
firmly on the ground for some reason he couldn?t define. Maybe because it
was easier to balance, and he was feeling distinctly unbalanced lately.

After a quick tour of the pitch, he went inside to eat breakfast and get his
schoolbooks. They only had morning classes today and the Quidditch game
was scheduled for after lunch. Most people had already gathered in the Great
Hall for breakfast, the atmosphere typical of any morning before a game,
and a bit more energetic because of last night?s snow fall. He slipped into
his chair, picked up a piece of toast, and then everything went fuzzy.
??Harry? Harry.?

He glanced up to find Hermione watching him worriedly. ?Wh?what?? he


asked a little hoarsely as the dizziness faded.

?You alright? You went really pale.?

But Harry suddenly felt as if he were not all right. In fact, he felt as if, any
moment, he were going to vomit, and the Great Hall was certainly no place
for that.

He got up hurriedly, smiling wanly at her. ?Fine. Just not hungry.?

She opened her mouth to ask more, but Harry was already hurrying away
and didn?t pause to listen.

Dizziness hit him again near the door, and he stumbled, catching himself on
the wall.

?Alright, Potter??

Was it his imagination, or was there a faint undertone of concern in that


familiar, sneering voice? He stiffened and turned slowly. Malfoy stood
behind him, Crabbe on one side, Goyle still back at the table, eating. The
familiar, dark nastiness in Malfoy?s eyes destroyed any notion of concern.
?I?m fine, Malfoy,? he said coldly.

Malfoy smirked. ?Wouldn?t want you falling off your broomstick again, like
in third year, now, would we??

?Trust me, Malfoy, you don?t have to worry about that,? Harry replied. He
left quickly, before Malfoy could say anything more, and before vomiting all
over the floor.

He went outside, the cold morning clearing his head and easing the strange
dizziness. He went around the side of the castle so no one coming out would
see him, and sat down heavily on the grass, breathing slowly and waiting for
the nausea to pass. By the time class started twenty minutes later, he?d
forgotten all about the sudden illness, and started concentrating on more
important things, like Quidditch.
***

Draco watched Potter stumble away, his eyes narrowed in thought as he


wondered what, possibly could be wrong. An odd and very faint coil of
unease made its way into his belly, but he squashed it firmly. After all, he
hadn?t really done anything, right? Nothing to be responsible for Potter?s
pale face and tight lips, anyway.

Still, just to be sure, he made an excuse to Vincent and left the Great Hall.
He?d seen Harry turn towards the door and made to follow him. When he
stepped out of the castle and into the cold morning, however, there was no
sign of him.

With a vague hope of finding him by the hollow, Draco hurried into the
trees, but Potter wasn?t there. He flipped through the book, read the last
note, and then, after checking to be sure he had a few minutes, began his
reply. It pained him to have to suggest a partnership with Potter, even with
the ulterior motive of getting rid of Pansy and her whining, simpering, heart-
broken moans about Weasley. However, if it meant that he no longer had to
wait for Vincent and Pansy to finish shagging every night before going to
bed, then it was worth it. And besides, there were more things at stake here,
besides his pride, as hard to imagine as that was. He had to keep Potter
writing.

?Trust me, Potter, it pains me to suggest this. However, the alternative is


even more terrifying to consider, so I am afraid this is necessary. Pansy
fancies herself in love with none other than your friend Weasley (the male
one, not the female one). So here is my proposal. You claim that life is
driven by fate and that it is fated that Granger and Weasley end up together
and create thousands of red-haired, Halfblood children. I say that
everything in life is an accident. So if Weasley were to end up with someone
else (say? Pansy??) it would mean that FATE had nothing to do with it, WE
caused it to happen. And, of course, it would also mean that a Pureblooded
line like the Weasleys (as poor and distasteful as I find them) was not
watered down by Muggle-tainted blood. So, what do you say? Accept my
challenge??

That finished, Draco suddenly realized that he had taken longer than he
thought, and, even if he ran, he was going to be late for Potions.
Cursing softly, he took off at a run for the castle. Even so, he arrived late,
gasping for breath and red-faced.

Snape raised an inquisitive brow, which was nothing compared to the look
of shock on Potter?s face. Draco was never late for Potions.

Scowling, he sat down beside Pansy and got out a quill, thankful that Snape
didn?t ask questions. Had it been Potter, he would have lost at least twenty
house points.

Draco glanced over his shoulder, and his eyes met Potter?s green ones. They
held for a moment and then, shocking them both, Potter smiled a slight,
lopsided smile that held neither challenge nor mockery, but only
understanding. Draco spun around so fast that the sleeve of his robe caught
his ink well, knocking it to the floor, drawing Snape?s attention again as he
quickly muttered a cleaning spell, cursing softly under his breath.

He heard laughter behind him and felt an uncharacteristic flush paint his
cheekbones an unbecoming pink. Malfoys, after all, were not clumsy, and
did not blush.

?Problems, Malfoy?? Weasley drawled from somewhere behind him, and


Draco heard Pansy catch her breath and then let out a loving sigh.

?Twenty points from Gryffindor for disrupting class,? Snape barked, glaring
furiously. There were mutinous mumbles from the Gryffindors, but Draco
flashed his professor a grateful smile, finished cleaning up the mess, and
shot Pansy a scathing glare, though none of it was really her fault.

It was not turning into a good day, which, of course, did not bode well for
the upcoming Quidditch match.

***

Harry was furious. Blinding, burning, aching rage ran through him, making
him tremble, and he slammed the notebook shut firmly. How dare Malfoy
say those things about Hermione and Ron? Sure, Harry himself was against
them being together because it seemed as though they were ?destined? to be
and he was against destiny as a matter of principle, but that was a far cry
from claiming it was wrong because Hermione?s parents were Muggles and
Ron was poor. It made the entire thing seem petty somehow. As if he sought
to break apart his best friends who had demonstrated a tiny bit of possible
attraction for one another that may possibly grow into something more, and
he sought to destroy it to prove that it didn?t have to be that way? He sought
to destroy it with the help of Malfoy?

He tossed the book back into the hollow and stalked away furiously. By the
time the Quidditch match started an hour or so later, he was still angry, his
rage fueled by an unacknowledged feeling of guilt that he had shared a
secret with someone who would say such things about his best friends. How
could he have forgotten?

?Alright, Harry?? Neville, the team?s water boy, asked him as they waited in
the Gryffindor changing rooms. ?You look a little pale.?

?Not nervous, are you?? Seamus asked with a lopsided grin. ?We?re sure to
win, as long as you stay on your broomstick this time.?

?That wasn?t his fault!? Natalie, a third year Beater, cried. ?Malfoy knocked
him off.?

?Right then, as long as he doesn?t let Malfoy knock him around again,?
Seamus amended.

?Trust me,? Harry said grimly. ?Malfoy won?t stand a chance against me.?

?That?s the spirit!? Neville said with a smile, handing him some water.

Quidditch took all of Harry?s concentration. He tuned all other thoughts out
and focused on the Snitch. Well, the Snitch, and the other Seeker. He was so
angry.

Malfoy, evidently, was not expecting rage, and he had the grace to look
startled at Harry?s scathing scowl as they took their places above the pitch.

?Problems, Potter?? Malfoy drawled with a haughty smirk.

?Shut the fuck up, Malfoy.

?
Malfoy looked even more startled by this, and his sneering tone dropped as
he cried with a bewildered sort of confusion, ?What??

?What do you think?? The game started below and Harry restlessly began
scanning the pitch for the Snitch. Malfoy was too busy studying his face to
do the same.

?If this has anything to do with that cute smile in my direction in Potions,
Potter??

Harry interrupted him. ?You? You thought I was smiling at you?? he lied.
?Trust me, I wasn?t. I was laughing at you, Malfoy. Your face was so red? It
amused me.?

Malfoy laughed. ?Whatever, Potter.?

Ducking a Bludger and moving a little higher to get out of the way of the
main game play, Harry rolled his eyes. ?What, did you think we were friends
or something, Malfoy??

?Of course not! But I certainly don?t see what I?ve done to deserve??

Malfoy was too busy arguing to notice a Bludger coming right for him and
Harry reacted instinctively, slamming into him and shoving him out of the
way.

Malfoy yelped and opened his mouth to shout, until he noticed the Bludger
fly past. He glanced from it to Harry and then back again and said in an odd,
almost humble voice, ?Thanks. I didn?t see it.?

Harry was too furious even to let this uncharacteristic display of gratitude
affect his anger. He spun away, ignoring Malfoy and focusing on the Snitch,
which had yet to make an appearance. Malfoy followed him.

?Potter,? he said finally, sighing. ?Just tell me what I?ve supposedly done.?

He had been flying a few feet ahead and he spun suddenly, so that the tip of
his broom was nearly close enough to touch Malfoy?s. ?You don?t see what
you?ve done? You think you have the right to call my friends those things??

?What things?? Malfoy asked blankly.


It occurred to Harry then that Malfoy honestly did not see the insult behind
the things he had said, and it shocked him. Shaken, he merely stared at
Draco in a bemused sort of fascination, wondering what it must be like to
live in a world where the line between what is right and what is wrong was
so clearly defined, yet so obviously skewed. He struggled hard enough just
to define what was real and what wasn?t.

Before either of them could break the strange, thoughtful sense of awareness
that had fallen over them, a flicker of gold flew in between them. The
Snitch. They tore their eyes away from each other and took off after it at the
same speed, diving downwards in a perfect replica of the dive that had
nearly killed them in the last match, except this time with more control and
grace. They pulled out at the same time, the Snitch, as could be expected,
held triumphantly between Harry?s fingers.

Rather than wait for the fans and his team to reach the ground and
congratulate him, which he normally did, this time, Harry crushed the Snitch
in his palm, tossed the broken pieces onto the pitch, snarled something under
his breath, and stalked away.

The dive had given him enough time to remember his fury and to let it wash
over him again, and by the time he?d reached the ground, he was safely
hidden behind it again.

No one noticed him leave. His team was busy hooting and dancing about
with the spectators, and the Slytherins were scowling and mumbling beneath
their breath. All of them except one, and it only took Malfoy a few seconds
to realize that Harry had left the pitch and was already almost back to the
Gryffindor changing rooms.

Draco wasn?t upset about losing. Hell, to be honest, he?d expected it.
However, what he had not expected was Potter?s fury.

?It?s not about them, Potter, don?t you get it?? he called, and Potter stopped,
glancing over his shoulder warily.

?What?s it about then??

Us. Draco?s eyes widened and he forced the strange thought away. ?Fate,?
he said smoothly, grabbing Potter?s wrist as Potter moved to open the door
to the dressing room. ?Do you believe in it, Harry??
?No.?

?Then prove it isn?t real,? Draco challenged in a silken, tempting tone.

And Harry, staring into his eyes, his wrist caught in Malfoy?s grip, honestly
had no choice. Whether fate was real or not hardly mattered, because
whether this was chance or destiny, he was already firmly wrapped up in it.

He nodded once, jerking his wrist away. ?Alright,? he said with a nod. ?I?ll
prove it wrong.?

Malfoy smiled at him and nodded in reply. ?Right then,? he said. ?We?ve
got to make plans.?

The Gryffindors were spilling off the pitch, Harry could hear them. ?Later,?
he said. ?We?ll make plans later.?

It was an incredibly awkward moment and, rather than attempt to break it


with words, Malfoy nodded curtly and walked away.

***

?Rotten luck.?

Draco jumped, spinning around. He?d been making his way back to the
Slytherin common room, lost in thought, when the sudden voice had startled
him. Goyle had caught up to him. ?What??

?Rotten luck. You nearly had it that time.?

Suddenly eerily worried that Goyle had somehow read his mind and had
known the confusion and questions he?d been mulling over, Draco scowled.
?Almost had what??

?The Snitch.?

Smiling a little sardonically at his own paranoia, Draco shrugged. ?Yeah,?


he said.

They fell into step together. ?You?ll beat him one of these days.?
?Of course I will. It?s inevitable.? They were silent for a bit, making their
way down a flight of stairs. Suddenly, Draco, pushing his hair out of his
eyes, said rather desperately, ?Greg, have you ever? you know??

?Have I ever what??

?Done something that you should regret but somehow find yourself unable
to stop??

He considered for a moment. ?You mean? like eat too much for dinner??

?Sod it, never mind,? Draco snarled, rolling his eyes. They?d arrived at the
entrance to the common room and he snapped the password.

?Draco, wait!? Goyle cried, following him inside. ?If you?ll just explain??

?There?s nothing to explain. Just leave me alone to think, will you??

It was dinnertime now, and most of the Slytherins had gone straight from the
Quidditch Pitch to the Hall, and Goyle, with a shrug, left the room to join
them.

Draco sprawled in a chair before the blazing hearth and scowled, resting his
chin on his hand and watching the flames. He was uncomfortably aware of
something happening to him that he could not define, did not like, and yet
couldn?t seem to shake off. Almost like a flu of some sort, except it did not
make him feel ill, it made him? restless.

Of course Gregory wouldn?t understand. He hardly understood anything.

Draco sat alone in silent contemplation for a short while, before entranceway
and Pansy stumbled inside. She was sobbing wildly.

Draco watched in shock as she wove her way to his chair and collapsed at
his feet, sobbing to hard to speak. ?What?s wrong??

She took a deep, shuddering breath. ?It?s Vincent,? she said finally,
hiccupping. ?I was coming back here and Harry Potter called my name and
came running after me, Ron and Hermione trailing behind and I didn?t know
what they were doing or anything, so I waited for them to catch up. Harry
started going on about Potions and how he and Ron needed a Potions tutor
or something, and Ron looked just as confused as I did. You know how bad I
am at Potions. Hermione looked totally horrified, I suspect she was annoyed
they didn?t ask her, and I was trying to explain that there was no way I could
help them, when Vincent came down the hall, and as soon as he saw me
talking to Harry and Ron, he started shouting, and pushed me, and I knocked
into Harry and Harry fell over,? her voice was coming faster and faster now
as her chest rose and fell hysterically. ?Hermione went to help Harry and I?d
dropped all the library books I had taken out and tried picking them up, but I
was crying too hard and the next thing I knew, Ron had leapt on Vincent and
was trying to punch him! And Vincent just laughed and started pounding on
him, and, Draco, I think he?s going to kill him!?

Draco swore. He certainly couldn?t fix Pansy up with Weasley if Weasley


was dead. ?They?re still fighting??

?Just down the hall.?

He nodded quickly, told her to stay in the common room, and hurried into
the hall.

Vincent was holding Weasley against the wall, pounding his fists into the
redhead?s stomach, while Granger was restraining Potter, saying rather
hysterically that everything would be fine, they just needed to find a teacher.

?Vincent!? Draco barked, coming towards them. ?Let him go.?

Vincent looked no more shocked than Weasley and his friends. His hands
reflexively tightened on Weasley?s robes. ?What??

?Let him go. Honestly, you?ve got blood all over the floor, and he?s not as
big as you are. Hardly a fair fight. Let him go.?

?Malfoy,? Granger started, looking furious. He didn?t have time for her and
shot her a glare, which she caught and wisely snapped her mouth shut. Potter
was silent, watching.

?Let Weasley go, he hasn?t done anything,? Draco said, his voice calm,
despite the annoyance in his tone.

?He was talking to?? Vincent began.


?Let him go.?

Vincent let Weasley go, who collapsed in a bloody heap. ?Fine,? he said
stiffly. ?Whatever, Malfoy.? He sauntered off to the common room, and
Draco watched him go, before sighing and turning back to Weasley.

Granger and Potter were beside him now, trying to help him sit up. Draco
suspected he had a few broken bones, or at least cracked ribs, as he was
moaning incoherently, unable to move.

Granger managed to pull him almost into a sitting position and Weasley
gasped in pain, losing consciousness.

?I?ll go get a teacher,? Granger whispered, voice unusually thick. ?He?s


bleeding.?

?No need to get a professor,? Draco said quickly. The last thing he wanted
was to lose house points over something as paltry as this. ?He?ll be fine.?
?He?s unconscious and he?s bleeding,? Potter snapped.

Draco pulled out his wand. ?I?ll fix it.?

Granger crouched protectively over him. ?You won?t touch him,? she
snarled. ?How do we know you?re not just going to kill him??

Draco smirked. ?You?ll just have to trust me.? He glanced up at Potter,


challenge in his eyes as he waited for the other boy to speak. Potter nodded
once and Draco snorted. He hadn?t been waiting for permission, merely
acknowledgement.

He knelt beside Weasley and performed the complex healing spells he?d
memorized over the summer. Weasley?s eyes opened a few moments later,
narrowed thoughtfully, and then he moaned.

?I was hit by a train, wasn?t I?? he asked.

?Sort of,? Potter replied. ?Are you alright??

?Stiff, but nothing feels broken anymore.?


?We?d better get you to the dorms,? Granger decided, grabbing his hand and
helping him up. ?You sure you don?t need to go see Madam Pomfrey??

He tossed her an annoyed look and she shrugged, helping him down the hall.
Potter turned to follow.

?Potter,? Draco called, and Harry turned around nervously.

?What??

?Don?t do anything stupid again, alright?? Draco said tiredly. ?Let me come
up with a plan first.?

Potter shrugged. ?I didn?t know Crabbe was mad.?

?I?ll handle Vincent. You just don?t do anything stupid until I?ve come up
with a plan.?

Potter smiled crookedly, startling Draco, who grimaced. ?Thanks. For


helping him. He was really hurt.?

Not used to gratitude from Potter, Draco shrugged. ?Didn?t want to lose any
house points.?

Potter looked oddly disappointed. ?Well, whatever. And? congratulations. It


was a good game today, wasn?t it??

?I lost.?

Potter shrugged. ?But only just.?

?Which doesn?t count, in Quidditch.?

?I suppose not.? Potter looked reluctant to join his friends, who were
bickering as they walked away, and Draco wondered why. He kept glancing
over his shoulder at them, turning back, and struggling to find something to
say. It was rather? cute.

Cute? It certainly was not! ?Go catch up to your little friends, Potter,? Draco
snapped. ?They?re getting away.?

?Wait. Drac?I mean, Malfoy.?


Draco raised one brow questioningly, crossing his arms over his chest.
?What??

There was an endless second as they studied each other, Draco waiting for
Potter to speak, watching as he struggled to find something to say, and it was
rather tense. There was, after all, so much that needed to be said between
them that neither even knew where to begin finding the words.

Potter sighed. ?Nothing.?

?Right then.?

They looked at each other again, Potter looking nervous, Draco rather
confused about why things were awkward (why couldn?t he just say
something snarky and walk away like usual?). Potter licked his lips and
Draco, startled, jumped a little, flushing, much to his own horror. ?Don?t do
that!?

?Do what?? Potter cried, confused.

Draco turned away, running his hand through his hair and scowling.
?Nothing. Nothing, just? nothing.? He turned and stalked away before Potter
could say another word, mumbling a quick cleaning charm his mother had
taught him, that cleaned up all the blood off the floor.

Beneath You
By Cinnamon

Chapter Three

No lovers with close arm-encircled waists


To whisper and break in upon our dreams.
And now we have it, every wish comes true,
We are alone now in a fleecy world;
Even the stars have gone, we two alone.

-A November Night, Sarah Teasdale

October sped by quickly, bringing with it crimson and gold leaves, colder
weather, and that brisk sort of chill to the air that warns of the coming
winter. Life had fallen into a sort of routine for Harry. He?d wake up, go to
the hollow, check the journal, write to Draco, eat breakfast, go to class,
check again after classes (leaving Draco enough time to reply over lunch),
check again after dinner, and then go to bed. In the journal, they?d plan how
exactly they were going to get Ron and Pansy together, commented on
classes and the weather, life in general, and occasionally got into spirited
and philosophical arguments. They never saw each other, which was strange
because the only contact they had anymore was through the journal, and the
occasional class they shared. No time to talk or to insult each other or to play
Quidditch against one another. October was a busy month for homework,
and Harry didn?t want to make Hermione and Ron any more suspicious by
sneaking off without them any more than necessary.

It was a week before the Halloween Ball when Harry put what Draco had
called ?Phase One? into effect. He waited until most of the Gryffindors were
in bed, and then joined Ron by the fire.

He knew Ron was hurt that he?d been absent so often lately, running out to
the hollow and all, and he felt a small, secret, and oddly satisfying thrill of
guilt.

He smiled. ?Hey, Ron.?

Ron glanced up and answered his smile. ?Hi. Thought you went to bed.?

Harry shook his head. ?I wanted to talk to you about the Halloween Ball.?

Wrinkling his nose, Ron scowled. ?Hermione?s dead set on going as a


bruised garden gnome. I?m glad we?re not going.?

Harry grimaced. ?That?s sort of what I wanted to talk to you about. I think
we should go.?

Ron looked horrified. ?Go? But Harry! You?ve been against it from the
start!?

?I know, I know, it?s just? I sort of need you to be there. Sort of like a favor
to me.?

The shrewd and calculating look that suddenly brightened Ron?s eyes
should have warned Harry, but the lighting was dim and he could barely see.
?A favor? What?s in it for me?? Ron asked.
Harry blinked and then asked slowly, ?What do you want to be in it for
you??

?Well, I?ll go. On the one condition that you do something as a favor to
me.?

?What is it??

?Go with Ginny as your date.?

Harry winced.

***

Early the next morning, Harry woke up suddenly, and then closed his eyes
just as quickly as a wave of dizziness washed over him. It was like that most
days, though he couldn?t for the life of him figure out why he felt so weak in
the morning. Not wanting to worry anyone, he waited for it to pass, and then
got out of bed.

However, it was taking more and more time to pass each day, and now
daylight had brought with it a nagging headache.

The sun hadn?t yet quite risen, and Harry left the castle as the first lights
tinged the eastern horizon. He?d been getting up that early every morning,
before Ron awoke, so as not to arouse suspicion. As it was, Ron, if he had
any idea of Harry?s early mornings, probably just thought it was early
morning Quidditch practice anyway.

His breath hissed in white clouds that misted up his glasses as he walked,
and Harry thought mournfully that it was an unusually cold October, which
meant it would most likely be a nasty winter.

Draco had written in the book the night before, and Harry read his words
quickly. ?Brilliant, Potter, so the plan is complete. Do your part with
Weasley tonight, and I?ll work on Pansy. She shouldn?t be that difficult; I
just can?t let her know what?s going on. It won?t be as dramatic that way,
and as you?ve said before, I can?t do anything unless it has the proper flair
of drama behind it. I?ve got to get back to the castle, it?s bloody cold out.
I?m quite honestly surprised that it hasn?t snowed again yet.?
Writing quickly, Harry replied, ?Ron?ll be there, though I had to strike a
deal with him to get him to agree just to go to the Ball. Guess what I?ve got
to do in return, Malfoy. Go with Ginny. I swear, if we?re trying to prove that
fate doesn?t exist by fixing Ron up with Pansy, he?s trying to prove that it
does with his insistence that I am Meant To Be with Ginny. The worst part is
that everyone in my house seems to agree. No offence to Ginny or anything,
but? she doesn?t interest me like that. I don?t want to hurt Ron?s feelings, of
course, so I?m stuck going with her. I didn?t want to go to this Ball at all!

?As for your comment on the weather, you?re right, it is colder than usual!
So I think we should make sure that Ron and Pansy?s costumes are warm,
so they don?t catch a cold or anything. I don?t want Ron to hate me in the
morning. Oh bloody hell, I?ve just realized! I?m going to have to wear a
costume to the bloody ball, aren?t I? One that matches Ginny?s! Last I
heard, she was planning to go as Cleopatra or something. Which is rather
odd, given that the only younger students that can go must be asked my
seventh years, and I don?t think she?s got a date yet. You know what would
be ironic? If Ron?s promised her that he?ll try fixing me up with her at the
Ball. Which, of course, seems more likely the more I think about it? I swear,
if I end up having to go to this blasted thing dressed as an Egyptian love-
slave, Malfoy, you?ll pay. There are some things I will not do, not even as a
favor to you.?

He tossed the quill, inkwell, and book back into the tree and walked quickly
back inside, shivering.

Hermione was in the common room, putting the last finishing touches on the
charm she had created to make her costume for the ball. Harry, grimacing
with reluctance, sat down nearby. He watched her work in silence for a
while before finally asking, ?What are you going as??

She glanced up. ?Why would you care? You?re not going,? she replied,
rather coldly. She had tried numerous times over the last few days to
convince he and Ron to go to the Ball.

?Well,? Harry said slowly, thoughtfully. ?I was trying to think of what I


should go as. Since I?ve decided to go and all.?

Her eyes widened. ?But Harry, you don?t have a date!?


?Who are you going with?? Harry asked with a scowl. ?Besides, I?m going
with Ginny.?

?Oh no you?re not, she?s not going,? Hermione said. ?Three people have
asked her and she turned them all down.?

?She has to go with me,? Harry said desperately, thinking that Ron wouldn?t
go if Ginny refused to be Harry?s date.

Hermione?s eyes widened and darkened, and then narrowed with


speculation as a sly grin flirted with the corners of her lips. ?Oh, Harry,? she
gushed. ?You?ve finally decided Ron and I are right and you?re meant to be
with Ginny, haven?t you??

Harry panicked. ?Actually, I??

?But the Ball is in a week, Harry, a week, and you haven?t asked her yet,
and you don?t have a costume! What are you going to be, Harry? You can?t
just go as a wizard or something cheap like that! Oh, I know, I can simply
reproduce the charm for my costume and you can go as the same thing as
me!?

?And what would that be?? he asked rather nervously.

?I told you already! A bruised garden gnome!?

?I? Hermione, I think I?d better talk to Ginny about our costumes. She might
want to? match or something,? he said desperately. ?Do you know where she
is??

?At breakfast,? she told him. ?I was just about to go. I?ll walk with you.?

She chattered the whole way about costume ideas she could help him with
and didn?t seem to mind when Harry didn?t say much in return.

The Great Hall was full already, and Harry scanned it quickly, seeing
Malfoy sitting beside Pansy and talking animatedly, and Ginny, sitting
beside Ron, reading a book as she ate some oatmeal.

?There she is, go and ask,? Hermione hissed, elbowing him sharply.
?What, now?? Harry yelped.

?Of course, now!? She put her hands on her hips. ?You?ve only got a week,
Harry, I sincerely hope that this isn?t just another repeat of the Yule Ball
thing from fourth year.?

?It?s not,? he said. ?We?ll be in costumes and you won?t be there with
Viktor. Who are you going with??

She glanced over at the Hufflepuff table and shrugged. ?Justin. Go ask
Ginny, now.?

She pushed him over so that he was standing directly behind Ginny, and
before Harry could protest again, Hermione climbed up on an empty spot on
the bench, eyes shining. She?d grabbed a glass of pumpkin juice, straight
from Neville?s hand, and a spoon, and she tapped the spoon against the glass
loudly. ?Everyone, can I have your attention please?? she called. Harry
suddenly felt the nausea returning as everyone in the Hall turned and
watched in shock. Even the professors.

?Hermione,? Harry hissed. ?Get down from there.? She ignored him and,
looking for help, he glanced around the Hall desperately. His eyes met
Malfoy?s, and he grimaced, causing Malfoy?s lopsided grin to grow even
more.

?Harry has something he would like to ask,? Hermione said extravagantly.

?I?m not proposing marriage,? Harry snapped.

She smiled angelically down at him and mouthed, ?Someday you?ll thank
me?. Which Harry doubted.

?Ask away, Harry,? she said now, and Harry glanced at Ginny, who had set
her book aside and glanced up at him, confused.

?Harry, what?s going on?? she asked, nervousness making her voice shake.

?I? bloody hell. Ginny, would you go to the Halloween Ball with me?? he
blurted, determined to get this over with so he could kill Hermione already.
There was a shocked silence in the hall that was broken by the one thing Ron
and Malfoy had ever shared: hysterical laughter. Ron was laughing at the
horrified expression on Harry?s face, and Malfoy was laughing at the entire
thing, and before anyone could even identify the strange sound of their
laughter mixing in the air, Ginny had launched herself from her chair and
into Harry?s arms, wrapping her legs around his waist and kissing him
clumsily.

?Oh, Harry,? she breathed. ?I?d love to.?

Harry frantically tried to disentangle her arms and legs from around him
while the room erupted into catcalls and applause, even from the professors.
After all, it wasn?t everyday that the Boy-Who-Lived finally discovered
what they had known all along. That he and Ginny were Meant To Be.

Malfoy was the only one still laughing, even while the Slytherins scowled
and rolled their eyes.

***

?C?mon, Harry,? Hermione begged. ?You?ve got to talk to me again! I was


doing you a favour!?

?We?ve known all along that you and Gin would eventually get together. I
guess Hermione just got a little carried away,? Ron asked with a grin.

Harry didn?t speak, he just glowered into the potion he?d been preparing.
Potions was never so torturous as when he was forced to listen to snickering
Slytherins whispering and pointing at him, and Hermione begging for
forgiveness.

Hermione poked him in the ribs just as he had been trying to pour his
mixture of hoarken juice into the draught of Brantly serum. They were
making Chapten Potion, the only known cure for the bite of a rabid phoenix.
Hermione?s touch made him jerk and spill a bit on the table. ?Hermione,? he
hissed. ?Do-not-touch-me.?

She looked hurt. ?You can?t hate me forever. Just think of the stories this
will make for your wedding.?
?My wedding?? he snapped, slamming the hoarken juice onto the table. ?My
wedding? What wedding, Hermione? What fucking wedding??

She paled horribly and had started shaking. ?Harry, I only??

?Calm down, Harry,? Ron said, glancing at Snape, who, strangely enough,
was not hovering over their shoulder waiting to take more house points from
them. ?Besides, it wasn?t that bad. Mum will think it was terribly romantic,
when I tell her about it. And Ginny?s thrilled.?

Harry sucked in a deep, calming breath through his teeth. He was about to
snap something in reply, when Crabbe called from the back of the room,
?Harry and Weasley?s sister, sitting in a tree.? He snickered, as did Goyle.

Harry whipped around, fury making him relish the idea of a duel. ?Excuse
me?? he replied, voice tight with anger. ?Were you jealous, Crabbe? I mean,
who are you taking to the Ball? Didn?t Pansy laugh in your face when you
asked her? That?s what I heard.?

Pansy, who?d been sitting on the table next to them with Millicent and
Blaise, gasped a little. Before Crabbe, whose face was heating up
remarkably, could bellow a reply, Snape roared, ?Detention, Potter, for
provoking a classmate!?

Harry?s mouth fell open in shock, and there was an instant protest from all
the Gryffindors. ?Any whining,? Snape growled, ?And you?ll all be joining
him.? Uneasy, bitter silence fell, and Snape nodded. ?Back to work then.?

***

Draco couldn?t help it. For the rest of his morning classes, every time he
pictured Potter?s face in the Great Hall, alternating between shades of puce
and porcelain, he?d snicker. It was classic, really, especially considering he
seemed to be the only one in the entire school who knew how Harry really
felt about the insipid Weasley girl. And now, rather than prove that fate
didn?t exist, he?d just proved that it did.

Quite amusing really, despite the very strange feelings of what could only be
described as pity deep in his stomach. Potter had looked wretched. Pity and
something else that Draco had never felt before and couldn?t even begin to
name, though sometimes, when he caught himself off guard, he thought it
might be jealousy. Over what, he could not even begin to guess.

After Herbology, he made his way to the hollow, still laughing under his
breath. He read Potter?s last note and nearly dropped the book in shock, his
eyes going wide. Harry Potter showing up dressed as an Egyptian love-
slave? now that was an image that was going to keep him up, late into the
night.

He cleared his throat delicately, forced the mental pictures away, and
replied, wisely not mentioning the love-slave thing.

? Are you trying to get yourself killed? First with that deal with Weasley
nearly getting himself beaten to death by Crabbe, and now this. Honestly,
you rely too heavily on my powers of persuasion to save you, you know. I
can?t accomplish miracles if you persist on provoking him this way! I can
only hope that detention shall accomplish what I cannot, and instill in you a
bit of common sense. In other news? Lovely display in the Hall. Honestly,
you and Weasley are made for each other. This only proves it? and I, of
course, find it quite amusing.?

***

Halloween, it had been explained to Harry, was fundamentally different to


wizards as opposed to Muggles, though the idea was the same. Instead of
dressing up in a costume, wizards enchanted their ordinary clothes into a
costume, which, if elaborate enough, could change the wizard into anything
imaginable. The Ball was going to turn out to be a random collection of
mismatched things rather than just a group of people in costume. The other
difference was the charms were made to disappear at midnight, in deference
to the legend that had begun the entire thing. In Muggle Culture, the
Cinderella legend had become a simple fairy tale. In Wizarding Culture, it
inspired the celebrations undertaken to mark Samhain, the night when the
dead walked closer to the living. After all, Halloween ended at midnight and
the world of the dead slipped back into the shadows, and the disguises,
which in ancient times had been used to hide the mortal soul from any evil
being seeking to claim them, were no longer necessary. In more
contemporary Wizard Culture, however, the Midnight Unveiling was used to
add drama to the entire affair.
After Hermione had explained the entire thing to Harry, adding that only the
Seventh Years were given permission to go to a Halloween Ball unless they
asked a younger student and that it would last until midnight, Harry, feeling
rather overwhelmed, had asked, ?How do you know all of this??

She smiled in a rather smug fashion and replied, ?Honestly, Harry, don?t
you read??

?Nothing as boring as all of that!? he had cried, and Ron smirked.

The night of the Halloween Ball was crisp, cold, and windy, and, after the
traditional feast, the younger students were herded off to bed while the
professors turned the Great Hall into a ballroom and the Seventh Years cast
their costume charms.

Draco had asked Pansy to be his date, only because it made the Plan easier
to put into effect and because, since she had broken up with Crabbe and
started moping over a Gryffindor, she had become somewhat of an outcast,
and no one else would ask her. The night of the ball, he quickly cast his
costume charm and waited in the Slytherin common room for Pansy to come
down.

While waiting, he checked his reflection in the mirror in the corner one last
time, snickering softly to himself. He smoothed the hair off his forehead so
his ?scar? would be visible.

Draco Malfoy had opted to go to the Halloween Ball as Harry Potter.

Blaise came downstairs next, dressed as his favourite Quidditch player, and
he stopped, startled, when he saw Draco. Then he started to laugh. ?Harry
Potter?? he cried. ?You?re going as Potter??

Draco shrugged easily. ?Why not? He?s famous.?

?Because no one will know who you really are!?

?That?s the point. It?s Halloween.?

Pansy, dressed as the goddess Aphrodite, drifted into the room, and Draco
snickered. ?Goddess of Love?? he asked, still laughing.
Pansy, whose hair had been transformed to long, silken golden blonde,
whose skin was now milky and radiant, and whose eyes were crystalline
blue, rested her hands on her hips and scowled, though amusement glittered
in her eyes. ?And why not?? she asked, running her eyes over him with wry
humour. ?Harry Potter? Honestly, Draco??

Smiling gratefully at her, Draco stopped laughing. He hadn?t wanted to try


explaining his costume to Blaise and used her presence as an excuse to avoid
it. ?C?mon, we?re already late, don?t want to be any later,? he said, leading
the way out of the common room. They, of course, would never arrive at the
Ball, but Pansy didn?t know that.

Ten minutes later, Pansy looked around in confusion. ?Draco, this isn?t the
way to the Great Hall.?

He smiled at her. ?I know, but I wanted to show you something.?

She looked a little nervous. ?This isn?t some set up snogging session or
anything, is it? Because, Draco, I thought I told you about Ron??

He grinned. ?You did.?

?Then what??

?Trust me!?

?Draco.?

He laughed, tugging her hand around a corner. He had led her deeper into
the dungeons, and before she could complain again, he pushed open the
squeaky door that led to the back stairs. Hardly anyone knew that there was
another way out of the deepest dungeons, and the stairs were filthy. Still, it
was the easiest way to get where he needed to go.

?Stairs? Where are we?? she asked, biting her lip.

?Shh.?

It took ten more minutes of walking and six more staircases before they?d
arrived at the top of the southernmost tower, which was mainly used for
storage. Draco told her to close her eyes and led her into the highest room,
which was small, drafty, and dusty. Then, without telling her to open them,
without another word, he slipped outside the room and locked it behind him,
leaving the key in the doorknob.

?Draco?? he heard her call, hesitantly.

Smirking, he moved silently down the short hall, climbed into the rafters,
and waited.

It didn?t take long.

***

?Harry? Harry, honestly, shouldn?t you be at the Ball with Ginny??

Harry shot Ron an irritated look. ?I told her I was getting drinks,? he said.
?I?ve got to show you something.?

Ron glanced about skeptically. ?Up in this old tower? Does this have
anything to do with You-Know-Who??

?Voldemort? No?err? yes?? Harry shrugged. ?You?ll see. Just come on. The
faster we get there, the faster we can get back.?

?Well, that?s fine, it?s just? these boots have heels on them!?

?Then you shouldn?t have dressed as Robin Hood for Halloween, Ron! And
since when does Robin wear heels anyway? We?re nearly there.?

Harry glanced in the dust on the floor carefully. There were two sets of
footprints there, leading up to the door, and only one walking away, and he
sighed in relief, fighting the urge to look up.

?Shit,? he mumbled. ?Ron, I?ve got to get something from the common
room.?

?The common room? Harry, it?ll take you twenty minutes at least to get all
the way back here, let?s just forget this, alright??

?No, no,? Harry said quickly. ?Stay right here, I?ll be back, promise. Err,
Ron, do you have your wand with you??
Ron?s face flushed. ?Erm, no. My, umm, trousers were too tight, and my
shirt has no sleeves, so I left it on my bed.?

?Good. I mean, umm, I?ll be back.?

Harry hurried away and Ron watched him go, looking skeptical. He sighed,
glancing around at the filthy, dirty hallway. ?Bloody hell, Harry,? he
mumbled to himself. ?This is mad.?

There was a small sound up ahead and he jumped. ?Hello? Anyone there??

A small silence, and then, hopefully, ?Hello??

Ron followed the voice, finding the locked door. He turned the key and
pushed it open. ?Hello? I?oh?? he lost his breath at the vision that greeted
him. Golden blonde hair, silk dress that spilled in soft folds to the floor, and
blue eyes shimmering with tears.

Ron stepped into the room, and didn?t even notice when the door clicked
shut behind him.

The girl glanced up, swallowing shakily. ?What?who are you??

?Are you alright??

She stood up, pushing her hair out of her face. ?I? I couldn?t get the door
open.?

Ron?s eyes widened and he spun around, but the door was locked. Swearing
softly to himself, he turned back to her. ?It?s locked.?

?You let it lock??

He scowled. ?Yeah, and on purpose too. How long have you been locked up
here??

?About five minutes. I? I was scared,? she admitted with a shrug.

Ron sighed, his irritation at her slipping away. After all, she was so pretty
and feminine looking, he couldn?t stay annoyed at her for long. She was a
damsel in distress, after all. So was he. Well, not a damsel, he amended
quickly. But certainly in distress.
Ron couldn?t help but notice how pretty she was, even if it was probably a
costume and he didn?t know who she really was. After all, for all he knew,
she could be a ghost. He sat beside her on the dusty windowsill and touched
her arm, just to be sure. She felt solid and warm, and he smiled with relief.

?You?re not a Veela, are you?? he asked suddenly.

She glanced at him out of the corner of her eye and laughed tearfully. ?No.?

?Oh. Oh. Good then. We shouldn?t be locked here long, should we? My
friend?ll come back in a few minutes.?

Her face brightened. ?Really? I was afraid I?d be locked up here forever!?

He touched her hand reassuringly. ?No. Besides, I can break the door down
if I have to. So either way, it?ll be alright.?

She smiled at him and Ron felt a strange tightening in his stomach. After all,
she was gorgeous.

He glanced away nervously, scuffing his foot in the dirt on the floor, and
wished frantically that Harry would hurry. Almost as frantically as he was
wishing that Harry never came back. After all, the girl beside him smelled so
sweetly, some strange, exotic mixture of flowers and spice that he?d never
smelt before, and he was content just to sit there and breathe it in.

The silence was broken by her soft breathing and the scuffing of his foot on
the floor.

***

Harry had left Ron, ducked around the corner, and waited until Ron had
followed the sounds of Pansy crying into the room at the end of the hall. He
watched Malfoy drop down from the rafters, dash over to the door, and
relock it. Then he stepped back into the hall, smiling widely.

?Brilliant,? he whispered. ?It worked.?

?Did you ever doubt it? Besides, it hasn?t worked until they actually manage
to fall desperately and madly in love.?
Harry leaned against the wall, sliding until he was sitting on the floor. He
was oddly out of breath and a little dizzy and wanted Malfoy to mistake it
for excitement. After all, if he wouldn?t tell his best friends that he was sick,
he certainly wasn?t going to let Malfoy know.

Malfoy sat across from him, and they smirked at each other when they heard
Ron trying frantically to open the door. Harry leaned his head back against
the wall and tried to take a deep breath. Why was he feeling so weak? The
sickness, which had begun only in the mornings, had now begun to strike at
night as well, and he was getting worried.

The room was eerily silent and, just as Harry was about to make a comment,
a sudden, irritating voice rang out. ?Slytherin and Gryffindor, sitting in a
tree, K-I-S-S-I-N-G?? It was Peeves, and Harry jumped up with a yelp.

Malfoy stood as well. ?Shut it, Peeves!? he shouted, and both Pansy and Ron
started screaming for help inside the locked room. Peeves kept singing, and
Malfoy ran a hand through his hair, rolling his eyes in frustration. ?C?mon,?
he said finally, grabbing Harry?s wrist and tugging. They took off running
together, away from the locked room and down the stairs, Peeves tailing
them and singing his irritating songs. The ghost finally grew bored with
them and disappeared, but not before Harry was feeling twice as exhausted
and had gray spots swimming in front of his eyes.

They had stopped running outside the library, and Harry laughed
breathlessly as he leaned against the wall. Malfoy grinned. ?So if they don?t
show up at breakfast tomorrow, we?ll have to go let them out.?

Harry nodded, pushing away from the wall. He swayed dizzily and hoped
Malfoy didn?t notice. ?Yes. But I?m exhausted, I think I?ll go to bed.?

Malfoy shot him a surprised glance and then shrugged. ?Fine,? he said. ?I
don?t particularly enjoy your company either.? He sounded defensive and,
for a moment, Harry was confused. Then he realized that Malfoy thought he
was leaving because he didn?t want to be around him. And he also,
belatedly, noticed something else.

?Malfoy?. Malfoy, you look like me.?

Malfoy ran his eyes over Harry sneeringly. ?And you, Potter, look like a
prat. What are you supposed to be, anyway??
?I?m King Arthur,? Harry replied stiffly.

Malfoy laughed. ?Oh, I see. And Weasley?s Guinevere??

Harry, who was wearing tight black trousers and a lush, white silk shirt with
golden braided rim and a large, garish crown set with fake jewels, nodded.
?Of course,? he said blandly. He felt as though he was going to collapse, and
he hid the weakness behind a yawn.

Malfoy looked slightly concerned, but hid it admirably behind a smirk. ?See
you later then, Potter,? he drawled, walking away quickly. He glanced once
before he turned the corner, his eyes searching Harry?s face in silence and
then he was gone.

Harry turned and made his way to Gryffindor Tower.

***

Shouting from the hall sent both Ron and the blonde girl hurrying to the
door, pounding on it and calling for help. When the voices had faded,
however, an uneasy silence fell and the girl started to cry.

?Hey,? Ron said helplessly. ?It?s not that bad. I?ll try to break through the
door.?

He spent nearly twenty minutes battering himself against it before giving up,
winded and bruised. He sat beside her on the floor and sighed.

?Sorry,? she mumbled. ?I don?t usually cry so much. I?ve just had a really
bad week and now the whole Halloween Ball is ruined.?

?This isn?t so bad,? Ron said with a shrug. ?I mean, locked up in a tower
with Robin Hood and all.?

She smirked. ?That?s who you?re supposed to be? Robin Hood? I thought
you were a gay elf or something.?

Ron scowled. ?Of course I?m Robin Hood! And what are you supposed to
be??

?Aphrodite,? she replied curtly, though she was smiling.


?Alright then, Aphrodite,? Ron said with a nod, rolling his eyes. ?Robin
Hood and Aphrodite, locked in a tower. Classic. Want to play Hangwizard??

She shrugged indifferently and they spent a few hours sketching hanging
posts and word puzzles in the dust, still waiting for Harry to return and
rescue them. It was nearing eleven when, crouched in the dirt and peering at
her latest word puzzle, Ron suddenly realized how close they had gotten.
She was on her hands and knees, studying her puzzle with a challenging
smirk, dirt on her hands and smudged on her perfect face. Ron was beside
her, close enough to feel the heat of her side on his arm every time she
breathed. He turned his head towards her and swallowed hard, because she
was such a small distance away.

?Do you know it?? she asked, oblivious to his stare.

?What?? he breathed.

She turned her head and their noses nearly bumped. Startled, she backed
away quickly, still on her hands and knees. ?The puzzle. Do you know what
it is??

He forced himself to glance at the letters in the dirt. ?Uhm. Professor


Snape??

She snorted. ?It was too easy. I?m running out of good ones. We?ve got to
get out of here, before I go mad.?

Ron nodded, because being stuck in a tiny room with her was proving quite
maddening itself. It wasn?t just her perfect face, because he knew that
wasn?t real (or he?d have noticed it years before). It was the way she
smelled like flowers (he wasn?t informed enough to guess which type, but
was proud enough at himself that he?d identified that they were flowers),
and the way her nose wrinkled when she thought really hard, the smudge of
dirt on her cheekbone.

?Let?s leave then,? he said, grabbing her hand and helping her up.

She rolled her eyes. ?We can?t just leave or we would have already. The
door?s locked.?
?There?s still the window.? He walked over and inspected it in silence. It
was cold and windy outside, and he grimaced. It would make for tough
climbing, but if they could make it to the roof of the tower, he knew that
there was a high wall they could then lower themselves down onto, which
would take them to windows leading to the Gryffindor common room.

?The window? You?re crazy, we can?t go out there! We?ll fall!?

He shrugged. ?You wanted out, this is the only way. I?ll help you, I?ve
climbed out plenty of windows, what with my brothers and their mad
adventures. It won?t be hard. Besides, the top of the tower tapers up towards
a point, so it won?t be straight up. Then, we?ll circle around to the other side
where a wall juts out, and drop onto it. Follow that straight to Gryffindor
Tower.?

She grimaced. ?Gryffindor Tower??

He shrugged. ?Yeah.?

?And you?re sure we won?t fall??

He took her hand and squeezed reassuringly. He liked playing the hero,
almost felt like Harry must, always saving people?s lives. It
was?empowering.

?Trust me,? he said.

She scoffed, even as she let him tug her over to the window. ?Anything for
you, Robin,? she mumbled sarcastically.

***

Draco had fully intended to go to the Ball and spend the rest of the night
drinking the punch that was surely spiked by now and flirting with various
pretty girls. Maybe Janie Channings, the cute Hufflepuff girl. Maybe.

He never made it, however. He hadn?t even made it to the Great Hall when a
slightly slurred, soft voice called out, ?Harry.?

He didn?t pause, and the voice came again. ?Harry. Harry!?


Finally, he glanced over his shoulder, confused. A chunk of black hair
brushed his cheek and with a jolt, he remembered his costume

Ginny Weasley was hurrying down the hall towards him. ?Harry!? she cried,
grabbing his arm for support as she nearly lost her balance. Her eyes were
shining with tears. ?I waited and waited, Harry, but you never came back!?

For a moment, a very slight moment, Draco considered confessing who he


really was. It wasn?t a very long moment, however, because Draco is a
Slytherin, and the prospect of taking advantage of this was too good to
ignore. ?Sorry,? he said smoothly, with what, had he looked like himself,
would have been a knee-weakening smile. He wasn?t sure how it looked on
Potter?s face, however. ?I was just coming back now.?

?Harry, you changed out of your costume!? she said now, stepping back and
looking at him in confusion.

?I did,? Draco replied blandly. ?The trousers were so tight. Constricting.


You know what I mean.?

Her eyes went huge and slid down his body, nearly reaching his collarbone
before snapping back up to his face. Draco snickered; he knew she wouldn?t
actually have the guts to glance all the way down at exactly what he had
been implying was being constricted. ?I?m sure I don?t,? she said breathily,
her face turning crimson. Draco nearly gagged. She was so blatantly
innocent, it was disgusting.

He brushed his knuckles along her cheekbone and she shivered, eyes glazing
over. ?Harry,? she breathed. ?You were being weird all night. I was
worried? that you were bored.?

Draco touched her lips and then her hair, finding perverse pleasure in the
fear in her eyes. It was too easy. He nudged her gently, guiding her back
until she was pressed against the wall, his fingers trailing down her neck.
?Ginny,? he whispered, letting his breath tickle the hairs on the side of her
neck. ?How could I ever be bored with you around?? A thousand and one
ways, he was sure. But still, it was like a game. A far too easy game, but a
game all the same.

?Harry, what are you doing?? she asked, as his fingers stroked her shoulders,
slipping the straps of her gown off them.
?Nothing,? he said, bending to kiss her shoulder. ?Why? Don?t you like it??

?It feels strange. I?Oh. Did you just? Harry, you just bit me!?

Draco laughed against the skin of her neck, lifted his head, and kissed her
hungrily. He didn?t much like kissing girls as inexperienced as she was, but
he did enjoy playing with the fragile, innocent mind of someone who was
very obviously a virgin, who would attempt to scratch his eyes out if she
knew who he really was. She was so shocked that she didn?t kiss him back
at first, but soon enough, she was returning the kiss awkwardly, her hands
shaking and clinging to his shoulders.

?Harry,? she mumbled suddenly, turning her head to the side.

?Aww, c?mon, love,? Draco whispered coaxingly, kissing her neck. ?I


thought you loved me.?

?I?can?t. Harry, I don?t know?how. To kiss you. I?ve never?I?? she trailed
off, licking her lips.

Draco rolled his eyes and would have snickered, except he knew that the real
Harry never would have. So instead, he offered magnanimously, ?Let me
teach you.?

She swallowed nervously. ?Alright.?

?Just do exactly what I do,? Draco said, tilting her face with one hand.
?Close your eyes.?

She closed her eyes and Draco kissed her. He pulled her lower lip into his
mouth, licking it and nibbling on it alternately, and then pulled back the
tiniest bit. ?Now you.?

She imitated him, and then Draco kissed her again, differently. Again, she
did the same to him, slipping her tongue into his mouth, moving it in an
exact imitation of his. He kissed her again and again and with each kiss, she
got better and more confident, and, only minutes later, it had stopped being a
lesson and started being something else entirely. It was strangely erotic,
kissing someone you should not be kissing who would have killed you had
she known who you were. Even more erotic, the way she?d do anything to
him that he did to her.
Draco was breathing heavily, his hands running over her back, kissing her
deeply, when suddenly her hands fisted against his chest and she shoved him
away, hard.

Disoriented for a minute, Draco ran a hand through his hair, scowling.
?What??

Her eyes were wide, panicky. ?Harry, I? I think I?m going to?? she swayed
unsteadily.

Draco growled, suddenly realizing that her pale face and flushed cheeks,
glazed over eyes, and slight inability to stand on her own most likely had
nothing to do with him. ?You?re drunk.?

She stiffened. ?I am not! I don?t drink! Just punch.?

?Punch. Lovely.? He rolled his eyes and she lurched suddenly, falling to her
knees and vomiting on the floor.

?I?m dying,? she moaned.

Draco grabbed her arm and hauled her to her feet. ?You?re not. The punch
was spiked, Weasley.?

She moaned wordlessly.

?Go to bed,? he ordered, shoving her in the direction of her dorms.

She stumbled and caught herself on the wall, sliding until she was sitting on
the floor. ?I can?t,? she said helplessly. ?I can?t walk.?

?Bloody hell.? It was one thing to take advantage of a perfectly sober Ginny,
quite another when she was drunk. Potter would never forgive him if he let
anything happen to her. Without another word, he hauled her roughly to her
feet, slid one arm under her knees, the other behind her back, and lifted her
up, carrying her easily down the hall. After all, she had the body of a little
girl and hardly weighed anything more than a child. She directed him to the
Fat Lady?s portrait.

The Fat Lady beamed when she saw them. ?Lovely! I always knew you two
would look marvelous together!? she said approvingly.
?Just open the door,? Draco growled. Being Harry Potter was certainly
getting old fast.

The portrait swung open slowly and, as Draco stepped through it, he smiled.
After all, Potter sure owed him a lot. He?d just done the git two favors. Took
care of Weasley, kept her out of trouble while she was drunk? and taught his
future wife how to kiss.

***

By the time Harry had made it back to his dorm, the weakness had become a
raging headache. There was a chest of potions kept near the door, filled with
potions to relieve pain, flu, cold, nausea, and insomnia. Harry dug through it,
searching for a headache potion, but the last bottle only had a few drops left.
Desperate, he dug even deeper, finally coming up with a flask that wasn?t
labeled. He pulled off the stopper and sniffed delicately. It was blackberry
brandy, which Seamus had taken to brewing in their dorm room in fifth year,
and, if Harry assumed correctly, this bottle was one of the many Fred and
George had stolen and stashed for themselves.

?Well,? he mumbled out loud, doubtfully. ?It could work.?

He took a hesitant swallow and it wasn?t too bad. It took the edge off the
throbbing in his head and, content, Harry curled up in an armchair in front of
the fire, flask held tightly in his grasp. The fire in the hearth had died down
to smoldering embers, and Harry watched them in silence, drinking more
and more brandy, until the weak alcohol had given him a very slight buzz.
His head still ached, but it was a slight improvement.

The sound of the portrait swinging open made him jump out of his chair,
hiding the brandy guiltily behind his back. He nearly dropped it when he
saw himself stepping into the common room, Ginny limp in his arms.

?What did you do to her?? he cried. ?Malfoy, if you hurt her??

?Calm down,? Draco replied, rolling his eyes. It was disconcerting to see
Draco?s sneer and how easily it twisted Harry?s own features, which Draco
still wore. ?She?s just drunk.?
He rolled her out of his arms and onto a chair, grimacing. ?Ginny?s drunk??
Harry sighed. ?How did that happen? oh shit. I just left her by the punch
table and never went back!?

Draco snickered. ?Well, judging by how drunk she is, she stood there
waiting for a very long time.?

?I better put her in her own bed before Ron finds her like this.? Harry put the
brandy flask down and picked Ginny up. She moaned but did not wake, and
Harry was half way up the stairs before Draco spoke.

?What on earth were you drinking??

?Brandy.?

Harry watched Draco take a cautious sip of the blackberry brandy and
grimace. ?It?s nasty.?

?Seamus made it,? he replied stiffly. ?It?s alright.?

?You go put Weasley to bed, Potter,? Draco called, smirking. ?I?ll get you
something real to drink.?

A little nervous, Harry did as he?d been told, carrying Ginny to her room.
He was a bit hesitant to just leave Draco alone in his common room as well,
and hurried back. Draco was holding a bottle of Firewhiskey when he
returned.

?This is way classier,? he said, holding up the bottle. ?Very expensive too,
and aged to perfection.?

Harry picked up the brandy. ?This was aged to perfection,? he argued. ?It?s
been at the bottom of the Medical Potions chest for two years!?

Draco grimaced. ?Lovely. Here.? He handed Harry the bottle and turned to
go.

?Wait!? Harry cried. ?You?re leaving??


?Well, I figured, should any of your housemates find me here, despite the
fact that I look like you, they wouldn?t be impressed. It wouldn?t be too
hard to find out who I really was.?

?And since when do the Gryffindors intimidate you?? Harry challenged.

?I wasn?t intimidated,? Draco said stiffly. ?It wouldn?t be me they?d hate


for it, it would be you.?

?But you can?t just leave me your super expensive whiskey and go away! I
want you to stay.? Harry was already a little drunk, and he thought for a
moment before grinning. ?Hold this, I?ll be right back.? He tossed the
whiskey to Draco and dashed back up the stairs.

Draco caught the bottle easily, and he was very glad that he did. After all, it
was his last bottle, and it cost nearly as much as his broomstick did.

Harry ran back into the common room, clutching his invisibility cloak.
?When someone comes in, I?ll just toss this over you,? he said brightly.
?They won?t see you.?

Draco shook his head slowly, incredulously, but allowed Harry to grab his
arm and tugged him back to the armchairs around the fire. ?I had a
headache,? Harry was saying. ?The brandy made it hurt less.?

Harry sat in an armchair and Draco sat in the one beside him, trying not to
think about how strange it was to be sitting in the Gryffindor common room,
drinking Firewhiskey with Harry Potter. He opened the bottle, took out a
tumbler and a shot class, and poured himself a drink. He swallowed it
quickly and it burned all the way down in a very satisfying way. He passed
another tumbler to Harry, who choked and gagged at his first taste of it.

?It hurts!?

?Take some into your mouth and hold it on your tongue,? Draco suggested.
?Let it slide down your throat, it doesn?t hurt that much.?

Harry did as he was told and the burn was slightly less painful. When it hit
his stomach, it burned for a moment and then the ache faded into a soft sort
of glowing warmth. He smiled. ?Nice.?
?Have you ever had whiskey before??

?No.?

?Lovely. How much of that brandy did you have??

?Half a bottle.?

Draco laughed and took another long swallow. It was even stranger, sitting
beside an intoxicated Harry Potter in his common room.

A few hours later, most of the bottle gone, both he and Harry were very,
very drunk. Draco, when he became drunk, became chatty and bright, almost
nice, and Harry, as he soon discovered, became?well?giggly.

They were both in such good moods, a direct effect of the whiskey, that it
occurred to Harry that a lovely way to spend the evening would be building
a tent against the wall of the common room with his invisibility cloak, and
Draco had brightly agreed. With much giggling and chatting, they had soon
used someone?s Cleansweep to prop the cloak up, having decided that
Harry?s Firebolt would be sacrilegious, and Harry had brought down his
pillows and blankets, tossing them onto the floor under the cloak.

Crawling under the tent, and effectively turning invisible, they curled up in
the blankets, Draco still chatting on and on about something Harry wasn?t
listening to, and Harry giggling uncontrollably.

?Now no one will ever find us,? he whispered.

Draco grinned. ?We could live under here forever.?

Harry returned his grin, and took another drink of whiskey. ?I?ve got
chocolate frogs,? he remembered suddenly, pulling them out. He opened a
box and the frog leapt out, escaping out of the tent, and Harry watched it hop
across the common room, laughing helplessly. ?It escaped,? he giggled.

There wasn?t much room under the cloak, but it didn?t really matter all that
much because the whiskey had taken away most of their defenses and they
didn?t mind being close enough to feel each other breathe. All it meant was
that they didn?t have to pass the whiskey bottle all that far.
***

?This is insane.?

Ron grinned at her, clinging to the shingles on the roof of the tower. ?It?s
not so bad,? he shouted over the roaring wind, even though the cold breeze
was going up his green tunic. His trousers (or ?tights?, as he was reluctant to
call them) were hardly any protection from the wind.

He?d climbed high enough for his arm to circle around the tip of the tower,
and he reached down. She grabbed his hand and he pulled her up the rest of
the way. ?Now we?ll circle around and slide down. You go first so I can
lower you and you won?t slip.?

She nodded and, pushing blonde hair out of her face, crawled over him, her
hands twisting in his tunic so as not to slip. Ron yelped a little as she
wiggled over him. He?d expected her to go the other way, not over top of
him.

She got to the other side and started crawling carefully around the tower, and
Ron followed, watching her closely to make sure she didn?t slip. Finally, she
was above the wall that jutted out, and Ron shouted, ?Take my hand and
then start sliding down. I?ll hold you so you don?t slip off, and when you get
down to the edge, I?ll follow you down and then give me your other hand
and I?ll lower you onto the wall. Don?t worry, I?ve done this millions of
times!? He?d never done it before, but felt telling her that would be
counterproductive.

It was nearly midnight.

She nodded and grabbed his hand in a death grip. ?Now?s not a good time to
tell you I?m scared of heights, is it?? she asked nervously.

Ron smiled very gently. ?Trust me,? he said again.

?I don?t even know who you are.?

?Robin Hood, remember? I never let girls fall off towers.?

She grinned and rolled her eyes and then started slowly slipping down the
tower roof. Ron swallowed nervously, holding her hand tightly and keeping
his own balance by digging his shoes into the shingles. It was very awkward
and he kept nearly sliding down after her, but finally, she?d made it to the
edge and he slipped down after her.

She slipped her other hand into his and he turned around so that he was
laying on his belly, his head and shoulders hanging over the edge of the roof.
?Lower yourself over the edge,? he commanded, and she shot him an
incredulous stare. Rather than argue, however, she did as he?d said.

She was almost over the edge when her feet slipped and, with a shriek, she
swung out, the sudden jerk nearly causing her hands to slip from Ron?s. He
swore and tightened his grip. ?I?ll lower you, calm down, you?re fine,? he
shouted, and she closed her eyes and nodded, looking terrified.

Ron carefully lowered her and when her feet touched the wall, she jerked her
hands from his and collapsed gratefully.

?Now for me,? Ron whispered to himself, rather nervously.

He turned around, dug his nails into the shingles, and slid off the edge,
clinging tightly. He glanced over his shoulders, made sure he was directly
above the wall, and then dropped, falling for a few terrifying seconds before
crashing into the wall with a yelp.

Things went momentarily black and, when he opened his eyes, she was
crouched over him, shaking him. ?Oh,? she gasped when he opened his eyes.
?You?re alive. I was worried??

He grimaced. ?I think I?m alright. It was just a jolt is all. C?mon, let?s get
inside Gryffindor Tower.?

She pulled him to his feet and helped him limp along the wall.

He pushed the window open and slid in first, turning and pulling her
through.

?Alright?? he asked her in a hushed voice. It seemed, suddenly, too quiet.

?Yeah. Th-thanks. Are you???

He grimaced. ?My muscles hurt. Nearly all of them.?


?Sit down,? she said, guiding him to sit on the floor near the fire. ?Nice
common room??

He nodded. ?You?re not Gryffindor.?

?And you are.?

They didn?t meet each other?s eyes for a moment, now that they were free
of the tower, their identities somehow becoming important. After all, in the
other tower, it had sort of been another world.

She sat on the floor next to him, glancing at him nervously. ?Who??

Ron grimaced. ?It doesn?t matter.?

She glanced at him. ?What? Why??

He shrugged. ?Because. I honestly don?t care.?

She drew back, stung. ?You don?t care? Fine. I don?t care either.?

?That?s not what I meant!?

?What did you mean?? She got to her feet angrily.

He stood up as well. ?I meant that it doesn?t matter who you are because??

?I like someone else anyway, and this isn?t anything but stupid gratitude for
getting me out of that blasted tower and??

?? No matter what house you come from or who you are??

?? I like someone else. Do you even care? You said you don?t care, but
maybe you do. Maybe. It?s??

??I want to kiss you anyway.? He kissed her then, suddenly, cutting her off
mid-shout.

For a second, after his lips crashed against hers, everything seemed to freeze
and neither of them dared to breathe as he waited to see what she would do
and she frantically tried to decide between running frantically and as fast as
she could, and?kissing him back. With a weak little sound in the back of her
throat, she slipped her hands up and around his neck, knocking off the
ridiculous Robin Hood feathered hat that had miraculously stayed on his
head throughout their climb. She opened her mouth against his and kissed
him wildly, and Ron was only too happy to return the kiss with the same
degree of hunger.

His hands slipped to her waist and pulled her closer, her silky costume
slipping almost wetly against his palms.

She pulled away the tiniest bit, panting. ?I can?t,? she said finally, gravely.
?You?re not ??

Midnight struck and their charmed costumes melted away. Silk became
school robes, hose became regular trousers.

?Ron,? she finished weakly, staring at him in shock.

?Pansy?? Ron cried.

She pushed him away violently and burst into tears. Before Ron could get
over the shock, she?d slammed out of the common room and disappeared.

***

The sound of the window sliding open caused both Harry and Draco, who
had lain down, growing sleepy, to sit upright. ?Someone?s coming in the
window,? Draco hissed.

It was Ron, followed quickly by Pansy. ?They escaped!? Harry cried, and
Draco elbowed him sharply.

?Shh!?

They watched together in silence as Ron and Pansy argued and then kissed.

While they were kissing, wide-eyed, Harry turned to glance at Draco,


startled to find him so close, close enough that they nearly bumped noses.
For an instant, they froze that way, Harry oddly entranced to be so close to
someone who looked exactly like him. Almost against his will, he reached
up and traced the mirror image of his scar on Draco?s forehead.
His fingers were still touching it when midnight struck and it melted away,
as did his own dark hair, his eyes. Instead, Draco?s gray eyes met his,
looking startled.

Harry let his hand fall away and opened his mouth to say something, but the
slamming of the portrait interrupted him.

Draco grimaced. ?That didn?t go well.?

Harry started to crawl out of the tent, but Draco held him back, and Ron,
looking shocked, slowly made his way upstairs. ?Don?t go,? Draco
whispered. ?Stay with me.?

Letting himself slowly sink back into the nest of blankets, Harry couldn?t
quite meet Draco?s eyes. He wasn?t feeling quite so giddy any longer, and it
had something to do with the disconcerting reminder that he wasn?t sitting
here beside himself, he was sitting here with Draco.

?Alright,? he replied, and it was silent for a while. The alcohol was now
making Harry very tired, and he leaned against the wall, his arm pressed
against Draco. ?Sleepy,? he yawned.

Draco smiled at him and nodded. He wasn?t at all surprised when Harry?s
head dropped down to rest on his shoulder, because whiskey always seemed
to make everything seem like a good idea at the time. Instead of jerking
away, he patted Harry?s head and shifted him so that his head was on his lap
instead, which would be more comfortable. With a tiny, contented sound
like a cat, Harry snuggled closer and fell asleep.

Draco, hand resting on Harry?s shoulder, soon fell asleep as well.

Chapter Four

The night is darkening round me,


The wild winds coldly blow ;
But a tyrant spell has bound me,
And I cannot, cannot go.
The giant trees are bending
Their bare boughs weighed with snow ;
The storm is fast descending,
And yet I cannot go.
Clouds beyond clouds above me,
Wastes beyond wastes below ;
But nothing drear can move me :
I will not, cannot go.
--The Night Is Darkening Around Me, Emily Jane Bront BR>

Harry dreamt that he was flying, almost as if he were on a broomstick except


that he wasn?t. It was raining, and he was low enough as he passed over a
large pine forest to reach down and touch the treetops. The sky tilted around
him suddenly and he could no longer control his body. He fell from the sky
and landed in the center of the forest, in a clearing, and the ground was
covered in fresh snow. Malfoy was waiting there, leaning indolently against
a tree trunk and watching him, a smirk on his face. From Harry?s vantage
point, on his back in the snow, he looked to be upside down. ?What are you
doing here?? Harry asked, no accusation in his tone.

?Waiting,? Malfoy said with an easy shrug.

?For what??

?Whatever is supposed to happen, I suppose. My destiny or yours, it does


not matter which.?

?Why?? Harry asked, feeling oddly like a child. He was beginning to get
used to seeing the world upside down and suddenly could not imagine what
it would be like to stand before Draco and see him right-side-up. Upside
down and inside out? that was the way it was supposed to be. ?Are our
destinies the same??

?Oh no,? Draco said solemnly, shaking his head. ?Not the same at all but
opposites. No cycle can be complete without both a beginning and an end,
but after the cycle is finished, you can never quite see where one begins and
the other ends. Completion.?

?What??

?You destroy me, I destroy you. Together we complete one another but that
completion is destruction.? Draco smiled. ?Stand up, Harry, you?re looking
at it backwards, you can?t expect it to make sense that way.?
?I like it when you?re upside down,? Harry murmured. ?It makes it look like
the moon paints you silver from bottom to top, rather than top to bottom.?

Draco laughed. ?Who isn?t making sense now, Potter??

?A star never hits the ground if it falls upside down,? Harry said.

?The blood must be rushing to your head,? Draco replied, oddly gentle.
?You?ll start seeing things the right way around soon enough, I promise
you.?

And then he woke up, because he needed to vomit. The strange sickness was
worse than ever and, for a few tense moments, Harry worried that he was
about to die. The whiskey certainly hadn?t helped. He lay on his back for the
longest time, taking deep breaths and remembering the strange dream. It
made no sense.

What made even less sense, however, was the sudden realization that he was
lying on his back in a mess of blankets on the floor of the common room
with his invisibility cloak draped over a Cleansweep.

And then he remembered and sat up with a yelp. The movement nearly made
him sick, his head aching worse than before.

Draco was gone, and he wondered nervously if the entire thing had just been
a hallucination brought on by too much to drink. Draco?s whiskey bottle still
lay on the floor, however, and Harry stared at it in shock.

He crawled over to the Medication Potion Chest and dug through it, pulling
out the Hangover Potion someone had thoughtfully left there. He drained it
and instantly felt a little better.

He was still in the common room, feeling too nauseous and weak to go to
the hollow, when Ron came downstairs, dark bruises under his eyes. He?d
obviously not gotten much sleep the night before. When he saw Harry, he
scowled. ?You never came back!?

Harry blinked. ?Ron? What time is it??

?Nearly time for breakfast, where were you last night? You never came back
to get me, I got locked in the tower!?
?I, umm, drank too much and forgot. Sorry.?

?We had to climb out the window,? Ron said tightly. ?How could you just
forget??

?You should have just waited until morning, I would have let you out!?

Ron?s eyes narrowed. ?Harry, what?s going on? You said that as if you
knew she?d be there? as if you planned it.?

Harry opened his mouth to reply and then slowly closed it, thinking fast.
?Well?? he began. ?Um.?

??Well um? is not an answer.?

?Ron??

?What??

?Was it really that bad??

?Well?? he thought for a moment. ?Um.?

Harry grinned. ?You kissed her!? He thought it better not to mention the fact
that he and Draco had been watching.

?I didn?t know she was Pansy!?

?Does it matter? Why?d you kiss her??

?Because she was funny and smart and smelled like flowers! And she looked
like Aphrodite!?

?Notice that?s the last of your reasons!? Harry pointed out with a smirk. If
he?d thought about it, he would have been appalled. After all, Harry never
smirked. Malfoy smirked.

Ron scowled. ?What?s going on??

Harry sighed. ?Alright. Ron, Pansy likes you. She had nothing to do with the
plan last night, didn?t know about it, but she likes you. And I thought
maybe, if you got past the fact that she was a Slytherin and therefore The
Enemy, maybe you could like her too.?

?Harry, Slytherin isn?t the enemy, Malfoy is the enemy.?

Harry?s eyes widened a little. ?He is not!?

??What? You hate him!?

?Of course!? Harry said quickly. ?I just meant that all of Slytherin is the
enemy, not just Dra?Malfoy!?

Ron?s eyes narrowed again. ?Then why did you try fixing me up with
Pansy??

Harry?s mind went blank. Finally, he shrugged. ?Does it matter? Do you like
her??

?It doesn?t matter! You were wrong, Harry, she doesn?t like me, when she
found out it was me, she took off screaming.? Ron licked his lips, trying not
to look as hurt as he felt. ?See? She couldn?t stand the sight of me.?

?Not true. Trust me, Ron, she?s practically in love with you. Talk to her. She
was probably scared.?

?Slytherins don?t get scared,? Ron argued, even as he remembered how


terrified she?d looked on the roof, how she?d confessed to being afraid of
heights.

?Yeah, they do. Talk to her.? Harry smiled.

?Maybe?? Ron still felt unsure, and Harry, feeling slightly stronger than he
had when he?d first woken up, smirked again.

?C?mon. Breakfast time.?

***

Draco was late for breakfast, he hadn?t even gotten back to his dorm until
dawn, and he was just making his way out of the common room when Pansy
hissed from the shadows, ?Malfoy. I have something to discuss with you.?
He squinted into the darkness. ?Pansy? That you? What are you doing
skulking about by yourself??

?Waiting for you.? She stepped out of the shadows and he studied her face in
silence. Her eyes were swollen and red and it looked as though she had been
crying.

?Things not go all that well?? he asked innocently. He remembered, of


course.

?You set that whole thing up!?

?I don?t have any idea what you?re talking about.?

?Draco.?

He sighed. ?Come on, let?s go to breakfast, I?m starved, and we?re going to
be late for Potions if we don?t hurry. We?ll talk about it after. I promise.?

She looked reluctant but let him pull her out of the common room and all the
way to the Great Hall. Draco sat beside her and both were unusually silent as
they ate, and both were far more aware of the Gryffindor table. It was loud
and jovial as usual, as opposed to Ravenclaw?s dignified quiet discussions,
Hufflepuff?s laughter, and Slytherin?s aloof, sneering disgust with the entire
affair. The only ones who were not acting normally were Potter and the two
Weasleys. Potter was staring with disgust at his plate, looking sick, most
likely hung over, and the Weasel was staring off into space thoughtfully and
kept darting furtive glances at Pansy. The Weasley girl was obviously
feeling the effects of the whiskey in the punch.

?Quite nasty of them to make us go to class the night after the Ball, isn?t it??
Draco asked Pansy, who shrugged morosely and continued pushing her
porridge around.

Draco sighed. ?Listen, Pansy, surely it wasn?t that bad.?

?I don?t want to talk about it.? She stood up quickly, and instantly,
Weasley?s eyes snapped up to watch her. Pansy didn?t notice. ?I?m going to
Potions, I?ve got to finish up my assignment before class starts.?
?I?ve already done mine, do you want some help?? Oddly, he felt as if he
had to make something up to her, though he wasn?t sure what. She hadn?t
even told him what had happened the night before. And besides, he didn?t
want to be near Potter any longer than necessary, until he sorted out just how
he was going to tell him off for the night before. It had been Potter?s fault,
of course. There was a reason Draco never drank in public. It made him too
nice. He hated being nice.

?Sure, if you want,? she said with a shrug. ?Let?s go then.?

They walked to Potions together, taking a seat in the back near the wall, and
Draco helped her quickly scribble the last few answers to the questions
they?d been given the day before. Class began to fill up and it was only a
few moments before it was due to begin when Potter, Weasley, and Granger
walked in together. Granger led the way to their usual table and Harry made
to follow, with a nervous glance at Draco. Weasley, however, with a set and
determined look on his face, strode right over to Draco?s table, standing in
front of Pansy.

She looked up at him in stony silence.

?I need to talk to you,? Weasley said.

?Go away. You?re blocking my view,? she snapped.

?There?s nothing to see,? he replied easily.

Draco watched him through his eyelashes, smirking a little. Then, in an


unprecedented move that drew shocked whispers from the entire class that
had all started gawking when Weasley had first came over, Draco gathered
his things and stood up. ?Take my seat,? he said lazily, smirking again.

Weasley blinked in surprise and Pansy hissed. Before she could grab Draco
and force him to sit back down, however, Weasley slid into the newly
abandoned seat, trapping Pansy against the wall.

The only available seat in the room was right next to Potter, and Draco
rolled his eyes. ?Figures. I thought we were trying to prove that fate doesn?t
exist,? he mumbled, slipping into the seat. Before he could begin lecturing
Potter, Snape arrived and class began with a lecture on Fraicher Potion. A
complex mixture of exact quantities of the blood of Grimloires, the scream
of a Hippocampen (which solidified upon touching frozen granite), and three
split hairs of a barnyard pig from Arkansas, it was the only known cure for
the deadly rash left by contact with dried phoenix guano. Another lesson in
what was proving to be a long, boring phoenix unit.

They were given an assignment to work on for the last ten minutes of class,
and no one at Draco?s table said a word. Granger kept glaring at him, and
Potter was steadily ignoring him, working on his scroll. His hands were
stained in an ink Draco recognized. It was the ink he?d made and left in the
hollow.

?You should wash your hands, Potter,? he drawled.

Potter jumped a little, dropping his quill and inspecting his hands. There was
a bright red flush high on his cheekbones. ?I didn?t have time,? he said,
shyly. ?After breakfast, I mean.?

Draco grinned and would have delighted in teasing him more, if only to see
how bright he could make Potter?s blush grow, except Granger chose that
moment to say rather stiffly, ?Honestly, Malfoy, I?m trying to work. Do shut
your mouth. Besides, I happen to know that Harry?s personal hygiene is no
business of yours.?

Potter shot her a glare and Draco nearly laughed out loud at it. It was oddly
endearing, the way his face had just gone a thousand times brighter.

?Oh, by the way,? Draco said silkily, causing Granger to look up


suspiciously and Harry to slowly go very pale. ?About last night??

?Malfoy, not now,? Harry hissed.

?Last night? What about last night? Harry, you were gone for a long time,
you never came back, where were you?? She glanced from Draco to Potter
and back again, her eyes very narrow.

Potter seemed to be trying to shut Draco up with his eyes, begging him not
to say anything, and Draco gave in with an amused smirk. ?Well, if his
hygiene is none of my business, Granger, I?d say the way he spends his
nights is certainly none of yours.?
He had no time to say anything more, however, because class ended and,
just as it did, Pansy started shouting.

?I don?t want to listen to you, you stupid Gryffindor bastard!? she cried,
standing up so quickly that her chair nearly fell over. ?Leave me alone!?

Weasley was looking rather stricken but Pansy didn?t seem to care. She
swept her things off the table and flounced out of the room, and Draco rolled
his eyes. ?Nice, Pansy. That was graceful,? he mumbled, and Potter shot him
a sideways glance and smiled.

?Oh, shut up!? Draco snapped. ?Go talk to Weasley, he looks like he?s about
to die of humiliation. I?ll talk to her.?

He walked away, but not before he heard Granger hiss, ?Harry, did he just
talk to you? What did he say??

Pansy?s fury lasted all the way to DADA, and then, just outside the
classroom, she burst into tears.

?Bloody hell, Pansy,? Draco said firmly, grabbing her arm and tugging her
away from the Ravenclaws who were staring at her from inside the
classroom. ?Not in public.?

?But Draco!? she wailed. ?I don?t know what?s wrong with me!?

?What do you mean?? he pulled her inside an empty classroom.

?I hate him!?

?I thought you liked him!?

?I do.?

?Well then??

She shot him a baleful glare through tear-spiked lashes. ?You didn?t hear his
voice when he found out it was me.?

?What did he say??

?Well, nothing. But it wasn?t what he said but how he said it!?
?But he didn?t say anything!?

?But he said it so disgustedly!?

Draco took a deep breath. ?Pansy. He may have been a little surprised, but if
you like him, you?ll give him a chance to explain.?

?All he wants to explain is that he never should have kissed me to begin with
and that he hates me,? she mumbled.

Draco rolled his eyes. ?Not even Gryffindors would go through all this
trouble for that.?

?What am I supposed to do??

?Talk to him.?

She thought for a moment. ?What if he laughs at me??

?You?re a Slytherin. If he laughs at you, the rest of us will tear him apart.?

She laughed. ?That would lose us house points.?

He shrugged, ?Doesn?t matter. Come on, we?ve got to get to class.?

Pansy nodded and followed him out of the empty room. The lesson had
already started and they lost twenty house points for being late, but at least
Pansy didn?t snivel all through the rest of the class, and Draco figured he
had done the professor a favor.

***

?Well,? Hermione said, in that voice of hers that implied she knew what was
best and Ron had better listen to her better judgment. ?It isn?t as if you
really liked her, after all, Ron, is it? I mean, just because someone locked
you two in a tower and you were forced to cooperate does not mean that you
two should? should go steady, does it??

Harry rolled his eyes, taking a bite of pudding. It was lunchtime, and Ron
had been moping about Pansy?s rejection all morning. The only bright spot
in Harry?s day so far was that she had stopped asking about the night before
and what Malfoy had been referring to. ?What if he does like her??
Hermione shot him a quick glare. ?It?s not about that,? she said, ?because he
doesn?t. Do you, Ron??

Ron scowled. ?It doesn?t matter whether I do or not, does it? She hates me!?

Hermione patted his shoulder and said brightly, ?There, there, Ron, no use
going on about it. After all, she is a Slytherin, and we all know what they?re
good for!?

Both Ron and Harry looked blank. ?Snogging senseless?? Harry suggested.

Hermione started to choke on the pumpkin juice she?d just sipped. ?What?
Harry, what? I meant that they were good for nothing! Don?t tell me you?ve
decided to start snogging Slytherins in forgotten towers, please, don?t say
it!?

Harry?s eyes widened. ?Oh. Oh. Me? No! Of course not! I was talking about
Ron! Because, err, he obviously enjoyed snogging Pansy and?umm? I was
thinking it must have been?fun.? He cleared his throat and then finished
defiantly, ?Besides, Hermione! Who on earth would I have been snogging?
I?m far too busy with Quidditch and stuff.?

?Well,? she said suspiciously. ?There is the matter of you sneaking out alone
to go who knows where in the middle of the night, and Malfoy?what was he
going on about? Maybe that Invisibility Cloak of yours is supposed to be a
big secret, but I?ve been under it enough times to know it exists, Harry
Potter, and you haven?t fooled me. Where do you go at night? And why are
you always late for classes??

Mention of the cloak nearly made Harry choke, but before he could stammer
a reply, he noticed that Ron had gone strangely silent, and that the red-haired
boy kept darting furtive glances at the Slytherin table. Harry glanced over
his shoulder and instantly knew why. Draco and Pansy had arrived, late, and
were now having a heated argument. He couldn?t hear what they were
saying, however, because even in the midst of an argument, a Slytherin
never raised their voice. It was an unwritten rule and should a Slytherin ever
take the time to shout, everyone would take immediate notice.

Harry turned back to Ron, feeling badly suddenly because his friend?s face
was glowing bright red and he looked miserable. ?Hey,? he said. ?Want to
go flying before next class? I?ll let you use my broomstick.?
Hermione hissed. ?You?ll both be late for class and you know it! Harry,
that?s ridiculous, we?ve only got ten minutes left and it?ll take you that long
to get your broom!?

Ron ignored her. ?D?you think she likes him??

?Who?? Harry asked.

?Malfoy.?

Harry snorted. ?No. I told you, she likes you? she?s just doing it in a very?
Slytherin fashion.?

?By pretending she hates me??

Harry shrugged. ?Apparently that?s how Slytherins show their affection.


C?mon, let?s go fly or something. Play chess. Anything. Coming,
Hermione??

She shook her head even as Ron stood to follow Harry out of the Hall. ?Still
hungry,? she said, waving them away. ?Don?t be late for class, though.?

Harry rolled his eyes and he and Ron started for the door. They were nearly
there, when suddenly, Pansy shouted, ?Oi! Ron!?

He froze and the Hall went silent. The unthinkable had happened; a
Slytherin had raised her voice. They were all staring at her in shock, and
Ron turned slowly, defensively. Pansy shot Draco a furious look, hissed
something to which he shrugged lazily and smirked, and then came towards
them, walking like a woman on a mission.

When she was close enough, Ron opened his mouth to speak but he never
got the chance. Pansy glanced over her shoulder at all the people watching in
fascination, pressed her hand to Ron?s chest, shoved him against the door,
and kissed him hard.

?There,? she called to Draco, once again shouting. ?Never call me chicken
again, Draco Malfoy!? She turned back to Ron, who was looking rather
faint, and smiled like a cat. ?I?m sorry. He said that the only reason I ran
yesterday was that I was scared.?
?Were you?? Ron asked shakily.

Just to prove that she wasn?t, she kissed him again.

?Weasley! Parkinson! There will be no copulating against School Property,


and I assure you, those doors belong to Hogwarts!? McGonagall shouted
from the teachers? table. Pansy smiled challengingly at Ron and walked
away, leaving him holding onto the door handle for balance and trying,
unsuccessfully, to catch his breath.

?Told you,? Harry said mildly, glancing back at the Slytherin table where
Malfoy was watching him with a smug little grin. ?It?s just the way
Slytherins show affection.?

***

Harry only realized that Ginny was purposely avoiding him after class, when
he walked into the common room. She squeaked, picked up all her things as
quickly as she could, and took off to her own room.

?What?s with her?? Harry asked Hermione.

She glared at him. ?I heard about what you did to her last night, at the ball,
Harry. That?s horrible! Taking advantage of her like that!?

For a moment, Harry couldn?t remember what he?d done. Then he gasped.
He had, after all, left her waiting by the punch table for him. He?d forgotten
to go back, feeling too sick and weak. It was lucky for him that Draco had
taken care of her for him! ?Oh, I didn?t mean to!? he cried. ?Does she hate
me?? Which, he decided ruefully, wouldn?t be all that bad. He just didn?t
like her like that. He had tried, Merlin knew, he had tried.

?Of course not. But you had better apologize to her, and hope you do it
before she gets over her humiliation and tells Ron. He might just kill you.?

Surely being killed was too harsh for simply abandoning her at the ball.
However, Harry forgot about the entire thing a short while later, as he snuck
away and made his way to the hollow. Malfoy had left a short, smug little
message and Harry laughed as he read it. ?You realize now that you?re
going to have to deal with her shagging in your dorm room every night
before bed, don?t you, Potter??
He snickered to himself a little and replied, ?Trust me, Malfoy, if there is one
thing that Ron won?t do before I do, it?s lose his virginity. It?s just
unthinkable. His mother would kill him. Harry reread that and his eyes
widened. He scribbled it out furiously, until not a word was legible, because
if there was one fact he wanted to keep from Malfoy, it was that he was a
virgin. After all, Malfoy had no problems making him feel inferior without
bits of knowledge like that!

Before he had time to write anything else, he heard someone shouting his
name and dropped the notebook in surprise. Swearing softly to himself, he
crammed it back into the hollow with the quill and the ink and hurried
towards the voice. It was Ron, who had just raised his cupped hands up to
his face to shout again. When he saw Harry running out of the trees, he
waved.

?What?? Harry panted, his guilt intensifying. Somehow whatever this thing
with Malfoy and the journal was, it seemed a thousand times more wrong
when he was directly confronted with the fact that he was keeping it from
Ron.

?Hermione said you?d come outside, I figured you?d be practicing


Quidditch or something, what were you doing??

?I? walking. Why??

Ron?s face was lightly dusted in a blush. ?I was talking to Pansy after class
and she got a special pass to go to Hogsmeade, she thinks we should go. Me
and Her. And I wanted to know if you wanted to come.?

Harry frowned. ?Ron, if it?s supposed to be you and her??

He shrugged. ?But what if? if it?s just a joke? Just pretend? You know? She
could be making a fool out of me.?

Harry sighed. ?Ron, she?s not. Trust me. Go with her, for the love of Merlin,
just go with her.?

Ron shrugged. ?But Harry, what if??

?Ron! Honestly!?
He laughed. ?Alright, alright, I?ll go.?

They walked back to Hogwarts together in silence, Harry still feeling


uneasily guilty.

Ron and Pansy went to Hogsmeade together that night, and Hermione was at
the library studying, and Harry quickly became bored and a little lonely.
Rather than sit in the common room playing games with Seamus and Dean,
waiting for Ginny to show up so that he could apologize for abandoning her
the night before, Harry decided to go visit Hermione at the library.

She was bent over her book, but apparently not that absorbed in it, because
as soon as he came in, her head snapped up. ?Wonderful thing you?ve done,
Harry,? she said sarcastically.

?What??

?Ron! I haven?t seen him all day, he?s with Pansy.?

?They?re getting along, then?? he asked with a grin.

?Getting along? Do you realize what you?ve done? Now he?ll never be
around! Never! His grades will be affected, we?ll never get to see him,
she?ll corrupt him with her Slytherinness, and it?ll be all your fault!? She
seemed as if she were fighting tears.

?Hermione, c?mon, it?s not that bad! You should be happy for him.?

?Happy? How can I be happy?? she cried. ?My best friend is??

?Happy.?

Her shoulders slumped. ?But how can he be happy if he?s not with me? I
mean, not with us??

?Ah.? Harry sat down beside her. ?Hermione.?

She glared at him. ?What??

?You don?t like Ron, do you??


She blinked; then she laughed. It sounded rather brittle. ?Of course not! Not
like that.?

?Hermione ??

?Trust me, Harry, I don?t want to talk about it.?

Harry decided to let the topic drop and searched for another. He glanced
around. The library, which was usually quite empty, was rather busy, with
six other people studying in pairs or alone. Harry was surprised to see
Malfoy sitting alone at the back, a large text Harry recognized as the very
same one he used for Divination open on the desk in front of him. He was
scowling furiously, his forehead creased with concentration, and wasn?t
even aware that Harry had entered the library.

?Isn?t it strange? I never thought I?d see that in a thousand years,? she
hissed, following his gaze.

?He?s studying,? Harry said with a shrug. ?Surely even Malfoy studies.?

?I?ve never seen him in the library before,? she argued.

?Who honestly cares? Aren?t you supposed to be writing an essay? What is


it about??

?A comparison of Quidditch and football for Muggle Studies. Help me


research it?? She rolled her eyes. ?It?s boring. Quidditch is all well and good
to watch, but I don?t like reading about it.?

?Well, that?s strange,? he teased. ?Generally you like reading about


everything.?

She glared at him and pushed some books over for him to read through, and
they worked together in silence for a while.

Finally, frustrated beyond all comprehension, Hermione slammed her book


shut. ?I?ll finish tomorrow,? she said with a scowl. ?I?m going to the
common room, are you coming??

?Uhh, I think I?ll just finish this book first,? he said distractedly.
Eyes narrowing with suspicion, Hermione snatched the book away. ?Cutting
Edge Quidditch: A Biography of Puddlemere? Harry, how was this going to
help me with my essay??

?Puddlemere has lots of social relevance!? he argued in a hushed voice.

?Whatever,? she snapped, looking cross. ?I?m going.?

She left, and Harry glanced around, still a little disoriented, and nearly
everyone who?d been there before was still there, including Malfoy.
Moments later, without even thinking about it, Harry was out of his chair
and standing over him, Quidditch book forgotten on the table.

?Hi.?

Draco looked up, startled. ?Oh. You.? He scowled. He looked as frustrated


as Hermione had, so Harry didn?t take it personally. After so many years of
being Hermione?s friend, he?d gotten used to being snapped at when
homework wasn?t going well.

He smiled. ?Yeah. Nice to see you too. Where? where did you go? Last
night, I mean. I remember you were there, and then you weren?t when I
woke up.?

Draco marked his place in the book and considered for a moment. Finally,
he shrugged. ?I woke up just before dawn and had to get ready for class,? he
said. ?Besides, it would have been awkward. Oh, and by the way, I blame
that entire fiasco on you, and if you ever, ever so much as breathe one word
about that bloody tent, I swear, Potter, you?ll regret it.?

Harry laughed. ?My fault? If that?s what you want to believe. It was your
whiskey.?

?Yeah, well, nothing happened, so it?s alright.?

It was silent for a while, and Harry tilted his head thoughtfully. ?What?just
what could have happened that didn?t?? he asked, puzzled.

Draco glanced up at him, rolled his eyes and mumbled, ?Mmm. If you don?t
know, Potter, I?m certainly not going to inform you.? He turned back to his
book, and Harry read over his shoulder, recognizing the page as one he?d
studied the week before, on advanced palmistry. Draco?s one finger was
tracing the lines as he read them over to himself, the other flat on the desk as
he studied it, trying to make sense of it.

?That?s the head line,? Harry told him.

Draco scowled up at him. ?What??

?You?re on the page about heart lines only you keep tracing your head line.
That?s why it?s not making sense.?

Draco glanced back at his hand and scowled again. ?How am I supposed to
know the difference??

?That?s what we learned in basic palmistry,? Harry said with a grin. He


grabbed a chair, spun it around, and straddled it. ?Let me show you.?

Draco looked up at him, shrugged, and said, ?Whatever. We already slept


together, I can?t see how palm reading could get any weirder.?

Harry?s eyes widened. ?Slept together?!? he yelped. ?We didn?t! Sleeping


with and sleeping beside are completely different!?

?Either way. It was a good thing I did leave before you woke up, because
sleeping next to you was bad enough! I can only imagine how horrid it
would have been, waking up next to you.?

Harry?s mouth opened as he struggled to think up a reply, and then he


slowly closed it, at a complete loss. Draco nodded curtly, and held out his
hand. ?I?m glad we worked that out, we can forget it ever happened,? he
said stiffly. ?You may read my palm now.?

Seeming to have trouble meeting Draco?s eyes, Harry cleared his throat and
took his hand. ?R-Right then. It?s not so hard.? He turned it palm up, and
flattening it with his other hand. With his finger, he traced the different
areas, naming the fingers, the mounds, and the lines. Draco listened, more
interested in the strange feeling of Harry?s finger brushing lightly along his
palm. It made him shiver. Almost like waking up with Harry?s head on his
lap had?but then, thinking about that was hardly accomplishing the goal of
forgetting it ever happened.
Harry paused suddenly. ?What is that?? he asked, pointing to Draco?s
fingertips, which were all stained red.

Draco grimaced. ?Cherries,? he said with a shrug. ?I was eating cherries.?

?Where on earth did you get cherries? You?re not allowed to eat in the
library!?

Draco grabbed the bowl of cherries that he?d hidden under a book. ?Father
grows them, do you want one??

?Grows them? In winter??

?In a greenhouse. They?re quite lovely. Pitless. It took him years to develop
the proper hybrids to grow that way.?

Harry studied the bowl of cherries for a moment in silence. Eat Lucius
Malfoy?s cherries? In the library? It just didn?t seem right.

However, he took one, popping it into his mouth and biting it. It burst
against his tongue, sending a rush of sugary sweet liquid running down his
throat. ?Mmm,? he said, just because Draco was watching his face carefully
for a reaction. Harry wasn?t really a fan of cherries.

Nodding with satisfaction, Draco slipped the bowl back under his
Arithmancy book so that Madam Pince wouldn?t confiscate them. Then, he
glanced back at his hand. ?I thought you were going to read my palm, not
just name all the lines and stuff.?

?What? You want me to actually read it??

?C?mon, I?ve got to have a whole essay on my palm done for Monday and I
can?t even remember the names of all those horrid mounds, and you just told
me!?

?Malfoy, honestly, what?s in it for me? Another lecture on how we should


forget it ever happened and that I?m totally to blame? That?s all I seem to
get every time we do anything, and I can only imagine how personally
you?d take it if I actually touched you.?
?I?ll take responsibility for it this time,? Draco said magnanimously. Harry
didn?t look impressed, so he added quickly, ?And I?ll read yours
afterwards.?

?Oh, come on, you just admitted that you can?t do it!?

?Not that I can?t! That I don?t want to apply myself to learning how. Why
bother, when you already know how and you?re sitting right here??

?Why not just make it up??

?Well? You do owe me, you know, after last night.?

Harry snorted. ?It was your whiskey!?

?But still. The fact remains that you owe me and I don?t want to waste my
time coming up with lies, so you may as well just do it. I want to find out
what evil things my palm has to say about me. Surely you?re interested?? He
certainly didn?t sound evil, pleading that way, even if there was a strange
wicked gleam in his eyes, and Harry was about to give in when he said, ?I?ll
let you have more cherries, I?ve got lots.?

Though he didn?t much like them, Harry shrugged. ?Fine then, give me your
hands, both of them.?

Draco happily held his hands out to Harry, who bent low over them,
studying them in the dim light. ?You had to pick the darkest corner of the
library, didn?t you?? he grumbled, and Draco shrugged.

Harry started with the fingers, running his thumb down the length of
Draco?s little finger, testing its firmness, the angle at which it jutted away
from his ring finger, and the shape of the nail. Then he glanced back at the
textbook and cleared his throat rather loudly. Draco was worried. He jerked
his hand away and held it up to the light, studying the littlest finger
doubtfully.

?It says I?m going to die, doesn?t it?? he asked, still doubtful.

?Erm, not exactly.?

?What, then??
Harry pulled the book closer and read out loud. ?When the little finger is
straight, long, and leaning out to the side away from the ring finger, it
indicates that you are not bound by conformity, new ideas and strange
behaviors excite you and? erm, you may find yourself exorcising the extra
passions aroused by such excitements on the kitchen table or some other
such unorthodox location.?

Draco?s eyes widened. ?It doesn?t say that! School books can?t say things
like that!? he whispered, sounding scandalized, pulling the book towards
him and rereading it silently. ??Oh. It does.?

Harry snickered and grabbed Draco?s hands again. ?Long fingers,? he


mumbled, checking the book again. He didn?t release Draco?s hands this
time, and Draco watched him as he scanned the pages, though he didn?t read
this bit out loud, promising to tell him everything when he?d finished.

It was quiet for a while, and Draco studied Harry while he bent over his
hands, tracing out every contour and line with gentle brushes of his fingers.
It was incredibly intimate, mostly because Draco didn?t know what secrets
about him Harry could be learning, and also because he?d never been this
close to Harry before. Close enough to see the very, very faint freckles just
under his eyes that probably didn?t count as freckles at all, they were so pale
and barely noticeable. Close enough to see the way his throat moved when
he swallowed and the way the tip of his tongue traced his lower lip when he
was concentrating.

Draco found his own tongue mirroring the motion and, a little disturbed, he
sought to distract himself, grabbing a cherry and slipping it in his mouth.

Harry glanced up and scowled, snatching his hands back. ?Don?t move,? he
snapped.

?I wanted a cherry,? Draco said with an easy shrug.

?Well, wait until I?m done.?

?You?re taking forever.?

?You have the most sexual hands I?ve ever seen.? He said it in an absent,
distracted tone, and Draco studied his hands in admiration.
?They are quite lovely, aren?t they??

Harry looked up again, rolling his eyes. ?Stop distracting me.?

Draco had by now sucked all of the juice out of the cherry in his mouth and
he swallowed the rest, gazing wistfully at the bowl.

?I want another cherry.?

?Wait until I?m done, I said,? Harry said absently, tracing Draco?s lifeline
again and calculating the angle it made with his headline.

Draco tugged at his hands and Harry tightened his grip, his lips compressing
in irritation. Without even glancing up, he reached over, grabbed a cherry,
and brought it to Draco?s lips. Surprised, Draco opened his mouth, letting
Harry push it inside.

?There. Stop squirming.?

Oddly enough, Draco now felt the need to squirm more than ever.

He tilted his head to the side, watched Harry mumble quietly to himself, and
bit the cherry absently. Bittersweet liquid exploded in his mouth and he
grimaced, swallowing quickly. ?That one wasn?t good, give me another.?

Harry snorted, but still reached for a cherry, though he, again, didn?t look
up. Not used to being so blatantly ignored, even if Harry was feeding him
and studying his hands like his life depended on it, Draco instinctively
decided to get Harry?s attention. Rather than letting him put the cherry in
Draco?s mouth, he pulled it out of Harry?s grip with his tongue.

Harry?s head snapped up, his eyes narrowing, but Draco turned his head,
studying the textbook with an angelic and innocent look on his face. ?So,
find anything interesting yet?? he asked brightly.

?Erm, what? Oh. I?m not done. Almost.?

Draco nodded, rolling the cherry across his tongue absently, and watching
Harry as he, again, tilted Draco?s hands into the light.
This time, Draco didn?t even have to ask. As soon as he swallowed, Harry
picked up another cherry and held it to his lips, glancing up with a smirk. He
bit it quickly, and a bit of juice stained his lips.

?Slob,? Harry teased, running his finger along Draco?s lower lip. Draco?s
eyes widened at his touch, and before he could think about it, or the strange
humming feeling in his blood and skin, he pulled Harry?s finger into his
mouth, sucking lightly and wrapping his tongue around it.

Harry?s eyes widened and he flushed, his hand, the one that held Draco?s,
went limp. His breathing had become rather labored, and Draco lazily ran
the tip of his tongue along the length of Harry?s finger, licking off the last
drop of cherry juice.

Without a word, Harry gently pulled his finger from Draco?s mouth and,
clearing his throat, picked Draco?s hands up again.

?I?m nearly finished,? he said, voice soft and husky.

?Mmm. Then I can do you,? Draco said, distracted and still trying to figure
what, exactly, he was doing.

?What?? Harry?s head snapped back up.

?Your hand,? Draco clarified, rolling his eyes. ?I can try to read your hands.
That was the deal, remember??

?That, and cherries,? Harry mumbled, shifting awkwardly. ?You said you?d
give me cherries.?

Draco smiled rather wolfishly. ?I will, Potter,? he said. ?As soon as you
finish inspecting my gorgeously sexual hands.?

?I?m finished.? Harry dropped his hands again, almost as if they burned.
There was an intense flush on his face.

?And??

?It?s very sexual.?


Draco only smiled in reply, and Harry sighed. ?Your heart line is long and
curvy and ends between the second and third fingers, indicating a tendency
to freely release all emotions and passion that are normally supposed to be
controlled and restrained by the head. You live by the philosophy, ?If it feels
good, do it, and do it now?. You?re well balanced in pleasing yourself and
your partner. You?re very moody and never dull. The lower mound on your
hand is larger than the others and it means you?re very physically aware and
you thrive on touching and? umm, sensual pleasures. Pleasuring your body
is, umm, a primary?need. You should get a job in a massage parlour. Or as a
professional whore, but that?s just me speaking there.? He laughed
nervously, and watched with wide eyes as Draco picked up a cherry, slipped
it into his mouth, and sucked it thoughtfully.

?I already knew all that,? he said finally. ?What else??

?Well, the colour of your hands indicate that you like ?meshing all parts of
your body, mind and spirit during sexual stimulation?. And that?s about it,
really.? He shifted nervously.

?Lovely,? Draco drawled, rolling a cherry between his fingers. ?Good job,
Potter, here,? he held the cherry to Harry?s lips and it took him a startled
moment to remember how to work his jaw muscles.

Warm cherry juice ran down his throat, and he licked his lips. They weren?t
as bad as he remembered, cherries.

Draco took his hand and stared at it rather blankly for a moment. He glanced
at the book a few times, back at Harry?s hand, and then at the bowl of
cherries. He grabbed one, shoved it in his mouth, and sucked it thoughtfully
as he struggled to remember which was the heartline and which was the
headline.

Harry opened his mouth to help him, and Draco anticipated it, shoving a
cherry past Harry?s lips before he could say a word. Making a surprised
sound in the back of his throat, Harry chewed the cherry, and Draco turned
back to his palm.

?All these lines,? he said, tracing them. Harry?s palm was rough from his
broomstick. ?The horizontal ones. I think they mean?? He glanced at the
book and read out loud, ?Decisions are made with the heart and
sentimentality rules over logic.?
?So not true!? Harry cried. The other people in the library shot him a glare,
and he repeated, more quietly, ?That?s not true.?

Draco smirked. There were only three cherries left, and he ate one quickly,
and lifted the other to Harry?s mouth. Harry took it with his tongue, quickly,
and ate it just as fast.

?Not true,? he mumbled again.

?You don?t know how to eat a cherry,? Draco said in exasperation. ?You?re
not supposed to just swallow it! You?re supposed to suck it. To get all the
flavour out.?

Harry rolled his eyes. ?Why does it matter??

?It just does. Here, there?s one left, do it right this time.?

?How?? Despite himself, Harry was curious. Maybe there was a reason he?d
never liked cherries. He?d been eating them wrong.

?Make it last as long as you can.? He held the last cherry up, and Harry
glanced from Draco?s challenging eyes to the cherry and back again.

He?d never backed down from a challenge before, and he wasn?t about to
start now.

Aware that the other people in the library could glance over at any moment
and see him eating berries from Malfoy?s hand, Harry licked the berry first,
brushing Draco?s fingers with the tip of his tongue. Draco sat up a little
straighter, his breath catching, and Harry suddenly realized he had a bit of
power over him, as strange and alien as that power was.

Draco was feeling the same things Harry had felt when Draco had licked his
fingers.

Armed with that knowledge, and determined to prove to Draco that he was
much better at eating cherries despite his lack of experience, Harry nibbled
the cherry a little, delicately, while Draco still held it. It made a terrible
mess, juice staining Draco?s hand as Harry flicked his tongue again and
again against Draco?s fingers and the cherry, lapping up the juice. Finally,
he wrapped his tongue around the berry and pulled it into his mouth,
swallowing it and glancing up at Draco triumphantly.

It wasn?t what he expected. Draco looked almost as if he had been hit by a


train. His eyes were glazed, his breathing very heavy.

Harry grew worried. ?I didn?t bite you, did I? I?m sorry, I ??

?I?ve got to go,? Draco said, standing up so suddenly, he nearly knocked his
chair over. He gathered up his books and hurried out of the room before
Harry could get over the shock of his abrupt departure.

Beneath You
By Cinnamon
Chapter Five Fate is a wind, and red leaves fly before it
Far apart, far away in the gusty time of year --
Seldom we meet now, but when I hear you speaking,
I know your secret, my dear, my dear.

-Did You Never Know, Sarah Teasdale

Later that night, Harry?s strange illness began to come back, and he was
getting worried. After all, it had been weeks now, and if it was just the flu,
surely it would be gone by now. However, given his status as The-Boy-
Who-Lived, he was quite sure Hermione would flip out and he didn?t want
to worry anyone. It was probably just a cold.

Still thinking about the strange incident in the library, Harry made his way
outside to the hollow. It was abandoned, but the cool air seemed to soothe
the illness a little, and Harry sat at the base of the tree for a long time, eyes
closed, breathing deeply. It was very quiet and he was feeling very weak.
The feeling left, however, and he opened the book. The last thing written
was Harry?s scribbles from earlier, Malfoy hadn?t written anything.

Twirling the quill, Harry thought carefully before writing, ?Are you alright,
Malfoy? I didn?t mean to scare you or whatever, I didn?t mean anything by
it, I don?t even know what I was thinking! Maybe the whiskey hadn?t worn
off yet! Do you think that could be it? Because I certainly wasn?t feeling like
myself? I was having problems breathing. That could be why? I mean, I
haven?t been feeling all that well lately. That could have been why. Yes. So
I?m sorry. I hope you?re not angry.?
It was rather late by the time he got back to the common room, and he made
his way upstairs, falling asleep nearly instantly and dreaming that he was
pregnant with Hermione?s baby and that was why he was ill in the evenings
and the nights. He woke up, understandably feeling quite disturbed.

It was Saturday, and he spent the day practicing Quidditch with his team.
When he got back to the common room, Hermione was waiting and she
smiled triumphantly. ?Finished my essay, want to read it??

He read it over, commented on it, and they started a game of chess. The
game was interrupted, however, when the portrait flew open and Ron
staggered in, bruised, bloody, and grinning. ?That?ll teach him!? he crowed,
flopping down in a chair and wiping his bleeding nose on the back of his
sleeve.

?That?ll teach who?? Harry asked.

?Ron, you?re bleeding!? Hermione cried.

?Crabbe. The bugger tried pounding me again!?

?Looks like he succeeded?? Harry said.

Ron shrugged. ?I did worse to him. Now he?ll leave me and Pansy alone!?

?Ron! You didn?t fight him!? Hermione begged.

?No, Hermione, I let him pound me into a bloody mess and didn?t try to
defend myself at all,? Ron replied sarcastically. Hermione fell back against
the back of her chair weakly.

?You?ll be expelled for sure,? she told him.

?It was self-defense!?

?Doesn?t matter, you still fought him.? Hermione grabbed a tissue and
started cleaning his face up. ?I?ll wipe the blood off and then heal it,? she
told him, voice gentle now. ?Does it hurt??

?No,? Ron lied.


After they?d taken care of Ron, Harry snuck out to the hollow, needing to
get away. Ginny had come back into the common room and had glared at
him from her own chair, and he hadn?t been able to stand it. He didn?t quite
have the guts to apologize either, and thought that waiting until she was less
angry was the best course of action.

Malfoy had written earlier that day. ?Potter? you sexually repressed little
boy. Never mind. Don?t even think about last night, ever again, alright?
Forget it. Maybe I caught whatever it is that?s got you feeling sick. Yes, if
that?s what you want to believe, go right ahead. As I said before and I?ll say
again, if you don?t understand, I?m certainly not going to waste my time
explaining. Besides? it won?t happen again.

?Had to clean Vincent up this afternoon after Weasley was done with him.
I?m nearly impressed with the level of damage. Snape wasn?t quite so
impressed, so just to warn you, he?ll probably be doubly furious with you
come Monday morning. The whole lot of you Gryffindors will pay for this.
I?m quite looking forward to it.

?I?ve been trying to write my palm reading essay all day and I just can?t get
it right. No matter what I try in that course, the nasty woman doesn?t like it.
Is it my fault that I?m going to be rich, handsome, and successful my whole
life? Some of us are just not BUILT for tragedy and she seems to only like
reading about it! It?s driving me mad.?

?Sexually repressed?? Harry mumbled indignantly. ?It?s not my fault I?ve


got priorities. Like?Quidditch.? Somehow, it just didn?t sound as convincing
as it had all the other times he?d said it.

Unnerved, Harry decided not to comment on the first part of Malfoy?s note.

He smiled a little, took out his wand, and whispered, ?Accio homework.? His
own palmistry essay floated from the castle and he snatched it from the air,
reading over it quickly. ?Here,? he wrote in the journal. ?My class did that
assignment last week, and I got full marks. Just copy mine and change the
tragedies. Instead of your lover being killed in a car crash, write that they
die in ritual sacrifice or something. Tragedy, Draco, it?s all about tragedy.
Trelawney rarely cares if it?s true, as long as it?s full of sorrow. Make it up.
Ron and I have been doing that for years. Oh. And if I were you, I wouldn?t
mention the sexual nature of your hands. She?d think it was too good to be
true.?
He carefully folded the scroll and slipped it inside the book.

***

The next day was Sunday and Harry spent the day hiding from Hermione,
Ron, and Ginny in the South Tower, the same one where he had locked
Pansy and Ron on Halloween. He didn?t like to spend too much time
considering why he was avoiding them. After all, he just wanted to be alone.
The South Tower was the best place for that.

It was November now and the tower was drafty. He sat in the same room
where Pansy and Ron had been locked, careful to keep the door open, and
wrote letters to Sirius about everything (almost) that had been happening. He
left out any mention of Malfoy, because he decided it wasn?t even worth
talking about. Really.

He was lying to himself and he knew it; but Harry, again, did not really want
to spend too much time considering why.

He went to the hollow late that afternoon, and when he opened the notebook
a small red leaf fell out, fluttering to the ground. Curious, he picked it up.

It felt like leather in his hand and was the most vibrant shade of scarlet he?d
ever seen, with gold-tipped edges and veins of the same bright yellow. He
studied it thoughtfully for a moment, wondering how it had gotten in the
book and hesitantly considering that maybe Draco had left it there for him.
The image of Draco seeing this leaf, as beautiful as it was, and picking it up
with the intention of leaving it for Harry felt incongruous. There wasn?t a
message either, and Harry almost let the leaf go so the wind could carry it
away, when he realized that his Divination homework wasn?t there. So
Draco had been there since Harry had left it.

Maybe it was in thanks for the homework?

Whatever it was, he tucked the leaf in his pocket and sat down to write. He
was in an oddly thoughtful mood. ? I dreamed of you the other night, did I
tell you? On Halloween, it was probably because you were there. It was very
strange, I was flying through the air (not on a broom though) and then I fell
and landed in snow and you were standing there and said something about
destiny and seeing everything backwards. It was the night after the
Halloween Ball, so I figure that the whole destiny thing came from that,
because our whole plan was to prove fate wasn?t real, right? However, the
rest of it I can?t even begin to sort out. Oh, and Ginny?s been avoiding me
ever since the Halloween Ball! I feel badly for it, but I much prefer this to
having Ron constantly pushing her at me, trying to get me to fall in love with
her. Hermione says I did something horrible to her and must apologize
before she tells Ron, who?ll kill me for it, but honestly, abandoning her at
the Ball is hardly a capital offence, is it??

He put the book back and studied his hands in disgust. They were stained,
again, with the ink from the hollow. It seemed to be a permanent state these
days, though he hadn?t noticed until Draco had commented on it in Potions.
The ink wouldn?t wash off.

The sun was starting to set and Harry felt a headache coming on. He made
his way back to the castle feeling suddenly exhausted and as weak as a
kitten.

***

Nighttime was always Draco?s favourite time to check the journal. He


hardly ever went to sleep before midnight anyway, and it was always easier
to sneak away when all of his housemates were asleep. He didn?t feel up to
discussing with any of them the reasons he was doing this. Writing little
notes to Harry and all that. Not that any of his housemates would ever have
the courage to ask. He was Draco Malfoy. His secret nighttime wanderings
were never remarked upon.

?Dreaming of me, Potter??, he wrote, after reading Harry?s last message.


?How cute. As for little Weasley, chances are that if she hasn?t told her
brother yet, she won?t, so I?d just enjoy the break from her clumsy
attentions, if I were you.? Not to mention, of course, that she was most likely
upset over something much more than being abandoned at the Ball. But if
Potter hadn?t found out about that yet, he most likely wouldn?t, and that
suited Draco perfectly.

The next morning was Monday, and Draco was exhausted in Potions class.
He hadn?t slept well after returning from the hollow, he had to fight a
ridiculous craving for cherries, and was having a hard time paying attention
to the lesson. As, apparently, was Potter.
Snape was in a foul mood already, even Draco could tell that. When he
asked the class if they could remember the three primary ingredients to the
Draught of Phoenix Tears and only Granger?s hand went up, he turned to
Potter. Draco followed his gaze and, rather than the usual anticipation at the
thought of Potter being called on in class, he only felt vague stirrings of pity.
Potter looked wretched, pale, and weak.

?How about you, Mister Potter??

Rather than try to pretend he knew what was going on as he usually did,
Potter just blinked, his eyes looking rather glassy. ?What??

?Three primary ingredients in the Draught of Phoenix Tears.?

Potter licked his lips. ?Uhh, the first would probably be phoenix tears.?

?Very good, Mister Potter,? Snape said sarcastically. ?And the other two??

There was dead silence. Granger seemed to be trying to psychically send the
answers to him, Weasley couldn?t seem to look at him and was staring at his
desk, and Snape?s cruel smile, which used to delight Draco, was growing by
the second.

?Oil of an infant Mandrake root and belladonna!? Draco called, before


pausing to think. He winced as every student in the room turned to gawk at
him. Snape turned slowly, and Potter?s eyes widened and flew to his. Draco
cleared his throat almost nervously.

?Excuse me?? Snape hissed.

?Those are the other two primary ingredients, sir.?

?Yes, I am well aware of that. However, I had been waiting for Mister Potter
to reply.?

?He didn?t seem to know the answer.?

?And you thought to help him? How? noble, Mister Malfoy. But the fact of
the matter remains that Mister Potter has demonstrated again and again that
he is failing to pay attention in my classroom!? Snape wheeled around to
glare down at Potter. ?In fact, I believe you still owe me a detention for one
of your past transgressions! I must admit, for Resident Hero, Potter, you are
quite a disappointment. In fact, I honestly must say that perhaps you?ve
allowed your hero status to go to your head and feel as if you can just float
through my class! I regret to inform you that no one passes my class without
effort, Potter. And so, I further regret?? though he didn?t look it at all ??to
say that unless you can prove to me that you?ve been paying attention, I am
going to have to fail you. And of course, you are aware that without a
passing grade in Potions, you will not be graduating.?

?Please, sir, he does pay attention, he does. He?s just not feeling very well
today!? Granger cried.

Snape glared at her and she fell silent. ?In order to prove to me that you?ve
paid attention, you will write me a essay summarizing everything we have
discussed this year?and be glad that I am not making it cumulative of all
seven years. Five scrolls should be enough, if you write small. Knowing
your illegible scrawl, you?d better make it seven. You must receive a
passing grade on this, or you will fail my course.?

There was a tense silence in the classroom. It had been an unusually harsh
punishment, and even Draco was looking at Snape with reproach in his eyes.

?Only you will be required to complete this, Potter, as your detention for
your past transgression. None of you,? he glared at the other Gryffindors,
Granger in particular, ?may assist him in writing it or I will fail him.?

Potter looked even paler than before, except for the bright red flush on his
cheeks that let Draco know just how furious he was. He didn?t say a thing,
however, and Snape nodded, satisfied, and went back to teaching the lesson.

After Potions, Draco felt a little more awake and went about the rest of his
lessons with more energy, though he was oddly worried about Potter. He had
looked very ill in class and Draco knew that Granger hadn?t been making
that up as an excuse. When he finally had a free moment, after his last class,
he hurried down to the hollow.

Potter had already written a long, furious letter about how much he hated
Potions and Snape and how he was going to fail out of school and it was all
Snape?s fault.
?It?s your own fault, you know,? Draco replied. ?Honestly, you could at least
try to pay attention! But even I?ve got to admit that he was rather harsh
today? After all, even I could tell you were ill. Are you alright, Potter? And
you know you must have looked half-dead if I am bothering to comment on
it, don?t you? Because honestly, even if you were dying, I wouldn?t care!
But you?re not, are you?? He scowled to himself and scratched that last bit
out before continuing. ?And I suppose, as I?ve got some free time now,
because I?ve already studied all of this year?s Potions lessons over the
summer, that I can help you write it, if you want. I?ve got nothing better to
do.?

He read over it once more, still scowling a little and wondering at this spark
of philanthropic goodness that had come upon him, unbidden. But it
wouldn?t be fair for Potter to fail because he?d been ill in class one day!

Why he cared, Draco didn?t consider.

***

Hermione was hovering over him worriedly. ?You were feelings sick and
you didn?t tell me until now?? she lectured, tucking a blanket around him.
Classes had just ended and she had helped him up to the common room, Ron
carrying his things.

?Just weak, honestly, I?m fine,? he replied, though he was slightly worried.
He had woken up with a killer headache and, while that had gradually faded,
the weakness he always felt in the mornings and at night hadn?t, and he had
gone through his classes in a daze. Hermione had helped him through them,
all the while mumbling under her breath about sending him to the hospital
wing. She started on again about that now.

?Honestly, Harry, you?re ill, you?ve got to go to the hospital wing!?

?I don?t want to cause Dumbledore to worry, I?m sure it?s just a cold or
something,? he argued.

She looked uncertain and turned to Ron. ?What do you think??

?You know how he hates the hospital wing,? Ron said, nodding. ?And he?s
not puking or anything, he?s just tired. I think you?re overreacting.?
She bit her lip. ?Maybe. Alright, Harry, I won?t force you to go now. But I
want you to list everything about the illness. I?ll write it all down and then
go see if I can research it in the library. It could be a curse or something, and
if it is, then we?ve got to find out how to stop it and who?s doing it. Ron, get
me some parchment and a quill. Harry, are you sure there?s nothing I can do
to make it better??

He grimaced. ?I just want to sleep, really,? he said, fighting to keep his eyes
open.

She petted his forehead. ?There, there, of course you do,? she cooed, treating
him like a little boy. Ron returned with the parchment, and Harry told her
everything he could remember about the illness. After she?d flounced off to
the library, dragging Ron with her and telling Ginny to watch over him,
Harry stared blearily into the fire in the hearth.

Ginny was sitting nervously across from him, reading a novel, and she kept
darting swift, wide-eyed glances at him, as if waiting for him to speak.

And there was something he was supposed to say to her, though at the
moment, Harry was too weak to remember what. Something about the Ball?
and the punch? Oh, bother. He still hadn?t apologized for abandoning her by
the punch table.

He?d tell her tomorrow, when he wasn?t so tired?

***

Hermione and Ron had returned late from the library. Ginny had covered
Harry with a blanket and gone up for bed, leaving him curled up on the huge
chair, and he looked altogether too comfortable for them to wake him and
move him, especially given his illness. They left him there and snuck up to
their own rooms.

Harry woke up suddenly around midnight, jolted awake by unsettling


dreams he couldn?t remember. He was feeling a good deal better than before
and couldn?t fall back to sleep, so he grabbed his cloak and made his way
down to the hollow.

The moon was bright and cast the brittle, cold night in silver shadow. His
breath fogged before his face and it took Harry a few moments to realize that
it was snowing. He stepped out of the castle onto the large stone steps and
blinked in surprise. A light dusting of snow covered the ground and was still
falling heavily from the sky, swirling in the sharp breeze. It looked almost
like another world.

It was very quiet, and he stepped off the stairs and into the snow hesitantly,
not wanting to destroy the fresh snow with his footprints.

His was the first pair that cut through their snow, walking straight to the
hollow, shoulders hunched for warmth and hands shoved in pockets,
crimson and gold scarf tied tightly around his face.

The hollow was sheltered from the wind so here the snow fell more slowly,
fluttering down to the ground, where it was thicker than in the open grounds
where the wind could blow it around. His fingers were nearly numb when he
reached into the hollow and pulled the book out, grabbing the quill and ink
as well. He brushed a spot in the roots off and sat down, reading Draco?s last
message. He frowned and bent the book in the moonlight to make out the
words that had been scribbled out and smiled musingly when he realized
what they had said.

?I didn?t know you cared,? was all he had time to write, before he suddenly
became aware of eyes, watching him. He looked up, and dropped the quill.
?Draco.?

***

Draco paused in the trees, feeling the strange urge to turn and run. After all,
he had known Harry would be there, he had seen his tracks in the freshly
fallen snow, too clear to have been very old, and only one set going towards
the hollow, none returning. Still, he had followed them. Following the
footprints was a different matter entirely to standing there, face to face with
Harry, the book on Harry?s lap, the quill lying in the snow beside him. It
was the first time they?d seen each other there in the hollow since the first
night, on the way back from Hogsmeade, and the many things they had been
in denial about since this entire thing had started were there now, staring
them right in the face. It had been easy to pretend that things between them
weren?t changing before, when the only evidence was writing in a notebook
in a hollow no one else knew about. Now, whatever the change was, it was
evident in the slight widening of Harry?s eyes as they met Draco?s, the
slight flaring of Draco?s nostrils as he inspected Harry, sitting in the
moonlight, with the book lying open in his lap.

Things could have gone any number of ways then. Draco could have
laughed scornfully and walked away, Harry could have flung the book aside,
they both could have denied everything and anything and run as fast as they
could back to their dorms and forgotten anything had ever happened in that
hollow. Or they could say something, anything, to break the fragile, tense
silence.

There was nothing either could think to say.

Finally, Draco walked forward the three steps separating him from Harry,
and extended his hand down to where the other boy sat on the root of the
hollow tree.

After a moment, Harry slipped his ink-stained hand into Draco?s smooth,
clean one, and let Draco pull him up to his feet.

The book dropped, unnoticed to the ground, lying in the snow beside the
quill, and Harry accidentally kicked the vial of ink over. It soaked into the
snow, staining it black, and the book, the quill, and the ink well would be
buried, forgotten, in snow by morning.

Harry licked his lips and let go of Draco?s hand. ?You?ll help me study,
then?? he asked huskily

Draco smiled. ?Nothing better to do, honestly.?

Flashing him a grin, Harry nodded. ?Alright then.?

They walked back to Hogwarts side-by-side, their returning paths marked in


the snow, fresh and sharp beside the softer footprints they?d left on their
way to the hollow.

Both would be covered in snow by morning.

Chapter Six

All seems so enigmatic to the core


Bringing all that you left and made leave
Seeming to bring the things you adore
Like air below water that needs to breathe

Shadows can only stretch so far


And the fear is nothing but blind
Deflective like the edge which left it's mark
But cut through ribbons in your mind.

--Imagine One Other, Donna Taylor

?So, what?? Harry asked, glancing up from the parchment. The library was
dark except for a torch flickering on the wall beside the table, casting one
side of Draco?s face in light, the other in shadow.

Draco looked back down at the parchment. ?So?? he said. ?The ground
mendleroot plants react with the nettles and create a poultice that slows the
spread of the poison,? he said. ?It?s simple.?

Harry bit his lip and looked back down at the equation in Draco?s notes. It
had been a week since he?d been assigned the essay, and, after the first day
of attempting to organize Harry?s notes into something legible, Draco had
decided that they were a lost cause. Far too messy, far too lacking. So he had
brought his own after that; neat, orderly.

He wrinkled his nose. ?Where do you see that??

Draco sighed, standing up and walking to the other side of the table. He
stood directly behind Harry, reached over his shoulder, and pointed to the
first figure. ?Mendleroot?s active substance is M2. M2 is added to this here,?
he pointed, and Harry?s eyes followed the motion. ?The result is MO3,
which, when applied a wound infected with this particular poison, cancels
the toxicity.?

?Oh.?

Draco nodded, satisfied, and returned to his seat. He rested his elbow on the
table, chin cupped in his hand, and watched while Harry, his finger where
Draco?s had just been, worked through the equation again, his lips moving
as he talked himself through it silently. Then he completed the paragraph
he?d been writing on the subject carefully.
Finally, he nodded, glancing up at Draco. ?I think Snape makes it up and
makes it all as confusing as he can just because he likes to.?

Draco laughed. ?No. It?s real. You didn?t think potions just worked totally
on magic, did you? Even magic has rules. He?s just teaching us to
manipulate the rules. That?s how new potions are created all the time, by
people who memorize the rules and then break them. After all, you can?t
break a rule if you don?t know the rule.?

Harry grinned, rolling his eyes. ?Sure, whatever, I intent to make a fortune
playing Quidditch.?

?Some of us aren?t so lucky,? Draco said with a smirk.

?Oh, shut up, you?re just as good as I am. The rest of your team is just
rubbish, that?s all,? Harry said, matching Draco?s smirk.

?Better than you, even,? Draco drawled.

Harry snorted distractedly, flipping through a few more pages. ?How am I


supposed to write a essay on all of this when I don?t even remember
learning it the first time??

?That?s why I?m helping you.?

Harry, his fingers buried in his hair, glanced up at him. ?You don?t have to,
you know.?

?Can?t have the Boy-Who-Lived failing Potions,? Draco said easily,


shrugging it off.

?No, really, why are you doing this??

Draco met his eyes and held for a long moment, before he looked down at
the parchment on the table. ?I told you, Potter,? he said quietly.

?To make up for blaming me for the whiskey incident?? Harry suggested
brightly.

?Umm, that was your fault.?

?To make up for being irrational in the library that night??


?I believe I behaved quite rationally, thank you very much, and we said
we?d never talk of those things again!? Draco snapped. ?That?s not it
either.?

?Nothing better to do,? Harry said dryly. ?I remember.?

There was silence as Harry flipped through a few more pages, scanning
Draco?s notes and growing more and more frustrated. Finally, he pushed the
notes away and rested his forehead down on the table. ?I can?t,? he
mumbled. ?My head is aching and I feel sick.?

Draco?s eyes narrowed and he slid the parchment over towards him,
glancing at his notes. ?It?s alright. Just remember that you left off at this
page and we?ll take it up tomorrow night.? He watched Harry for a long
moment, but Harry didn?t lift his head. Draco tilted his head to the side
consideringly. ?Potter. Potter, hey, you alright??

Harry lifted his head and grimaced. ?Fine. I just?? he shrugged, closing his
eyes.

?Yeah.? Draco nodded slowly. If Potter thought he didn?t notice the pale
cast to his face or the shaking of his hands, he was crazy. But it wasn?t for
Draco to comment on. He was just there to teach him Potions, nothing more.
?We can meet again tomorrow. It?s Saturday, all day long. Remember??

Harry smiled, his eyes brightening. ?Wow, you?ll really let me go early
tonight??

Draco, surprised at the sudden brightness in Harry?s face, laughed. ?Are you
implying that I never let you go early??

Harry wrinkled his nose. ?C?mon, admit it, Draco, you?d keep me up all
night if it was up to you.?

Draco?s eyes widened and he swallowed a sudden thickness in this throat.


?What??

But Harry didn?t hear. He was already packing up his things, and when he
glanced up, it was to smile again and say brightly, ?But don?t think I?m not
grateful for all your help, especially since you could get in trouble for this
and all.?
?He never said I couldn?t help you, he only said the Gryffindors couldn?t,?
Draco said, following Harry?s example and packing up his things, worriedly
considering the strange thoughts Harry?s innocent words had sent shooting
through his mind.

Harry stood up and swayed suddenly, squeezing his eyes shut, and Draco
jumped to his feet, watching carefully. Catching his balance, Harry opened
his eyes, startled to find Draco watching him so intently. ?What??

Sighing, Draco shook his head. ?Nothing. So, tomorrow, in the South
Tower, early.?

Harry nodded. They?d decided that, rather than risk Snape finding out about
this and not seeing it quite the way Draco did, they?d only study together
late at night in the library, or during the day in the South Tower, where no
one ever went.

They walked out of the library together, quietly, and, at the door, Harry
stumbled and Draco reached out instinctively, grabbing his arm. Harry
swore softly under his breath and Draco slowly let go of him. Neither of
them spoke, and Harry turned left, Draco right, walking away from each
other.

He stopped himself from checking over his shoulder a thousand times to


make sure Harry was alright, and each time the instinct came over him, he?d
scowl and swear softly to himself. Finally, he paused at the corner and
turned, calling out, ?Are you alright, Potter??

But Harry was already gone.

***

?Did you find anything?? Harry asked, slipping into his room and finding
Ron waiting for him. ?About what?s wrong with me??

Ron?s eyes were very narrow. ?Where were you??

Harry blinked, startled. ?Working, Ron, I told you I?d be at the library
working on that ridiculous Potions thing.?

?Until this late? Harry, tell me the truth. Where were you??
?Working. You don?t believe me??

?It?s hard to say. Honestly, Harry, the way you?re running about so often
these days, I don?t know what to believe.?

Harry slumped into bed, closing his eyes. ?Ron, please, I?m exhausted,
don?t do this now. Did you guys find out what?s happening to me??

?Hermione looked for a bit but we haven?t found anything.? His voice was
terse. ?We?re going to look again tomorrow.?

?I?ll be working all day. Fun.? Harry pulled the blankets over his head.

***

Harry was the first to get to the tower before the crack of dawn the next
morning. He had brought a blanket to sit on and a pillow, as well as his
books, and by the time Draco got there twenty minutes later, Harry was
curled up in his blanket, fast asleep, the pillow clutched to his chest, his head
resting on his Potions book.

Draco smirked. ?Potter. Hey, Potter. Wake up.? He nudged him with his toe,
but Harry only mumbled in his sleep, his eyes staying shut.

Sitting beside him on the floor, Draco watched him for a long moment
before sighing and nudging his shoulder. ?You can?t absorb the knowledge,
Potter,? he teased. ?You?ve got to actually open the book.?

Finally, Harry?s eyes opened and he sat up, blinking sleepily. ?Draco??

?Yeah.?

?Bloody hell.? He ran a hand through his hair. ?Didn?t mean to sleep.?

?I know.? Draco inspected his face silently, noting the black shadows under
his eyes. ?You look like shit.?

?Thank you,? Harry said dryly. He opened his book. ?Let?s do this. I?m
ready.?

?Mmm. Right then. We left off at Sleeping Potions.?


They studied until lunch, when Harry took a short break and they ate, drank,
and talked about everything and nothing until the sandwiches were gone,
and then Harry almost cheerfully went back to writing. He wouldn?t have
said, of course, but the only reason Harry could stand all this writing, had the
incentive for all this writing, was because of Draco and his patient teaching.
It was almost worth hours of working just to see the brief nod and smile
Draco would flash every time Harry managed to figure something out,
flawlessly repeat the ingredients for a potion, or explain the difference
between various different consistencies of sleeping draughts. He wouldn?t
consider why it mattered, Draco?s smile, Draco?s approval. Because that
really wasn?t the issue. The issue was that he was learning Potions and he
couldn?t wait to see Snape?s face when he passed.

?What about this?? he asked, staring down at Draco?s notes with a frown.
?We did this last month.?

Draco looked at it and scowled, flipping the pages quickly. ?Not important,?
he mumbled, not looking up. ?Trust me. Not important.?

?But wasn?t that ??

?You don?t need to know about it!? Draco snapped, and Harry backed off.

?Alright, sorry,? he said with a scowl, glancing at the page Draco had turned
to. ?We?ll skip over to the phoenix stuff.?

An hour later, frustrated, aching, and feeling weaker than ever, Harry laid
his forehead down on the book. He was lying on his stomach, Draco sitting
nearby, and he was sick to death of Potions.

?Alright?? Draco asked, watching him.

?No. I can?t do this.?

Draco came over, sitting beside him on the blanket Harry had brought, and
quickly reading over the notes. ?It?s easy.?

?It?s not.?

Draco snorted. ?Give me a minute to show you. Trust me, it?s easy.?
?How do you know all of this?? Harry asked, propping his chin up on his
hand and looking at Draco. ?I mean, you know everything about Potions!?

?I learned it all this summer,? he said, lying down beside Harry.

?Why??

?Nothing better to do.?

?Oh, you mean the rich and powerful Malfoys didn?t go off on vacation??
Harry teased.

Draco flinched and Harry frowned. Before he could ask, Draco looked back
at the book. ?None of your business, Potter. Back to work.?

?Fine, sorry,? Harry muttered, turning back to the book. With Draco lying
right beside him, their arms pressed together, and Draco?s fingers moving
through the information as he spoke, it came a lot easier to Harry, who now
only had to focus on one thing. Before, paying attention to the notes, he?d
been distracted by Draco.

Now Draco was close enough for his breath to brush Harry?s ear if he turned
his head, and Harry lay his chin down on his folded arms, content to listen to
every word Draco said.

Hours passed, and they lay like that together, flipping through the pages,
Draco pausing every now and then to quiz him, tease him, or say something
sarcastic, and Harry absorbed everything he said, not because he particularly
cared about Potions, but because the sound of Draco?s voice, so close beside
him, was sending shivers down his spine, and it was a rather pleasant, tingly
feeling.

He closed his eyes and had nearly drifted off to sleep again when Draco said
quietly, ?Things change, Potter.?

He opened his eyes. ?What?? he asked sleepily.

Draco blinked, looking surprised. ?I thought you were asleep.?

?No,? Harry yawned. ?I?m just tired. Haven?t been sleeping well.?
?Why??

?I suspect I?ve got a cold,? Harry said with an easy shrug, not meeting
Draco?s eyes. Instead, he stared down at his hands, frowning. They were
still spotted with black ink.

Draco laid his hands over Harry?s, and Harry?s eyes flew wide at the
contact. He jerked his head up, nearly smashing into Draco?s, who was
watching him intently. ?Harry,? he said. ?It?s not a cold.?

Harry scowled. They were very close now, and Draco?s hands were still
resting on top of his. Not a gesture of affection, they weren?t holding hands.
Draco?s hands were just? there. ?It?s a cold,? Harry said stubbornly. ?How
would you know??

?You don?t sneeze or cough. You get dizzy and weak. It?s not a cold.?

?You sound just like Hermione,? Harry sneered. ?She?s trying to force me to
the hospital wing.?

?You won?t go??

?I hate it there.?

Draco sighed. ?Even I can tell you?re sick.?

?I?m not. Besides, like you care.? Harry darted a quick, nervous glance into
Draco?s eyes, seeing them narrow. Was that worry? Annoyance? He
couldn?t tell. ?I?m alright, Draco. I am.? He licked his suddenly dry lips and
saw Draco?s eyes flicker lower, studying them.

It was too much and he rolled away quickly, wondering why his entire body
was tingling, why he was breathing quickly. Sitting up, with his back to
Draco, Harry said shakily, ?I?d better go. Ron and Hermione will worry.?

?Go on then, Potter,? Draco drawled, snapping the book shut. ?Run away.
It?s what you?re good at.?

Harry glanced over his shoulder with a scowl. ?May I remind you, Draco,
that you ran out of the library like you were scared to death??
Draco scoffed. ?You wouldn?t understand.?

?I might understand more than you?d care to think. I don?t know if I can
study tomorrow.?

?Of course.? The same dry, vaguely amused tone.

Harry didn?t question why. He got to his feet, nodded once, and hurried
from the tower room.

He was walking passed the Great Hall when Hermione came running out of
it, shouting his name. ?I?ve got it,? she cried. ?Harry, we?ve been looking
all over for you! I?ve found directions for a potion!?

?We?re at a magic school,? Harry snapped, feeling irritable. ?It?s not that
hard to find potion directions.?

?But I found one that?ll tell me whether or not there?s a spell on you to
make you weak!?

She grabbed his arm and dragged him to Moaning Myrtle?s bathroom where
a cauldron was bubbling. ?It?s not a hard process. You lay really still and I
sprinkle the potion over you and if there is a spell on you, it?ll show us!?

?Isn?t the potion boiling, Hermione? It?s going to burn!? Harry protested
nervously.

?It cools the instant it?s off the fire, rather like molten metal, only faster,?
she said. ?The potion?s got to brew overnight, so it?ll be ready tomorrow
morning. And then we?ll do the spell. Ron convinced Myrtle to go visit the
mermaid in the prefect?s bathroom, so she won?t bother us. This potion will
help narrow down what could be wrong with you. If it?s a spell, you?ve got
to go directly to Dumbledore of course. It might be You-Know-Who? I?m
nearly done with the potion now, I?ve just got to add the last ingredients.?

?Where?s Ron??

?We split up to search the castle for you.? She shot him a suddenly
suspicious glare. ?Thought you were studying, but you weren?t in the
library??
?Yeah. It was, umm, so crowded there, I went somewhere quieter.?

?Odd,? she said coldly. ?It was empty when we went there.?

Harry cleared his throat. ?Odd. I?d best go find Ron while you finish that up.
Thanks, Hermione, for doing this.?

She sighed and smiled. ?You?re my friend, Harry. I can?t just let you be ill
without trying to help.?

He smiled at her and hurried out of the bathroom, relieved she?d let the topic
drop.

***

Strange dreams of being lost in mazes in the middle of the blizzard haunted
Harry that night, and he woke up hours before dawn because the worst
headache he had ever felt drove him from sleep.

He opened his eyes and then closed them with a whimper, even the soft light
of the stars too bright. The pain was so intense that nausea threatened and he
lay very still for a long time, breathing through his nose. The pain only
started to ebb as the sun started coming up, and even then, it was still
intense.

Hermione had made him a few headache potions the night before, and he
fumbled in his trunk, pulling one of them out and downing it quickly. It
dulled the pain but did not take it away entirely, but with the edge softened,
he was able to take stock of the rest of his body. He felt weaker than ever,
and he itched, like a thousand insects were inside his skin.

He stood up, losing his balance, and leaning over the trunk, his hands flat on
the top. The red leaf from the journal was there, tucked under the buckle and
still crimson red. He stared at it until the dark spots stopped dancing before
his eyes.

Taking a deep breath, he straightened to find Ron watching worriedly from


his bed.

?Better do the spell,? he said solemnly.


***

?Lay still,? Hermione said quietly, taking Harry?s hands and flattening them,
palm up, on the floor of Moaning Myrtle?s bathroom. She frowned and
picked one hand up, studying it. ?Harry, Malfoy was right.?

Harry?s eyes flew open. ?What??

?Your hands. They?ve got ink all over.? Hermione traced the streaks of
black.

?Harry?s always been a messy writer,? Ron said defensively. ?He didn?t
grow up writing with a quill, you know.?

?Well, neither did I, and I manage to avoid getting it all over,? she said
dismissively, dropping his hand. ?Close your eyes, Harry.? He did, and she
took a scoop full of potion. ?I?m going to start with your feet and work my
way up, sprinkling your face last. You shouldn?t feel anything, maybe a
slight tingle. Are you ready??

?Get on with it, Hermione,? Ron hissed nervously.

?I?m cold,? Harry whispered, shivering. He was covered in a cold sweat.

Hermione glanced over at Ron worriedly and then said soothingly, ?You?ll
be fine, Harry, we?ll help you.?

She started sprinkling at his feet, biting her lip and watching the clear liquid
sprinkle down on him. As soon as the liquid touched him, it glowed a faint,
green colour. ?There?s a spell,? she whispered. ?It?s all over him.?

Harry moaned softly. ?My head,? he whimpered.

?Keep sprinkling,? Ron said grimly. ?It?ll show us where it?s worse, won?t
it??

?If it?s green here, it?s probably all over,? she said.

?Just to see,? Ron insisted.


Hermione sprinkled all the way up his body to his face, and then down his
arms. At his hands, she dropped the large spoon. It hit the ground and slid
under the sink with a clatter. ?Ohhh?? she breathed.

Harry?s eyes flew open. ?What??

?Your? Harry, your hands.?

?What is it? Look, there?s a bit on his mouth, too.? Ron gasped, staring.

Harry lifted his hands, his eyes widening. A bright, luminescent green
covered them, reflecting off his glasses. Underneath the light, he could see
the black ink spots, staining his skin. ?The ink?? he hissed, feeling as if
someone dropped ice into his stomach. ?It was the ink.?

?What? Harry, what?? Hermione asked, chewing on her lip. ?What ink??

?Nothing. Nothing, I?ve got to? I?m feeling much better?? He got to his feet
and stumbled from the bathroom, hands still an eerie green, though it was
fading fast as the potion dried.

?Should we let him go?? Ron asked worriedly.

?We?ve got to tell someone,? Hermione cried.

?No, you know Harry hates that! We?ve got to find out what?s wrong with
him. Research. We can help him, can?t we??

?Of course. We?d better go to the library.? She pushed the cauldron under
the sink, where she?d already set up wards to hide it, and they hurried out of
the bathroom together.

***

?Harry! Harry!?

He stopped, narrowing his eyes and turning slowly. ?Ginny, now is not a
good time.?

Her eyes were dark with determination and she said, ?No, Harry. Hermione
says that fretting over Halloween is worthless and I should just confront you,
and that?s what I?m doing.?
His headache got a thousand times worse in a heartbeat. ?Ginny, listen, I?m
sorry about ditching you ??

?You can?t just kiss someone and touch them everywhere you touched me,
Harry,? she hissed, pushing him against the wall. It wasn?t hard; he was very
weak. ?There will always be consequences, Harry. You can?t just play
around with me.?

?Ginny, what are you talking about? I didn?t ? I can?t? please, I can?t do this
now.? He was breathing heavily and felt as if he were about to pass out. The
only things holding him up were Ginny and the wall.

?It was so humiliating,? she cried. ?First letting you kiss me like that and
touch me and then? I was so drunk??

Harry?s eyes narrowed. ?I never? Oh, fuck. Ginny, it? I?m sorry. About that.
Trust me, you?ll never know how much.? He pushed her aside gently and
she suddenly noticed his pale face and glazed eyes.

?Harry, are you?? she stepped back, and he smiled distractedly.

?I?m fine,? he lied. ?I?m sorry about everything, Ginny.?

?I? Wait! Where are you going??

He waved vaguely over his shoulder and turned the corner, leaving her
behind. Fury was giving him strength he hadn?t had before. It had all been a
joke. Draco had been playing with him, laughing at him, behind his back.
With Ginny, and the ink?

He made it to his common room and pulled out Draco?s Potions notes,
flipping through them quickly. He scowled grimly moments later and tossed
them aside, leaving the room again. It was breakfast time now, and he went
into the Great Hall, stalking over to the Slytherin table where Draco was
sitting with Blaise.

?Malfoy,? he snarled, and Draco jerked with surprise, standing up.

?Potter,? he said quietly, eyes narrowed. ?What are you doing??

?We need to talk.?


?I can?t think of anything of importance we have to discuss,? Draco said,
aware of the entire Hall watching.

?I can.?

His eyes narrowed, and Draco studied Harry?s flushed face. ?You?re not
well,? he said too quietly for anyone to hear.

?We need to talk.?

?Alright! Calm down. Let?s go.? Without another word, Draco took him by
the arm and pulled him from the Hall and out the front doors, where no one
would be able to hear them.

It was snowing heavily and, a few steps away from the castle, the snow
obscured it from vision, and it was like they were in another world. Still,
Draco tugged Harry farther from the castle, into the hollow. There, he
stopped, spinning around.

?What is it, then?? he asked, crossing his arms over his chest.

?It was you. You did something to Ginny the night of the Ball.?

?Is that what this is about?? He laughed scornfully. ?It was fun. What more
would you expect from me? Because we wrote in a stupid book a few times,
I?m supposed to turn into Wonder Boy and never do anything just because I
think it?s fun? I?m not you, Potter, and a few notes in a journal won?t ever
change that.?

Harry had stopped listening. After all, Ginny wasn?t his main concern. The
illness was making it hard to think, and he started scratching at his hands. ?I
should have known,? he growled. ?I really should have.?

?Known what?? Draco asked, narrowing his eyes. ?Harry, stop.?

?About the spell! I shouldn?t have trusted you!?

?What spell? Calm down!?

?What have you done to me? What have you done to me??

?Harry. Nothing. I haven?t done anything! Listen to me!?


He laughed hysterically. ?Maybe that?s what you did. Used it to make me
feel this way. Is that what you did??

?Harry. This is mad, stop.? Draco was getting furious. It was easier than
being frightened.

?Tell me this is real,? Harry snarled. He stalked closer, narrowed, cloudy


eyes inspecting Draco?s face. Nothing much was making sense to him
anymore. He ran his fingertips down Draco?s face. ?Tell me this is real.?

Draco, eyes dark and cold, said quietly, ?What?s real? Potter, what the hell
are you on about? This is reality, what else could it be??

Harry pushed away. ?It?s magic! It?s all a trick! You did this to me to hurt
me and humiliate me, it isn?t real, it?s not real.?

Draco froze, swallowing carefully, his own anger at Harry slowly draining
away and replaced by something that nearly made him vomit. ?Harry?
Harry, what are you talking about?? he asked carefully.

Harry laughed scornfully. ?C?mon, Draco. Did you think I wouldn?t find
out? That I?d never wonder about these things??

?Calm down, Harry, what?s going on? Did something happen??

?Of course something happened! Hermione found the spell you used on me!
She found it, Draco.?

?Spell.? Draco?s voice was heavy, his eyes unsure.

?Gobbler?s Ink, Draco. We learned about it, remember. You really should
pay attention in Potions class. No wonder you didn?t let me study that page
yesterday!?

?Harry, you don?t understand.?

?From the very beginning. The ink you left in the hollow. It wasn?t regular,
was it? Gobbler?s Ink, made with your blood,? he sneered.

Draco got angry. ?Of course, made with my blood, you idiot! Listen to me!?

?My blood as well.?


?What?? Draco?s eyes widened horribly as realization hit him. ?Your
blood??

?I cut my hand and it went all over the place. That first night.?

?Your blood? Oh, I should have known,? Draco whispered, but Harry hadn?t
heard.

??The first property of Gobbler?s Ink is that, when made with the blood of
an enemy, it works like the Imperius Curse,? Harry quoted softly. ?It makes
the writer follow the orders of the enemy whose blood is in the ink, and the
more you use it, the stronger and more powerful the effects.??

?Harry? Harry, shut up.?

?No! No, I won?t shut up!?

?There!? Draco smiled triumphantly, grimly. ?You see? If it worked that


way, you?d do it. You?d have to obey my commands. But when the hell
have you ever obeyed anything I ever said to you??

?Never.?

?Exactly.? He took a deep breath. ?It didn?t work, Harry. See? It didn?t
work. And that was before? before all of this.?

Harry paused, suddenly unsure. ?Before all of what??

Eyes widening a fraction, Draco said carefully, ?Whatever this is.? Now that
he was no longer furious, he could see a strange sort of fury in Harry?s eyes,
and fear as well. Something else was going on with Harry, something that
terrified him and probably only added to his anger.

?And what is it?? Harry asked uncertainly.

Something that had no definition, that could go one of two ways. It was
apparently up to Draco to decide which way, because the Boy-Who-Lived
suddenly seemed to run out of his legendary courage. There really wasn?t a
choice to be made. Draco couldn?t see himself choosing anything but this.
He stepped closer, watching Harry?s eyes carefully for any sign of what the
other boy was thinking. His green eyes were smoky and, for the first time,
Draco couldn?t read them. ?Are you alright??

?You?re changing the subject.?

?I?m not,? Draco replied, feeling somewhat nervous. They were close now,
as close as they had been the day before, in the tower, and Draco waited for
Harry to move back as quickly as he had then. He didn?t. He just waited and
watched with clouded eyes.

?Last chance,? Draco said quietly.

?For what??

?To run and pretend that it never happened.?

Harry rolled his eyes and it was him who closed the last tiny bit of distance
between them. His kiss wasn?t as shy as it would have been, had he not been
so ill. It was deep and very hot, because whatever mechanism in Harry?s
brain that had caused him to back off the day before had shut down with
fever and nothing mattered except carnal desires, and this one was very
carnal. His mouth was open on Draco?s, hot and hard, his tongue pushing
into Draco?s mouth even as his hands came up to hold the other boy?s face
still, though he knew, in some part of his fevered mind, that Draco wouldn?t
have pulled away.

Harry pressed so close that his teeth nearly touched Draco?s, the kiss going
from wild to violent in an instant, though Draco didn?t mind. After his initial
surprise, he had gripped Harry?s shoulders and pulled him closer, his own
tongue moving just as hard and fast against Harry?s, as if it were some sort
of struggle, a game that neither wanted to lose.

Draco pulled away first, panting loudly. ?Harry, I??

?Don?t want to talk,? Harry growled, kissing him again, and Draco was only
too happy to let the words go unsaid. After all, words could keep forever.

It was only when Harry turned his face to the side and then rested his head
weakly on Draco?s shoulder that Draco paused to catch his breath, paused to
think all of the clamoring thoughts that were screaming in his mind, about
how very wrong it was to be tangled up in the arms of Harry Potter. But
somehow, so very sinfully right at the same time.

And then Harry?s legs crumpled beneath him and he clung to Draco?s
shoulders. Draco would have made some joke about the effect of his kiss on
Harry?s strength, but it was then that he suddenly noticed the heat radiating
off Harry?s skin. He carefully lowered him to the ground, lying Harry on his
back.

Harry was burning up with a fever.

?Shit,? Draco mumbled. ?Harry, you?re burning up.?

Harry moaned softly and closed his eyes. ?Hurts,? he whimpered.

?No, no, don?t pass out, we?ve got to get you to the castle,? Draco said
firmly, but Harry didn?t reply. He?d lost consciousness.

Swearing softly to himself, Draco cast a lightening spell and lifted Harry
easily, cradling him against his chest. He hurried back to the castle, talking
sternly to Harry all the way, but Harry didn?t hear a word of it.

Rather than wasting time at the hospital wing, Draco went straight to the
dungeons, knocking on Snape?s office door. After all, he had a strong
suspicion of what was wrong; he?d seen the faint green glow on Harry?s
hands.

Snape opened the door and his mouth fell open in shock at the sight of
Malfoy carrying Potter, but Draco didn?t waste time with explanations. He
pushed past and set Harry down on Snape?s desk before turning back to his
professor. ?Are there any negative effects to touching or swallowing
Gobbler?s Ink?? he asked bluntly.

Snape glanced once at Harry and then back to Draco. ?Of course there are,?
he hissed. ?That?s why I had you wear gloves when we worked with it!
That?s why it?s a seventh year potion, it goes without saying that it?s
dangerous! You haven?t used it on Potter, have you, Malfoy? Surely you
realize that a huge loss of house points would be unavoidable.?

Draco nodded impatiently. ?I don?t care, can you fix him? He?s touched it,
it?s all over his hands, and he chews his quills, all the time, I?ve seen him,
it?s a nervous habit, and I never even thought?? A nervous habit the same
way rambling seemed to be one of Draco?s. ?He?s ill,? he finished weakly.

?I?m a Potions Master,? Snape snapped. ?Of course I can fix him, if it?s not
too late already. How long ago did he touch it??

?At least once a day since the beginning of October,? Draco said quietly.

Snape swore softly, inspecting Harry. ?It?s poison, Malfoy. Progressive.


Even once touch is enough to make someone ill, but that much contact is
very grave indeed. Did you touch it??

?Maybe a little,? Draco said with a shrug. ?But Harry?s got it all over his
hands, he swallowed it.? A sudden memory made Draco?s eyes widen.
?And? and I may have swallowed a bit. A little bit. I?? He felt his face
slowly turn red. ?I ate something from his hand and his fingers were in my
mouth.? His throat felt like ashes, confessing something like that to his
professor.

?Very hungry, were you?? Snape sneered. He rolled his eyes and looked a
little sick, and then nodded curtly, using summoning charms to get necessary
supplies from his cupboards while still working on Harry. ?Mix the Beezle
powder and the powered Bicorn horn with warm water, it?ll stop the ink
that?s on his hands from soaking into the skin any further. I?ll have to see if
it?s not too late to stop the flow of poison in his blood stream.?

?He?ll be alright,? Draco stated, not in any way a question, though he darted
a nervous glance at Snape.

Snape scowled. ?Perhaps.?

And Draco didn?t ask any more questions.

***

Hours later, Harry lay in a bed in the hospital wing, feverish and drifting in
and out of sleep. Snape had done his best with the antidote and now that
potion warred with the poison in Harry?s blood, and morning would tell if
Harry would survive. Granger and Weasley had heard of his illness and
come running, as Draco knew they would. After Snape had given him some
of the antidote as well, he stayed away from the hospital wing all day.
Dumbledore called him into his office and asked about the circumstances
behind the ink, lectured him, talked for nearly an hour, most of which Draco
didn?t pay attention to, as worried as he was about Harry. He busied himself
with homework until he simply could not stand it any longer. To distract
himself further, he grabbed his broomstick and went flying around and
around the grounds until the sun had set and Granger and Weasley would
have been sent to bed. Then he snuck in to the hospital wing, where Harry
slept uneasily.

?Harry?? he whispered, and Harry turned his head, opening his eyes. They
were cloudier than ever, and somehow larger than they?d ever seemed
before, because his glasses were sitting on the table nearby.

?Draco,? Harry said, licking his lips. They were cracked and dry.

?Alright??

Harry didn?t answer, but he reached out, trying to grab Draco?s hand.
Surprised, Draco took his hand instinctively, and Harry closed his eyes,
smiling a little, and slipping back into sleep.

It didn?t last long. He started tossing and turning, jerking his hand away
from Draco?s, and mumbling in his sleep. Draco watched him, guilt nearly
making him sick. He hadn?t meant to poison Harry, even in the beginning,
when he?d first made the ink and left it in the hollow, though his motives
hadn?t been pure then. He had never even thought that touching the ink
would be poisonous, or that Harry would be thick enough to swallow it.

Harry had gone quiet, his back turned to Draco, and Draco stood up, about to
sneak back to his dormitory. The noise caused Harry to turn onto his back,
blinking up at him.

?Stay with me,? Harry whispered, and Draco dropped back into his chair in a
heartbeat.

?Are you better?? he asked.

Harry whimpered. ?It hurts.?

?What hurts??
?My head.?

Draco touched his fingertips to Harry?s forehead. It was clammy, burning


hot. ?I?m sorry.?

Harry turned his face into Draco?s hand, and Draco trailed his fingers down
Harry?s cheek. They didn?t speak for a long time, and Draco thought that
Harry had fallen back to sleep.

He hadn?t. His face still cradled in Draco?s hand and his voice rough, husky
with fever, Harry started talking softly, ramblings that, for the most part,
made no sense, brought on by fever. Sometimes the words were
disconnected, random, and Harry almost seemed to be talking to someone
else that wasn?t there, and at other times, they were deeply personal
thoughts that Harry probably didn?t even know he had in his mind. It was
incredibly intimate, dark, and closer to any human being than Draco had
ever been, even if Harry didn?t realize that he was even talking, and
probably wouldn?t remember in the morning.

Draco stayed there all through the night, watching over Harry, and sometime
shortly before dawn, he started talking softly, telling Harry things he?d never
told anyone before. He didn?t do it out of guilt, or any need to talk. He did it
because Harry?s fever had caused him to talk in his sleep, and he had told
Draco thousands of secrets he?d probably never told anyone. It was only fair
that Draco do the same.

Chapter Seven

Destiny is not a matter of chance, it is a matter of choice; it is not a thing to


be waited for, it is a thing to be achieved.
-William Jennings Bryan

The antidote worked and Harry?s fever broke the next day. He slept deeply,
normally, until just after dusk, catching up on all the sleep he?d missed in
the weeks of the progressive illness. When he finally woke, Draco was
sitting at his bedside, elbows resting on the mattress, chin cupped in his
hands, dark shadows under his eyes, and an oddly thoughtful look on his
face.

He didn?t notice Harry had woken for a few minutes, and Harry studied
Draco?s face silently through his lashes. His mind was muddled, his throat
rough, and he was trying frantically to sort through his foggy memories and
remember what had happened.

He swallowed heavily, trying to clear his throat, and Draco jumped. ?Harry!
I-I didn?t know?oh. How are you??

?Thirsty,? Harry admitted.

?Oh. Oh, yeah, Pomfrey left some potion?? He hopped off his chair and
went to a nearby table, pouring the Throat Soothing Potion into a goblet, and
passing it to Harry, who sat up and sipped it. It tasted like warm honey and
made it easier to talk.

Draco was watching his face carefully, as if waiting for him to say
something, anything. Harry couldn?t think of what it could be that he was
supposed to be talking about. ?It was the ink. You? you poisoned me.?

Draco?s eyes slid away. ?Harry, I didn?t mean to,? he said quietly.
?Honestly. I didn?t know? it wasn?t supposed to??

Harry frowned thoughtfully. He vaguely remembered having this argument


before but it was hard to pick apart the memories from the dreams. ?You
expect me to believe you?? he asked, no accusation or anger in his tone, only
confusion. ?I could have died.?

Draco swallowed. ?I know.?

Tilting his head thoughtfully, Harry studied him again, trying to think of
something to say, anything to say. He just didn?t know how to make things
better. This had only proven what he?d known all along. That he shouldn?t
trust Draco. That he should know better. But he wanted to trust him. ?Give
me a reason to trust you,? he said finally. ?What have you done that shows
me I can trust you??

He should have snapped something about how Malfoys didn?t have to prove
themselves to anyone, but Draco didn?t. He stared down at Harry in surprise,
and then said slowly, ?I?if I was trying to kill you, I would have. Last night,
when I? You were sick and weak, if I wanted you dead, it would have been
so easy.? He said the last bit defiantly.

Harry smiled slowly and whispered, ?Oh, I remember. You told me secrets.?
Draco winced but didn?t reply.

?Most of it?s all very blurry. What happened? I? I remember we fought,


outside in the snow, but I can?t remember what we really said.?

?Ah.?

?What??

Draco smiled strangely and shrugged. ?Nothing. Nothing happened, nothing


at all. We fought and shouted and then you passed out. That?s all.?

?What happened after that?? Harry asked, narrowing his eyes. Strange
images that must have come from dreams were flickering in his memory,
cloudy and disjointed.

?I carried you back inside and Snape made the antidote and it worked.
Simple.?

With the strange feeling that Draco was neglecting to mention something,
Harry licked his lips. ?Is it better now? I?m alright??

?I think so.? Draco picked up one of Harry?s hands and studied it. ?The ink
stains are gone. If only you weren?t so messy, Potter,? he said, shaking his
head with a rueful smile.

?So? so, Draco, the ink didn?t work??

Draco?s eyes slid away from his and he let go of Harry?s hand. ?I messed up
an important ingredient,? he said with a shrug. ?You?re not under my spell
or anything.?

Harry smiled but didn?t say anything. He was exhausted, and lay back on the
pillows. ?It?s alright,? he said sleepily. ?It couldn?t have been all that bad,
being under your spell. You?re not as bad as you like to pretend.?

Draco snorted. ?How would you know??

?You told me,? Harry whispered, closing his eyes and smiling. ?I
remember.? He fell asleep with a low purring sound in the back of his throat,
nestling into the pillow.
Draco studied him for a long moment, before turning away. He paused at the
door, glancing over his shoulder. ?You?re wrong,? he said quietly, but Harry
didn?t hear.

***

Snape, still sour and cold, came early the next morning to check on Harry,
making sure all traces of the potion had been destroyed. Harry watched him
through his lashes, awkward because he didn?t know how to deal with his
professor any longer. He didn?t know how much Draco had told him.

Snape didn?t speak either, until after he?d checked Harry over. Then, his
voice was curt. ?Stupid thing to do, Potter, poisoning yourself.?

He opened his mouth to point out that he hadn?t poisoned himself, and then
snapped it shut. After all, Snape surely knew at least that much. ?It was an
accident,? he said instead of setting things right. After all, it had been an
accident. Just not his. He didn?t know why he was protecting Draco when
Snape probably already knew that Draco was the only one with the potion
skills besides Hermione to brew the Potion. It was for the same reason that
he refused to question why he didn?t hate Draco for the entire affair. His
mind refused to focus on just what that reason was, however. Instead, he
concentrated only on Draco?s voice, talking for hours, whispering secrets
about himself that didn?t matter, so much as they were secrets he?d shared
only with Harry. That mattered far more than the potion that had
accidentally poisoned him.

His upper curled, and Snape sneered, ?If only you weren?t so messy, Potter.
But no matter, I?ve managed to stop the poison. You?ll make a complete
recovery and be back to disrupting my classroom in no time, I?m sure.?

?Professor Snape, there?s something I don?t understand,? Harry said finally.


?I stopped using the ink a few days ago, and the illness still got worse.?

?It?s a progressive poison. You touch it once, and it?s in your blood. If
untreated, it gains in potency inside the body, and kills.?

?Ah. But? but it?s gone, right? I?m alright??

Snape nodded curtly. ?Those effects have been neutralized, yes.?


When Harry asked nervously what other effects there were, Snape smiled in
a disagreeable fashion and didn?t reply.

Harry was released from the hospital wing later that day, with orders to rest
and go to class the next day if he was feeling sufficiently stronger. Any
relapse of the symptoms and he was required to return to Madam Pomfrey at
once.

He let himself into the common room and for a moment, thought it was
empty. It wasn?t.

?Harry!? Ginny cried, leaping up from the chair by the fire she?d been
curled up in. ?Are you alright? Ron said you were sick!?

?I?m fine,? Harry said awkwardly.

She licked her lips nervously. ?Uh, Harry, were you sick on Halloween, too?
Is that why you? you kissed me like that??

Harry had the sinking suspicion that Ginny would freak out even worse than
she already had if she knew that it hadn?t been him at all on Halloween. He
ran a hand through his hair. ?Sort of??

?So you didn?t really want to kiss me??

?I, uh. That?s not the point.? Curiosity overrode good common sense.
?Ginny, to be honest, I don?t even remember what happened that night. Can
you? Can you tell me??

Ginny?s eyes widened a little bit, and she sat heavily back in her chair,
tucking her feet underneath her. ?I-I guess. Alright.?

Harry sat down beside her. ?I don?t remember,? he said again.

She nodded. ?Well, I? don?t really? it?s sort of foggy. Apparently the punch
was spiked.? She grimaced.

?What do you remember??

She swallowed hard. ?First you kissed me, here,? she pointed to the hollow
of her throat.
Harry?s eyes followed her fingers, studying her neck, shifting as a strange
sort of intimacy he?d never known before washed over him. It didn?t really
have anything to do with Ginny, though it was her face and her neck and,
most of all, her lips he was focused on. ?Then what?? he asked, his voice
thick.

?You? you kissed me. I didn?t know how. But you? taught me how.?

?Do you remember how??

Her face blushed fiery red. ?Yes.?

?Show me? Will you?? he cleared his throat. He didn?t know what he was
asking for or why he wanted it, but he wanted to know how Draco had
kissed her.

?You want me to kiss you?? she asked breathlessly.

Harry nodded wordlessly and Ginny slid closer, playing with her hair and
looking pale. ?Just like you kissed me?? Harry nodded again.

Ginny studied his face and Harry studied hers. She didn?t say anything else,
just leaned up, her mouth opened the tiniest bit, and pressed her lips to his.
Her entire body was trembling, and Harry growled softly in annoyance. He
was quite sure Draco hadn?t been shaking when he?d kissed her.

It didn?t taste right either, and at first, Harry was completely put off. He
hadn?t closed his eyes, and he watched her pale, freckled face while she
kissed him, firelight flickering in the red highlights in her hair. She gained a
bit of confidence and started kissing him the way Harry was sure Draco had
kissed her.

It wasn?t right, it wasn?t worth it. She tasted like peaches, and Harry hated
peaches. He pulled away and ran a hand through his hair.

Ginny was frowning. ?That wasn?t? That was?strange.? She was still
shaking, and Harry scowled. Draco would never tremble over a kiss.

?I-I?ve got to go,? he said suddenly, standing up. Ginny watched him, still
looking confused.
?Harry, what??

?Sorry, I?m just? so tired. I?ll see you tomorrow, alright? I?ve got to rest
Pomfrey said I should??

She leapt up. ?Of course, I didn?t mean to? to keep you down here. Go on.
I?ll see you at breakfast, if you?re feeling better.?

He nodded distractedly and hurried from the room.

***

?Feeling better, Harry?? Hermione asked first thing the next morning when
Harry stumbled into the common room, still half asleep.

?Yes,? he replied. ?A little tired, but fine.?

She smiled, relieved. ?Oh, good, we were so worried. No one would tell us
what was wrong, and after the spell I did, we thought Voldemort--?

?It was? It was something from Potions class,? Harry said quickly, shifting
nervously. She?d kill Draco if she knew what had really happened. ?I was
clumsy and got it all over my hands.?

She frowned. ?But Harry, what??

?I don?t really want to talk about it,? Harry interrupted, smiling to take the
sting out of his words. ?I don?t want to remember. It was? it was horrible.?

Patting his shoulder, she said soothingly, ?Of course, Harry. I?m just glad
you?re alright.? She let the topic drop, though she still looked suspicious.

They went to the Great Hall together, eating breakfast, though Ginny was
jumpy and unusually silent.

They were making their way to class after breakfast when Pansy pushed her
way through the crowds. ?Ron!? she called, and Ron stopped, grinning
widely at her. She wrapped her arms around his neck and kissed him as
people all around pressed by, hurrying to class. When Pansy tackled Ron, it
unbalanced Harry, who?d been standing too close, and knocked him into
Ginny.
?Are you alright?? he asked breathlessly, grabbing her wrist to steady her.
She grabbed his hand for balance, and before Harry could pull away,
someone spoke from behind him.

?Potter.? The voice was quiet, he was surprised he even heard it over the
noise, but he heard it just the same, and spun around, Ginny spinning with
him. It was Draco, and his eyes lingered on Harry?s face before slipping
down to his hand, held tightly by Ginny, and then up to Ginny?s face. His
smile was sharp, sarcastic. ?Cute.?

?Draco,? Harry said quietly, nervously. He tried to drop Ginny?s hand but
she was clinging in terror.

?Leave us alone, Malfoy,? she cried shrilly.

Pansy and Ron were still kissing, and Harry couldn?t escape without leaving
Ginny there to face Draco alone, however much he wanted to escape
Draco?s cold gray eyes. ?What, are you two ?going steady? now?? Draco
drawled disdainfully.

Harry opened his mouth to deny it, but Ginny spoke before he could. ?It?s
none of your business!?

Draco laughed. ?Oh, don?t kid yourself into thinking I care, Weasley. I
don?t know what shocks me more, that Potter?s lowered his standards
enough to be with someone like you, or that someone as frigid as you even
lets him hold your hand.?

Harry nearly laughed, which would have been disastrous. Instead, he


swallowed the urge, because Ginny looked like she was going to cry. He
said quietly, ?That?s not necessary, Malfoy.?

This time, when Draco?s eyes met his, they weren?t cold. They were
burning with fury. ?Oh, I find it very necessary,? he snapped, pushing past.

Harry vaguely heard Pansy say breathlessly, ?Meet me for lunch,? before
she hurried to follow Draco to Potions.

?I don?t like him,? Ginny snarled. She was still holding Harry?s hand, and
Harry didn?t reply. He let go of her hand and she shot him a hurt glare.
***

He didn?t know why he was so furious.

Who was he kidding? Of course he knew why he was furious. But Draco
didn?t want to dwell on it. It was stupid. It was a waste of time. It was
wrong.

He threw another stone onto the freshly frozen surface of the lake, and it tore
a chunk of ice off that glittered like glass in the sunlight. He smiled grimly
in a satisfied sort of way and then dug in the snow for another rock.

He?d skipped his first class. He just didn?t want to go. He was so angry.
Snape would just have to deal with it. It wasn?t like Draco needed to go to
class. He knew everything he needed to know? well, except that Gobbler?s
Ink was poisonous. But he knew that now.

Another stone ricocheted off the lake, the cracking sound splitting the air.

He was still throwing stones a while later when there were footsteps behind
him. He knew who it was; he didn?t have to turn.

?You shouldn?t be out here,? he said quietly. ?You?re still weak.?

Harry snorted but didn?t reply at first. When he did speak, it had nothing to
do with his illness. ?You weren?t in Potions.?

?No, I wasn?t.?

?I thought maybe you?d be by our tree.?

Draco finally glanced over his shoulder, flicking his blond hair out of his
eyes and smiling a little. ?Why?d you think that??

Harry shrugged. ?Dunno. But I heard the rocks hitting the ice.? Draco didn?t
reply. ?It?s strange,? Harry said to break the silence. ?I can?t remember the
lake ever having frozen before.?

?It freezes every winter,? Draco said. ?The squid breaks up the ice every
night, just before dawn. We can hear it from the Slytherin dungeon. Cracks
like bones.?
Silence. Harry sighed. ?Draco.?

?What?? Draco snapped.

?What?s wrong? I don?t understand.?

?I don?t want to talk about it.?

?Are you? are you jealous??

Draco?s eyes widened and he laughed scornfully. It came out sounding


brittle. ?Of what??

?I?don?t know. But in the hall today, she just grabbed my hand. I?d bumped
into her, that?s all. We aren?t?together or anything.? Harry replied with a
shrug. He had brushed the snow off a log and sat down heavily on it. ?And
you did snog her. Maybe you fancy her, how am I supposed to know??

For one, wild second, Draco feared he was going to cry. Not because he was
sad or anything of the sort. Because Harry had it so backwards, so morbidly
wrong, that it was hilarious. The very idea that he could ever fancy Ginny
Weasley?

He laughed instead, hysterically.

?What??

After he?d calmed down a little, Draco was able to say, ?Let?s just? forget it,
alright?? Then he glanced at Harry again, who was looking exasperated,
confused, and a little amused, and he started laughing all over again.

?Alright,? Harry agreed, though Draco was laughing too hard to hear. Harry
didn?t even know what it was supposed to be that they were forgetting. He
half feared that he?d already forgotten it. Or that maybe? maybe it was
something from one of his feverish dreams. ?Will you still help me with
Potions?? Harry asked after a pause.

Draco glanced at him out of the corner of his eyes. ?Nothing better to do,?
he said with a lopsided, very amused smile.

***
They continued working together, and Harry began to rely more and more
on those hours as a means of escape. After all, since that morning after
breakfast, Ginny seemed to have taken his rejection of her to heart, and she
insisted on watching him with wide, teary eyes. It was maddening. Ron, too,
seemed to only ever look at him with reproach in his eyes.

It was mid November and winter had taken a firm grasp on Hogwarts,
capturing the grounds in a frigid cap of ice and snow that would last until
spring. That meant that there were less places for Harry to hide. He couldn?t
spend hours alone outside in the freezing cold, and someone always
managed to find him inside the castle. More and more, he found himself
alone in the tower, working on the Potions essay until all hours of the night.
Draco learned that whenever he wanted to find Harry, he needed only to
search in the South Tower and he was virtually assured of finding him.

He?d spend hours up there with Harry as well, explaining things Harry
didn?t understand, teaching him whatever he felt necessary to mention in the
essay.

On the night before the essay was due, Draco went up to the tower,
expecting to find Harry writing frantically. At first, when he stepped into the
tower room, he thought it was empty. His Potions notebook, which Harry
had borrowed, lay open on the floor however, pages ruffling in the freezing
breeze that blew through the open window.

?Harry?? Draco called, approaching the window. He stuck his head out
cautiously, looking first down at the ground, half afraid Harry had jumped.
He hadn?t, and Draco was about to turn back when Harry called his name
from up above. Draco looked up. ?You?re on the roof!? he cried.

Harry grinned. ?I know. It?s lovely up here.?

?Shouldn?t you be working??

?I?ve gone over everything twice, there?s nothing more to write. I can?t
possibly cram any more into my essay than I have already.?

?So you climbed onto the tower roof.?

?Yes. It?s lovely up here,? Harry repeated. ?Come up.?


?Oh no. I don?t do roofs. Heights. No.?

Harry?s eyes widened. ?Draco Malfoy, afraid of heights? You?re joking.


You?re a Seeker, Draco. You fly on a broomstick.?

?Exactly, I can control that. I can?t control roofs!? Draco felt slightly
nauseous just standing at the window. ?I think it?s a Slytherin thing, really.
That?s why our dorms are in the dungeons.?

Harry laughed and extended his hand towards Draco. ?It?ll be fine, I won?t
let you fall. C?mon. Climb onto the sill, grab my hand, and I?ll pull you up.
If Ron and Pansy can do it, you can. She?s a Slytherin too, after all.?

?I didn?t say I couldn?t do it,? Draco snapped. ?I said I wouldn?t.? Despite


his words, however, and ignoring his shaking hands and better judgment, he
slid onto the windowsill until his feet were dangling far above the ground.

Not looking down, he reached up and grabbed Harry?s hands. ?Don?t


worry,? Harry said lazily, snickering. ?If you slip, I?ll catch you with a
levitation spell before you hit the ground.?

?If I slip?? Draco cried, but half a second later, Harry yanked on his hands
and jerked him up onto the roof until he was sitting on the cold, rough
surface right beside Harry.

Draco was breathing heavily and Harry smiled at him. ?Not so hard, see?
And it?s lovely, I told you.?

They could see far in all directions, the silver moonlight reflecting off the
icy snow until it was lost in the darkness of the forest, and everything was
very still, hushed. ?It is,? Draco agreed grudgingly.

?This is how Pansy and Ron escaped the tower,? Harry told him. ?They
lowered themselves down to that wall there and walked across it to the
window we saw them come through.?

There was silence for a while, as Draco looked around, feeling strangely
calmer now, even if he was so high up. He was beside Harry, however, and
somehow, that made him feel?safe. As if Harry really would have time to
catch him before he fell.
Harry was inspecting Draco?s face in the moonlight, the silver lights making
his hair even paler, his face smoother, younger. ?Have you ever thought
about how strange this all is?? he asked finally.

Draco smirked. ?All the time. It?s wrong.?

?It is, isn?t it?? Harry asked quietly, fiddling with the sleeve of his robes. He
was shivering.

Draco looked at him and shrugged. It was silent for a while, and Harry
smiled self-consciously and shrugged, resting his head on his knees, which
were pulled up to his chest. His breath was fogging up his glasses and he
was shivering with cold, but for the life of him, he couldn?t think of a single
place he?d rather be.

?You?re staying over the Christmas holidays, aren?t you?? Harry asked
suddenly.

Draco glanced at him. ?Yeah. Why??

?I was suddenly worried I?d have to sit up here by myself over the
holidays.? Harry smiled.

?You won?t. I?m the only Slytherin staying.?

He sounded quiet, and Harry turned to look at him thoughtfully,


remembering that first night, seeing Draco drunk in the forest. ?Draco? why
aren?t you going home??

Draco tilted his head and remained silent, staring at the snowy ground, and
Harry thought he wasn?t going to answer. He was surprised when Draco said
abruptly, ?My mother died, Harry, did you know? Last summer.?

?I?I?m sorry.? Harry didn?t know what to say.

Draco smiled, though it was a grim, nasty looking smile. ?Father doesn?t
want me home because I nearly cried when she died. It?s weakness. He said?
that if I hadn?t been so weak, my mother never would have died at all.?

?He blamed you?? Harry whispered. ?It couldn?t have been you?re fault.?
?It was, indirectly, I guess.? Draco glanced at Harry sideways, and then
focused his eyes on the ground. He was wondering whether or not he had the
courage to tell Harry the truth, and was faintly surprised when he found that
he did. ?The most important thing to a Malfoy, besides money, is an heir,
and I was supposed to be my father?s. I was never good enough. Oh, I
wasn?t abused or anything, and I was his son, he was just never proud of me.
I was a weak boy, born too early. My mother wasn?t made for having
children, I was born too early, weak lungs, all of that. Father wasn?t
impressed and he?d been trying to get a real heir ever since. He almost
succeeded, the baby should have been born over the summer. She died in
childbirth.? His voice remained toneless while he spoke, though his hand
shook the tiniest bit.

Harry was quiet for a long moment, and then he took a deep breath. ?And
your father blames you.?

?If I was stronger, they?d never have tried having another.?

?That?s not your fault.?

?I know. He doesn?t feel the same. I tried, I mean, when I was a child, I was
always smaller, but I was strong. Tried to do everything the way he wanted.
Mother was proud of me. I wouldn?t have ?? His voice nearly cracked and
Draco grew furious. ?I wouldn?t ever have hurt her.?

?It wasn?t your fault.?

Draco shrugged. ?She?s dead, the baby died, and Father doesn?t want me
home. It doesn?t matter, Potter.?

Harry studied his face for a moment in silence and then nodded, turning
back to stare up at the moon. ?What was it like?? he asked quietly a short
while later. ?Having a mother, I mean.?

Draco smiled a little crookedly, sadly. ?She never minded when I was sick
as a child. She always brought me food and petted my hair and read me
stories until I was better.?

?I bet my mum would have been like that.?


They were quiet for a long time, shivering together in the cold and staring
thoughtfully out at the snow-covered grounds. The silence between them
wasn?t awkward; not a word had been spoken, but a thousand things had
been said. Nothing had to be put into words because they both understood
what the other kept silent.

***

Two days later, as they waited for Potions class to begin, Hermione was
nervously biting her nails and Ron was paler than usual, casting Harry
pitying glances.

?He probably marked it massively hard.?

?I?m not worried, Ron,? Harry said easily.

?He shouldn?t have made you do it,? Hermione growled. ?You?d just been
sick.?

?Hermione, honestly, it?ll be fine.?

Snape swept into the room with a fierce scowl. He stalked to the front of the
room, spun on his heel, slammed Harry?s essay down on his own desk, and
snarled, ?Which of you Gryffindors helped him?? His eyes were trained on
Hermione, who had gone horribly pale.

?None of them, sir. Why, did I do well??

Draco, sitting in the front row, smirked over his shoulder and Harry smiled.
?He?s telling the truth, sir,? Draco said suddenly, and Snape, for the first
time ever, looked like he wanted to murder his favourite student.

?And how, Malfoy, would you know?? he asked silkily instead.

Malfoy shrugged. ?I saw him at it, sir. Researching and such, by himself.
Trust me, if he?d have let those filthy Gryffindors help him even once, I?d
tell you. I?d like nothing better than to have the prat kicked out of school, as
you well know. However,? he scowled in disgust, ?he didn?t do anything
wrong. Did he do well?? There was a hint of anxiety in the last question that
anyone listening would have taken for hope that Harry had failed. Harry,
however, knew better.
?What?s he doing, sticking up for you?? Hermione hissed. Harry didn?t
reply.

Snape slammed the exam on Harry?s table and walked away without another
word. ?A ?B??? Harry said out loud, surprise in his tone.

?Oh, don?t worry, Harry!? Hermione said soothingly. ?A B?s not so bad.?

?It?s bloody brilliant!? Harry, who had only been aiming to pass, cried,
stealing Ron?s favourite phrase. Ron was grinning broadly.

?It is,? he agreed, and Snape tossed a malevolent look over his shoulder.
Draco was staring down at his desk in an attempt to hide his smile, lest
anyone think he was glad Harry had passed. He was glad, but that was
hardly the point.

***

That night, Harry fed Hedwig an owl treat and tied the letter to Sirius he?d
written earlier to her leg, watching her fly away into the night. Then, aching
with exhaustion, he curled up under the covers, asleep nearly instantly.

He dreamed of gauzy shadow fingers with claws brushing over his entire
body, the sharp scratching of the nails contrasting with the wispy breath of
shadow against his skin and eyes. He began to scratch his arms in his sleep,
trying to keep the cold, sharp shadows away from his skin.

He awoke so suddenly that at first, Harry thought it must have been his scar
hurting that had woken him. He clapped one hand to his forehead, but there
was no pain, and he squinted into the darkness.

Someone was standing over him.

Harry sat up so quickly that they nearly bumped heads, simultaneously


reaching for his glasses and his wand. Before he could reach his glasses,
they were swept from the table and he nearly panicked. He couldn?t curse an
enemy he couldn?t see, after all.

Before he could scream, his glasses were suddenly jammed rather roughly,
crookedly, onto his face and then, a good deal more gently, pushed up the
bridge of his nose.
He blinked up into the darkness, struggling to see who it was.

It was Draco, and he was grinning like a madman.

?What are you doing in here?? Harry yelped. Dean rolled over and started
mumbling in his sleep.

?Shh,? Draco hissed. ?Come here, I want to show you something.?

He grabbed Harry?s hand and tugged forcefully, the natural motion


questioned by neither as Harry let himself be pulled out of bed. ?Show me
what?? he mumbled sleepily, even as he stumbled, barefoot, out of the room
and down the stone stairs.

Draco didn?t reply. The window he?d climbed in was still open, and huge,
wet snowflakes were blowing in, swirling in the cold wind.

?You climbed the wall,? Harry said dumbly, staring at the snow quickly
piling up on the floor.

He grinned. ?You told me how. You didn?t think I wouldn?t remember how
Pansy and Weasley escaped the tower, did you? C?mon.?

Through the window, across the wall, and up the other tower they went,
Harry?s bare feet slipping on the snowy stone, though he didn?t notice. He
was still half asleep, wearing his pajamas, and Draco was holding his hand.
For some reason, the rest didn?t seem to matter.

Draco pulled him up onto the tower and them spun him around so that he
was standing on the edge, facing outwards. ?Look,? he breathed, the word
misting from his lips.

Huge, lacy flakes of snow were swirling madly from the clouds, enclosing
them in another world of white lace and cold wind. The flakes melted the
instant they hit Harry?s face.

?What?? he asked, distractedly. He was staring down at where Draco?s hand


was still clasping his.

?It?s snowing,? Draco said. He had the look of an excited little boy, his face
was glowing, and Harry realized he?d never seen such a look of pure
excitement, not hidden by a casual sneer or a sarcastic smirk on Draco?s
face. He turned back to look at the snow, determined, this time, to see it as
Draco did.

?Alright,? he said finally, as Draco?s fingers shifted around his hand. He


was hoping that Draco wouldn?t realize he was holding it and that he
wouldn?t let go, and spoke only to distract him.

?Alright, what?? Draco asked.

?It?s snowing.?

Draco looked at him out of the corner of his eyes and burst out laughing. It
rang sharply in the air and he dimly thought that he?d laughed more in the
last few days with Harry than in all the rest of his life.

Harry rolled his eyes, watching Draco?s face. He was still feeling rather
groggy and snow had melted on his glasses, giving everything a hazy,
dreamlike look. Rather like those dreams of he and Draco from when he?d
been ill. Of him kissing Draco. Which certainly couldn?t have been real.

Draco tilted his head back, staring up at the snow for a moment, and then
back at Harry. ?My mother had this snow globe,? he said finally. ?Father
gave it to her when they were dating, when they both went to this school.
He?d bought it in Hogsmeade, it was just a cheap little thing, which is why I
was so surprised, to find it in a box one summer when I was eight or so. It
was Hogwarts, and the snow inside was enchanted to swirl like this forever
and never stop. I don?t know what happened to it, but it was just like this.?

?Somehow, I can?t see Lucius buying his date anything cheap,? Harry
commented.

Draco smiled. ?I know. And I can?t see my mother keeping anything cheap.
It was strange.?

?You woke me up to bring me out here to watch it snow because your father
bought your mother a cheap gift.?

?Mmm. Yes. And? I was lonely.? He shrugged, looking away. ?I was just up
here thinking.? He suddenly noticed Harry?s feet, slowly turning blue in the
snow. ?Shit, Harry! You didn?t grab any shoes!?
?You didn?t give me time!? Harry cried. He watched a little nervously as
Draco lifted his feet, one by one, and conjured up shoes for them, shoes that
seemed enchanted to keep his feet warm. He then conjured up a huge fleece
blanket and wrapped it around Harry?s shoulders. Shivering as he snuggled
into it, Harry smiled gratefully.

?It is pretty,? he said, glancing around again. ?The snow, I mean.?

Draco smiled. ?Mmm hmm.?

?I?m glad you woke me up.?

It was quite for a while, the soft sort of quiet that isn?t awkward and doesn?t
need to be filled. Harry, warm under the blanket Draco had made him, was
lost in thought for a few moments. Finally, he asked, ?When you?re
choosing someone to spend the rest of your life with, do you think you ought
to pick someone just like you? Or??

?Or what??

?Someone who completes you.?

Draco was quiet for a short while, and then he said, ?It depends on what you
want. If you want things to be calm and orderly and for everything to be
perfect and neat, pick someone just like you, because their weaknesses will
be yours, your strengths will be theirs, and there will be no struggle for
dominance or superiority because everything will be equal.?

Harry scowled. ?What if I don?t want that? It sounds rather stagnant.?

?What do you want to do then??

Maybe it was the snow, giving things a fantasy-like glow. Maybe it was the
droplets on his glasses making things seem like a dream. Whatever it was, it
caused Harry?s eyes to narrow the tiniest bit as he studied Draco in the
darkness. Snowflakes were clinging to Draco?s eyelashes, and Harry
watched with fascination when Draco blinked and they spilled off,
disappearing in an instant when they touched his face.

Unnerved by his stare, Draco turned away, looking straight ahead, and he
opened his mouth to say something, anything.
Harry didn?t give him the chance. He reached up, his fingers touching
Draco?s jaw, applying the slightest pressure, and that?s all it took. Draco
turned his face back, eyes widening a fraction with something that looked a
little like fear (Draco Malfoy, afraid of Harry Potter? Absurd.). Harry
studied his face for an endless second before closing his eyes and kissing
him very gently. It seemed the thing to do, because he was cold and Draco
looked so warm? and because Draco surely, surely couldn?t kiss as perfectly
in real life as he had in those feverish dreams in the forest.

Draco was holding very still, almost as if he were afraid that if he moved,
he?d scare Harry away. His chest shuddered as he let out a breath he?d been
holding so long that it had made him dizzy, and the breath misted between
them. Harry smiled, a quick, lopsided smile that Draco felt against his lips,
and then pressed closer.

It was very gentle, more of an exploration, an experiment, than a kiss, just


lips against lips and the touch of fingertips along cheekbones and necks and
throats. Very fragile, it was given an otherworldly cast in the swirling, softly
falling snow.

Draco?s eyes widened and then closed at the first brush of Harry?s tongue
against his lower lip, and he finally moved, responding to something he had
at first not known how to respond to. He opened his mouth and Harry
pressed even closer, eyes closed now, breathing faster, almost nervous.

It wasn?t a long kiss, just a bare taste, and then Harry was pulling away, the
tip of his tongue brushing his own lips in a subconscious effort to prolong it.

Draco swallowed. ?I thought you didn?t remember,? he said huskily.

Harry?s eyes narrowed. ?I thought it was a dream.?

A quick smile twisted Draco?s lips and disappeared just as fast, and then
there was silence as they both struggled to think things through as quickly as
they could. Harry?s heart was pounding and he could taste Draco in his
mouth and the taste was making it hard to think, hard to breathe. All he
knew was that he wanted to taste it again, and taste more, and yet he knew if
he did, he?d shatter because he?d never tasted anything that made him want
to fall apart as that did. Indescribable.
He found himself staring hungrily at Draco?s lips and forced himself to look
away. There were?repercussions to think of? and he wasn?t sure what he
was doing.

But he knew he wanted to do it.

?You asked me what I wanted to do,? he said at length.

Draco watched him in silence, warily.

?I don?t know,? Harry said finally, ?but I know I want to do it with you.?

?Harry.?

?What??

Draco tilted his head thoughtfully, studying Harry in the darkness. ?I don?t
think you understand what this means.?

?Do you??

?No.?

?Then who cares??

?Harry.?

?Fuck, Draco, shut up, who cares, have you ever done anything that made no
sense only because you wanted to and it felt good??

Draco blinked, surprised. ?Harry, I think that?s my line. I?m the wild and
unpredictable Slytherin, remember??

?Well then bloody well start acting the part.? He sounded like a petulant
little boy but Harry didn?t care. He was feeling rather rejected and hated the
feeling. ?Not everything ends the way you think it should.?

Before Draco could reply, Harry pushed himself a little, sliding on the icy
roof and slipping over the edge. He whispered a charm to thicken the air just
as he slipped off the tower, and by the time he neared the ground, it had
come into effect and it was just like landing on a pile of pillows. He lowered
himself carefully to the ground, falling backwards into the snow. It had been
an easy way to removing himself from the situation, and that had been the
point, after all. It had been fun as well, falling through the snow like a falling
star.

?Harry!? Draco shrieked, suddenly peering over the edge of the tower.
?What the fuck is wrong with you? Are you alright? Shit!?

Harry sat up, laughing. ?Did you think that was a suicide attempted?
Honestly, Draco, being rejected by you would hardly drive me to that!?

Draco sounded exasperated. ?I didn?t reject you, Harry, I just?? He dragged


one hand through his hair. ?How come you?re not splattered all over the
ground??

?I caught myself with a spell. I hardened the air until it was thick enough to
slow my fall before I hit the ground.?

Draco looked intrigued. ?And it was fun? Falling that way??

?Oh, yes. Almost the way a falling star would feel, I?d imagine.?

?Falling stars don?t feel, Potter,? Draco said distractedly. Harry suddenly
remembered he had a fear of heights.

?I?ll catch you,? he called softly. ?I promise.?

Draco slipped, or maybe he jumped. He could never quite remember. All he


knew was that one moment he was sitting high above, barely able to see
Harry far below, and the next moment he was falling, spinning, like a top or
even a falling star.

Harry did catch him before he hit the ground, the air hardening and causing
him to bounce a little, coming to rest four feet or so above the ground, right
above Harry, who stared up at him, startled, for a few seconds. Their breath
mixed in the air between them. ?Should have warned me you were going to
jump,? Harry whispered. ?I nearly didn?t have time to catch you.?

Draco smiled. ?You wouldn?t have let me fall.?


Harry lowered him to the snow and Draco lay beside him, and for a long
while, neither spoke. The snow fell all around and their breath misted in the
air.

A snowball came out of nowhere and smacked Harry in the side of the face.
By the time his outraged squeal had died, Draco was already up and running
away, laughing.

Mumbling wrathfully to himself, Harry scooped up some snow in his frozen


fingers and took off after Draco using a quick spell to give the snowball both
speed and accuracy. It hit Draco in the back of the head, abruptly cutting off
his laughter, and the war had begun in earnest.

It was impossible to tell who was winning, only moments later as they
chased each other across the grounds throwing slushy snowballs. Both of
them were soaking wet, their hair streaming, their faces flushed as they
laughed breathlessly. Harry hardly noticed the cold, though he wore only his
pajamas, Draco?s blanket left far above, on the roof.

Draco had just hit Harry in the back with a huge snowball, causing him to
fall on his face in the snow, and Harry scooped up as much snow as he could
carry, packing it into a huge ball. He got up and growled softly under his
breath, searching for Draco. He found him and took off after him, gaining
only because his legs were longer and Draco didn?t seem to be trying all that
hard to get away. Harry didn?t want to use magic this time. Revenge was
sweeter if it was unaided by magic.

He was about to slam the snow down on Draco?s head when Draco spun
suddenly, grabbing his wrists and trying to force him to drop the snow.
Harry fought, kicking Draco?s shins, laughing as he tried to twist away, and
moments later, he finally stopped struggling, panting wildly and caught
securely in a headlock, his back pressed against Draco?s chest and one of
Draco?s arms around his neck.

?Fine,? he gasped. ?You win.?

?Drop it,? Draco ordered, flipping wet hair out of his face.

Harry?s fingers twitched as he nearly did as commanded and then, at the last
second, he swung the snowball upwards and over his head, smashing it
down on Draco?s. Cursing in outrage as snow slid down his shirt, Draco
squeezed his eyes shut and flinched, burying his head in Harry?s shoulder as
he waited for the burning cold to subside. When it had, he growled, ?Oh,
you?ll pay for that one, Potter.?

Harry turned his head, and Draco?s was still resting on his shoulder, so his
lips nearly brushed Draco?s cheek. ?I will, will I?? he said teasingly.
Draco?s arm was still wrapped around his neck, one hand tightly wrapped
around Harry?s left arm. Snow was running down Draco?s face, dripping
onto Harry?s shoulder.

?Yes,? Draco replied in a thick voice, shifting suddenly though he made no


move to pull away. His eyes flickered up to Harry?s eyes and then down to
his lips, so close to his own. There was a heartbeat?s hesitation and then it
was gone and Draco slammed his lips against Harry?s. The angle was
awkward, Harry?s neck straining as he turned, his back still pressed against
Draco?s chest, but still that made it somehow more rough, wild, and erotic.
It wasn?t an exploration, it was an act of possession, as Draco forced
Harry?s mouth open and ran his tongue inside, lapping up the melted snow
that had gathered on his lower lip. His hands ran through Harry?s hair, down
his back, onto his shoulders, and when the awkward angle grew too much
and he wanted to be closer, he dug his fingers into Harry?s shoulders and
jerked him roughly around.

Harry really didn?t mind. It was a sort of battle for dominance after that, just
like every thing between them had ever been. This was a war like everything
else was for them, a war fought with teeth and tongue and hands pawing and
ripping at clothing.

Harry panted as Draco broke the kiss and bent lower to bite Harry?s neck,
hard enough to bruise.

?Mmm,? Harry mumbled distractedly, shivering with cold even as a feeling


not unlike the delirious fever of before ran hotly through his veins. ?Cold.?

Draco glanced up from the mark he?d been leaving on the side of Harry?s
neck. His eyes were cloudy. ?What??

?It?s cold.?

Draco glanced around, his eyes narrowing. ?Oh. It?s snowing.? He sounded
vaguely surprised, as if he?d forgotten.
Harry smiled, rolling his eyes and shivering. ?Yeah.?

Stepping away shakily, Draco said in a lost sort of voice, ?Harry. I?oh for
fuck?s sake, do up your pajamas, you?ll get sick again.? He sounded angry
now, and Harry laughed, even as his fingers hurriedly did the buttons back
up. One of them was missing.

Draco looked mussed, his face flushed with what could have been cold, had
Harry not known better.

?What were you?? Harry licked his lips. ?What were you going to do??

Draco looked surprised. ?Just now??

?Yeah.?

He shifted a little. ?Knowing me, I was going to fuck you till you forgot
your own name and had to scream mine instead.? He smirked. ?At least,
that?s the way it always seems with anyone else I do it with.?

Harry?s eyes widened. ?Oh.? He cleared his throat. ?You?ve done?things


like this before.?

?Not exactly like?this??

?What?s different, then??

?The fact that it?s snowing. The fact that I didn?t go through with it.? He
smirked now, rolling his eyes. ?And the fact that you?re not female.?

?You still could.?

?What??

?Go through with it. If you?wanted.? Harry looked away.

?Smashing idea, Harry, let?s have wild passionate sex in the snow, catch our
deaths of a cold, and die of hypothermia. I think this whole proving fate
wrong thing of yours is going a little far.?

?What if I?m trying to prove fate?s right this time??


There was silence for a long time, and Draco was frantically trying to think
of an excuse, any excuse, because he was terrified of the solemn trust in
Harry?s eyes. You shouldn?t trust me, he wanted to scream. How could
Harry trust him when he couldn?t even trust himself? ?It?s cold,? he
whispered weakly.

Harry pulled out his wand and whispered a short spell. The air around them
sparkled with heat that only they could feel and did not affect the snow at
all. ?It?s not,? Harry countered softly.

?Fuck,? Draco breathed, because he generally took what he wanted without


any rationalization at all, and it was too much to attempt to go against his
nature now.

Harry realized he?d won and smiled slowly. ?Brilliant,? he said with quiet
triumph, stepping closer. ?Kiss me again then.?

Draco couldn?t help but comply, kiss him again, bruising his lips with the
force of it. He wasted no time this time, and soon, Harry?s pajama top was
lying forgotten in the snow, and Draco was dragging his nails up Harry?s
back.

Harry moaned a little, shivering, and he let his legs give out beneath him,
tangling his hands in Draco?s hair and pulling him down as well. Kneeling
together, wrapped in each other, Harry asked breathlessly, as Draco bit his
shoulder, ?Do you know what you?re doing??

?I?m going to make you scream,? was Draco?s distracted response, as he


pushed Harry backwards.

?No, I mean?? Harry?s words were cut off with a breathless moan as he laid
back in the snow, which stung, icy and chilling all at once against his naked
back but the cold was forgotten mere seconds later when Draco straddled his
waist, white hot heat searing through him.

?Shut up,? Draco mumbled, dragging his nails down Harry?s chest. Harry
shivered.

?You?ve never done this before,? Harry gasped, shifting restlessly as Draco
bent low, kissing him again.
Harry had nearly forgotten his own words when Draco pulled away and said,
?I don?t care. I just want to be all over you. Inside of you. I don?t care. I
want to make you scream.?

?It?s always been like that,? Harry said, voice distant as he trailed his
fingertips over Draco?s chest, tracing the ridges and planes there. ?Since the
beginning, you?ve been trying to be all over me and inside me and make me
scream?? He trailed off, sucking in a startled breath as Draco moved lower,
his mouth following the path his nails had marked on Harry?s chest. ?Only it
was different before,? he mumbled, closing his eyes and letting his head fall
back.

Draco glanced up at him, silver-blonde hair falling in his eyes. He smiled


deviously and said, ?Thought I told you to shut up, Potter.?

Harry opened his eyes and studied Draco, sprawled all over him. He smirked
and, not thinking very clearly, brushed the hair out of Draco?s face. ?We
were lovers before we ever knew it.?

Draco didn?t reply and it was the last time for a long while that Harry made
a sound. When he finally did, it was an incoherent moan that Draco caught
in his mouth, and still later, a husky cry that was enough of a scream to
satisfy Draco, who didn?t bother to silence that. The sound echoed and died
and the only sound for a long, long while was breathless panting and the
whisper of falling snow.

Chapter Eight

I don't want you to give it all up


and leave your own life collecting dust
and I don't want you to feel sorry for me
you never gave us a chance to be.
And I don't need you to be by my side
and tell me that everything?s all right
I just wanted you to tell me the truth
You know I'd do that for you
So why are you running away?
Why are you running away?
--Running Away, Hoobastank
Somehow, they?d ended up back in the tower, though Harry would never
remember quite how it happened. Everything seemed to have melted into a
delicious blur and all that mattered was that he was lying on the dusty floor
of the abandoned tower and Draco was tangled around him, on top of him.
His head was resting on Harry?s chest, his eyes were closed, and he was
breathing softly through his nose. Still half asleep and afraid it had all been a
strange and vivid dream, Harry reached out and brushed his fingers through
Draco?s hair.

At the first shifting of muscles beneath him, Draco woke. It wasn?t slow or
gentle, his eyes just flew open suddenly and then flinched shut at the light.
Harry held his breath, terrified that Draco would regret it, would sneer at it
or laugh or somehow degrade what Harry himself wasn?t quite sure what to
make of.

Early morning sunlight was filtering through the window, painting golden
lights all over Draco?s body even as he turned his face against Harry?s
chest, the light stinging his eyes. ?What are you doing?? Draco asked
huskily, voice thick from sleep.

Harry was still playing with his hair, and he let his hand drop. ?Nothing.?

Stretching like a cat, Draco finally opened his eyes, propping himself up on
his elbows and smiling sleepily. ?Oh.? He tilted his head to the side and
looked thoughtful for a moment. ?Alright. I?m hungry.?

Harry?s eyes widened. ?Hungry? Hungry? That?s all you?ve got to say??

A faintly amused smile twisted his lips and Draco studied Harry?s face for a
few seconds, aware that Harry was pinned beneath him and if he hadn?t
been, he probably would have slipped away before Draco had woken up,
judging by how nervous he looked.

Rather than waste time with words that wouldn?t have done a thing to
reassure him, Draco slammed his lips against Harry?s, so hard that Harry
was knocked backwards, head smashing against the hard floor. He moaned
at the pain but didn?t push Draco away, only pulled him closer, his nails
digging into naked shoulders. It was a rough, dominating kiss, almost as if
Draco were branding him, claiming him, and when he pulled away, Harry
was shaking.
?Now can I get up?? Draco asked, sounding a little petulant, and Harry
laughed so suddenly that he nearly choked on it.

?Not a morning person, are you?? he teased when he?d finally caught his
breath. If he?d had any doubts, Draco had just destroyed them.

Draco tossed him a dirty look, sitting up and running a hand through his
hair. It was drafty in the tower room and Harry shivered as Draco moved
away, leaving a chill. Tossing the blanket he?d conjured up the night before
over Harry, Draco got dressed and made his way lazily over to the corner
where he and Harry had begun stashing food during their homework
sessions. There were three chocolate frogs left, and a single bottle of
pumpkin juice, and he brought those back, tossing a frog to Harry.

Harry stared down at the frog in disgust. He was still very sleepy, his
muscles aching rather pleasantly, and the very thought of eating chocolate
made him nauseous.

?I?m tired,? he said, pulling the blanket up to his chin. Draco watched him in
silence, and Harry suddenly realized that he was naked beneath the blanket.
He laughed sleepily. ?Where the hell are my clothes??

?Harry,? Draco said abruptly, setting his chocolate aside. ?We?ve got to talk.
About last night. It shouldn?t have ??

He broke off suddenly, aware that Harry had fallen asleep. ?Bloody hell,? he
mumbled to himself, though he was smiling a little as he pulled Harry?s
glasses off, folded them, and set them nearby.

***

Harry woke up alone, sprawled on the floor of the tower with Draco?s
blanket tossed over him and tucked up to his chin, and it took him a long
while to remember where he was and what had happened. Then he sat up
quickly, sucking in a startled breath.

Draco wasn?t there. He looked around the room frantically, but he was very
much alone.

He vaguely remembered waking up earlier, and Draco had been there then,
hadn?t he? Harry refused to admit to himself how worried he was about
Draco?s absence. Rather than wonder if Draco had left because he regretted
it, or it had all been some stupid game and even now the entire Slytherin
house was laughing at him, he instead checked his watch.

He was twenty minutes late for potions.

Scowling to himself, Harry briefly considered not going, but going on as


though nothing had happened, which apparently Draco had decided to do,
seemed to be the best option. Five minutes later, his clothes a little wrinkled
and dusty, he took off running down the stairs, summoning his Potions
books as he went.

He burst into the Potions dungeon, sweating, panting, and filthy from the
tower, his hair standing wildly on end, and the entire class turned to stare,
including Draco, who was sitting in his usual seat beside Pansy.

The look of shock on everyone?s face, including Professor Snape, would


have been comic, had Harry not been so furious at Draco, who, after an
amused smirk, rolled his eyes and shook his head, only confirming Harry?s
fears.

?Mister Potter,? Snape said finally. ?We were under the impression that you
were too ill to attend class today. Malfoy claimed he saw you on your way to
the hospital wing.?

Harry?s eyes flew back to Draco, who was carefully not looking at him.
?I?m better now, sir,? he lied. Snape smirked, deducted points from
Gryffindor, and let him get off relatively unscathed. Harry slid into his seat
beside Ron gratefully.

?Where were you?? Ron hissed. ?You weren?t in bed this morning!?

Harry turned, opened his mouth to reply, and saw Ron?s eyes skim down to
the base of his throat and widen. He went an odd shade of puce and turned
away without a word, looking rather traumatized. Before Harry could ask
why, Snape continued on with the lesson, and Harry was forced to pretend to
pay attention.

Intending to speak with Draco after class, Harry was the first one out of his
seat, already heading towards the front where Draco was packing up his
things. He never made it, however, because Hermione grabbed him by the
back of the robes and hauled him out into the hallway, and into a shadowy
alcove.

?Just what is wrong with you, Harry?? she whispered. ?Are you ill? When
Malfoy told Snape that you were in the hospital wing, I got so scared that the
sickness was back!?

?I?m fine,? Harry told her, pulling away. ?I just fell asleep in the library and
slept late.?

She still looked concerned. ?You?re not lying to me, are you, Harry?
Because why would Malfoy lie for you??

?I?I?ve gotta get to class, Hermione,? Harry said quickly, forcing a


reassuring smile at her. He hurried away, looking for Draco, but the hall was
already empty.

Divination was strange. Ron seemed incapable of making anything other


than incoherent squeaking noises, the lesson was boring, and everyone was
casting him interested, narrow-eyed looks and then whispering behind their
hands. It wasn?t until lunchtime that Harry found out what they were saying.

He and Ron were late for lunch, and when they walked in, the entire Great
Hall turned to stare, giggling behind their hands. Harry slipped into a seat
beside Hermione and Ron sat on his other side. Ginny wasn?t at the table.

?Where?s Ginny?? Harry asked.

Ron made a choking sound and didn?t reply.

?What?? Harry scowled. ?What?s this about, Ron??

?Harry,? Hermione said worriedly. ?You and Ginny didn?t?. Did you??

?Didn?t what??

Before she could reply, Draco spoke from behind him. At his voice, Harry?s
skin seemed to tighten, his eyes widen, and his breathing grow heavier. ?So,
Potter, is it true?? he asked, and Harry turned. Draco was smirking, faintly
amused, and his eyes were sparkling. When Harry turned to face him,
Draco?s eyes ran over his face, lingering on his lips, and his smile twitched a
little. Only Harry saw it, and it eased his worry somewhat.

?Is what true?? he asked, aware that Ron was shaking with fury. Harry was
too distracted to care.

?C?mon, Potter, surely you?ve heard the rumours.?

?Rumours.? Harry shook his head. ?What rumours??

?Malfoy,? Hermione growled warningly, getting to her feet. Harry was


suddenly aware that the entire Hall was watching him again. ?Get lost.?

?Make me, Mudblood,? Draco spat.

Hermione lifted her hand to hit him and Harry moved without thinking,
grabbing her wrist. Everything seemed to freeze. After all, it was unheard of
for Harry to defend Malfoy in any way.

?Unnecessary,? Draco said easily. ?Let her hit me.?

Hermione jerked away from Harry, glared at him, and hissed, ?Fine then,
Harry, answer his bloody question. I?m sure Ron is dying to know the
answer. Oh, and Ginny?s up in her room, she claimed she was too sick to go
to class. Why would that be, Harry??

Harry started shaking his head slowly, completely bewildered, and Ron
finally spoke. ?What did you do to her, Harry? You and she didn?t? didn?t?
Mum would kill you!?

Harry?s eyes widened. ?You think that Ginny and I? that we?.What in the
world would give you that idea??

?Could be,? Draco suggested lazily, ?the mark some inconsiderate person
left on your neck.?

Harry?s face flamed and he clapped one hand over the bruise at the base of
his throat. So that?s what Ron had been gawking at in Potions. ?We
didn?t?.? he said, turning to Ron. ?I wasn?t with Ginny last night.?
?Then who were you with?? Ron cried. ?At least you could have been a bit
more considerate! The whole school?s talking about it, Harry, and you know
how Ginny feels about you. She told me about Halloween, Harry, she told
me! Were you just playing with her? Is that what all of this is? She?ll
probably never stop crying!?

?Ron, just listen to me!? Harry snapped. ?It?s not what you think. Maybe we
should talk about this later.?

?I want to talk about it now,? Ron said stubbornly. Hermione was just
watching in silence, and Draco seemed to be enjoying himself immensely.

?Ron,? Hermione said finally. ?We?ll talk about it later. It?s not helping,
making a big scene like this. And maybe if we stop discussing it now,
Malfoy will get bored and leave.? She shot him an angry glare.

?Whatever,? Ron said sullenly, turning back to his lunch.

Hermione sat down next to him, and Harry glanced down at them as they sat
together. Somehow, the spot he?d been sitting on had been phased out, and
Ron and Hermione were closer, effectively preventing him from joining
them. Whether it was intentional or not, Harry still scowled and turned to go,
when he realized Draco was still standing behind him.

Suddenly nothing else mattered. His irritation at Hermione, Ron, and Ginny
faded and all that mattered was Draco, who leaned forward, his cheek
brushing Harry?s. ?Wait for me in your classroom after History of Magic.
We?ve got to talk.?

Harry shivered at the feel of Draco?s breath on his ear and glanced around
quickly, but the Hall had lost interest and gone back to their lunches. He
nodded at Draco, swallowing heavily, because the longer Draco stayed near,
the tighter Harry?s skin felt, and it felt rather like there were a thousand bees
underneath it. A giddy, pleasant reaction that he rather liked.

Draco smiled quickly and walked away, and Harry, determined to ignore
Ron and Hermione as effectively as they were him, moved further down the
table and sat with Neville.

***
History of Magic was Harry's last class of the day, and he lingered while
everyone put their books away, pretending to be doing the same. Hermione
and Ron ran out without a backwards glance, and soon everyone, including
the professor, followed.

It was very quiet and for a few minutes, Harry was worried that Draco
wasn?t going to come. He stacked his books up into a pyramid and paced the
room a few times, about to give up when the door opened, Draco slipped in,
and slammed it shut. Harry was standing right near the door, and Draco?s
sudden entrance startled him. He was even more startled when, with a
lopsided grin, Draco grabbed him by the front of his robes, slamming him
against the wall, and kissing him wildly. Lips and teeth and tongue, Draco
hurriedly kissed him while his hands dug at Harry?s robes.

Breathlessly, Harry said, ?I was worried you weren?t going to come.?

?You need to have more faith in me,? Draco said distractedly. ?Besides, I
wouldn?t miss this. I thought about it all day.?

?I thought we were here to talk,? Harry replied, breath catching on a moan


when Draco gave up on his robes and moved lower, to the front of his
trousers.

Draco grinned and kissed him again, biting his lower lip gently. ?Talk later,?
he whispered, and Harry nodded in agreement, tearing at Draco?s clothing.

It was faster and wilder than the night before but somehow seemed to take
forever. In their haste, buttons and zippers seemed impossible to work, and
far too slow. Finally, after endless seconds of fumbling and swearing, all of
their clothes were scattered on the ground. It was rough and fast, and rather
than easing the tension they?d both felt all day, it only served to increase it
to a dizzying level that made every touch seem to burn in the most exciting
fashion, until Harry was sure all Draco had to do was brush the palm of his
hand against Harry?s body, anywhere and everywhere, and he?d lose control
even more than he ever had. It was achingly painful in the best way
imaginable, and Draco seemed to sense it, taking his time now when Harry
only wanted him to go faster still.

Draco took him against the wall, both of them silent and panting, restraining
moans and screams in case anyone was passing through the halls outside,
everything made all the more erotic because it was secret and they could be
discovered any second.

Afterwards, holding each other up and struggling to breathe, Harry said


shakily, ?What did you want to talk about??

Draco laughed breathlessly. ?How we couldn?t do this anymore, actually.?

Harry?s eyes widened the tiniest bit. ?You? you regret it??

?As I just proved by shagging you against the bloody wall,? Draco replied
sarcastically. ?I just thought it would be too complicated. I mean, Harry,
none of this was supposed to happen, none of it. It?s too wild even to
understand, really. I?ve hated you for years and then all of this happened and
now I don?t even know what?s real.?

Someone walked by outside, laughing loudly, and Harry tensed. After their
voice faded, he began getting dressed, frowning thoughtfully as he
considered what Draco had said. ?I don?t think I ever hated you,? he said
finally. ?Oh, you certainly drove me mad. You made me want to scream. But
I couldn?t ever hate you. Like you said, we?re more alike than I?d like to
think, and you were so like me, even if every similarity is only a similarity
because it is the exact opposite, which really makes no sense. I"m feeling
rather incoherent, sorry. But I could no more hate you than I could myself.
Because without you, I never would have been me. Savior of the wizarding
world, wonder boy of the school, all that load of rubbish. But you?re the
same, aren?t you? Savior of the wizarding world? It?s just a different version
of the same. One where wizards rule supreme and all that. It?s like, from the
time we were little boys, people have been trying to sculpt us into the very
image of what their Cause is supposed to be about. I?m supposed to be kind
and brave and protect the innocent and the Muggles, and you?re supposed to
be ruthless and cruel and protect the heritage of the old families.?

?I was never a little boy,? Draco said with a sharp smile.

?C?mon, Draco, of course you were. We both were.?

?Well, maybe. Technically. But certainly not emotionally. Malfoys are never
little boys, Harry, and if we are, it?s not for nearly as long as it is for
everyone else.?
?You were a little boy,? Harry said softly, yet firmly. ?I remember. A little
boy with huge silver eyes and a pointed face and robes that spilled over his
hands in the robe shop. Quivering in excitement about starting at Hogwarts
the way all the other little boys were. You may have been a Malfoy, Draco,
but you were human first, just like me.?

?Just like you?? Draco replied caustically. ?Come on, Potter, when did those
Muggles of yours let you be a little boy? In that cupboard under the stairs?
Admit it, we?re more alike than you ever thought. Neither one of us was
ever a child, and both of us were born into reputations too large for us to
carry. Me, the heir of Malfoy, you, the savior of the wizarding world. It
would seem we were destined to be opposites, extremes of both ends of
some good-vs-evil spectrum, wouldn?t it??

Harry shrugged. ?So what if that?s the way it is? All I know is that you?re
the only one in the entire world who actually listens when I talk, and who
doesn?t like me because of some scar on my forehead. In fact, you hated me
for it. So it?s all in how you look at it, the complications that would arise
from? whatever this is. You could look at it as something immensely
confusing, full of tangled loyalties and all that. The dark side and the light
side, family loyalty vs. personal desires. Or you can look at it as simply
something that was Meant To Be. A natural progression. There could have
been no other result from the intensity and the tension we?ve been building
between us all of these years.?

?Fate?s a lovely thing to believe in, when it suits your purposes, isn?t it,
Potter??

Harry smiled very sweetly. ?It?s not fate, it?s nature. Just as natural as the
rain that follows a gathering of dark clouds. I happen to like the rain.?

?There are things I?ve got to confess, stupid things that I?ve done,? Draco
said quietly. Harry was sitting on the floor, fully dressed, and Draco sat
across from him, still doing up his robes.

?Everyone does stupid things, Draco.?

Draco scoffed. ?Name one stupid thing you?ve done, Potter.?


Harry thought for a moment and then smiled slowly, deviously. ?Well, I
replied to your first message in that dratted journal rather than just taking it
and running as fast as I could.?

?Cute,? Draco said, rolling his eyes. ?But that journal, Harry? There?s
something you don?t know.?

Harry?s eyes narrowed. ?What??

Draco took a deep breath. ?There?s a second property to Gobbler?s Ink,


Harry.?

Harry paused, his eyes narrowing, and then he asked, ?What is it??

?The second property of Gobbler?s Ink is that, when made with the blood of
a lover, it acts as sort of a binding spell.? He brushed Harry?s lips with his
fingertips. ?My blood, Harry. And yours.?

?What? What do you mean??

Draco sighed, letting his hand drop and turning away. ?You said it yourself,
Harry. We were lovers before we ever knew it.?

?What does it do?? Harry asked, shaken.

?I? didn?t really know, when I made the ink. After all, never in a thousand
years did I think it would work this way. But after you became ill, I
researched the second property. It?s a binding spell that? makes it so that?
you?re the first thing I think about each morning, and the last thing before I
sleep. You?re in my blood and in my head and in my dreams, and I?m sure
it?s the same for you. It makes it so that the only thing we can write, in the
ink, is the truth. We can?t lie to each other, Harry. If I even tried to lie to
you, you?d know in a second that it was a lie. It?s sort of? a love spell.?

Harry?s eyes were wide. ?A love spell.?

Draco hurried to reassure him. ?It wouldn?t have come into effect if there
wasn?t something there in our blood that would cause the second property,
rather than the first, to come into effect! So there was something other than
hatred in our blood, it only recognized it before we did.?
?But you? don?t know how much of this is real, and how much is a direct
result of the ink.?

Draco paused, and then slowly shook his head. ?No,? he whispered. ?I don?t
know. That?s why we can?t do this anymore.?

?But it means that? everything we?ve written and said was true? All of it??

?Yes, bloody all of it!? Draco snapped. ?Everything you wrote was true
because you were under my spell, and everything I wrote was true. Because
I was under yours.?

Harry smiled, very slowly and grudgingly. ?Under my spell?? he scoffed. He


was trying desperately to think of someway to deny that this could all be a
spell. It surely couldn?t be true? this had to be real. It was the most real thing
he?d ever felt. ?Can the spell be reversed??

Draco?s eyes flashed with a second of hurt, hurt that Harry was so eager to
break the spell and end it, and then it was gone. ?I think so.?

Harry nodded slowly. ?Would? would it mean we?d lose?this??

?I don?t know. It depends how much of it is real.?

?A lot of it, I?d say,? Harry said, letting out his breath in a rush. ?Because
you?ve been under my skin and in my blood for years. I don?t want to lose
this, but the very idea that it?s just a spell makes me sick.?

?Alright.? His eyes were dark and as flat as stones.

Harry smiled, swallowing a sudden nervousness in his throat and touching


Draco?s cheek with his fingertips. ?I do think of you,? he whispered. ?The
last thing before I sleep and the first thing when I wake up.?

?It?s just the spell. We?ll break it and it?ll go away.?

?We?ll see,? Harry said, not sounding convinced. ?How do we break it??

?The book,? Draco said. ?We need to destroy the book.?

Harry glanced out the window. ?It?s outside, buried in snow.?


?We?ll have to find it.?

They split up, going to their respective dormitories to get their cloaks and
then meeting up in the hollow.

?It should be around here, by the tree,? Harry said. ?Unless something took
it for a nest or something.?

Draco didn?t reply, only fell to his knees and started digging in the snow
with his bare hands, scarcely feeling the cold. Harry joined him, and it was a
silent, solemn few minutes before Harry?s numb hands closed on the brittle,
frozen book. The ink well was right beside it.

?Don?t touch it,? Draco told him. ?It?ll probably still have ink in it and I
don?t know how susceptible you are to the poison now.? He brought his foot
down hard on the glass well and it shattered. ?Let?s go.?

They walked back, side by side and silent again. Harry was more nervous
than he wanted to let on, his mind filled with horrible worries of breaking
the spell only to dislike Draco all over again and regret everything.

He didn?t want to hate Draco.

What if they forgot everything? He didn?t want to forget. It was something


secret, something that made him feel alive for the very first time.

?I?ve got to get a few things from my room,? Draco said quietly. ?Potion
ingredients. It?s not as simple as tearing the book apart. Wait for me in the
tower.?

Harry nodded and turned towards the staircase that would bring him to the
tower.

On the upper floor, Ron, Hermione, and Ginny were walking down the hall
together and he tried to shrink back around the corner, but Hermione saw
him.

?Harry! We were looking for you!? she cried.

?Just to accuse me of sleeping with her?? he asked sourly, scowling. ?Or


sleeping with someone else just because I want to hurt her??
Ginny?s face flamed and Ron couldn?t look at him. He still looked furious.
?She told us that you didn?t,? Hermione told him. ?She just wasn?t feeling
well this morning.?

Harry glanced at Ron, who still looked furious. Ginny said nervously, ?I?m
sorry, Harry, I never even thought Ron would assume that.?

?Yeah, well, he did.?

?Who was it, then?? Ron said in a quiet, enraged tone.

?You don?t know what you?re talking about,? Harry snapped.

?Ron, Harry, please,? Hermione pleaded.

?I don?t understand,? Ginny said, looking worried. ?Who was what??

?Never mind,? Ron snapped, glaring at Harry. ?C?mon, Gin.? He grabbed


her arm and started tugging her down the hall, and with an apologetic
glance, Hermione followed.

?Wait!? Ginny cried, jerking her arm out of her brother?s grasp. ?I want to
talk to Harry. Alone. I?ll catch up.?

Ron?s scowl grew more furious as Ginny ran back to Harry, but he didn?t
stop her. Harry waited, arms crossed over his chest, fighting the urge to
sneer at her. He really wasn't in the mood for this.

?Are you alright?? she asked, studying his face. He wondered if she would
find anything there to tell her exactly what the problem was.

?Yes.?

?You seem?bothered. It wasn?t me, was it??

She looked so worried, and Harry sighed. It wasn?t her fault, after all, that
she bored him senseless. ?It wasn?t you, Gin.?

She smiled and he was suddenly worried that she was going to kiss him or
something. She didn?t; maybe she had seen the change on his face. ?Alright.
I better go.? She dashed off down the hall and Harry shook his head as he
felt a headache coming on.
Draco wasn?t there yet when he arrived, and Harry flopped down on the
floor, sighing and closing his eyes. Things had gone crazy, stark raving mad.
From the night before, when Draco had woken him and forced him out onto
the roof of the tower, to that blasted snow fight and, of course?whatever that
had been, in the snow. And then Ron?s reaction, and Draco?s revelation
about the spell?

The spell was the thing that hurt the most. The very idea that all of this was
some by-product of magic made him furious.

By the time Draco got there, Harry had worked himself into a fury. ?You
know,? he hissed as soon as he saw Draco. ?As soon as you get this blasted
spell off me, I?ll never think of you again. I?ll forget you exist. I?m sure all
the things we?ve done will make me sick.?

Draco studied him in silence and then smiled a little, almost wistfully,
putting down the things he?d gotten from his room. ?Harry, you forgot,? he
chided quietly. ?Until we break the spell, you can?t lie to me without me
knowing it.?

Harry's eyes narrowed and he took a deep breath, the tiny smile on Draco's
lips making his anger soften into something that felt like butterflies against
his skin, light and fluffy and sweet. He hated it; it wasn't real. He wanted it
to be real.

Draco went about preparing a fine, flammable powder, grinding roots and
herbs in silence, while Harry watched.

?Can I help?? he asked.

For the first time in nearly an hour, Draco smiled. ?With your skill in
Potions? No. But start a fire burning in the centre of the room. Ward it first
so the floor doesn?t catch on fire.?

Harry did as commanded, and soon, blazing heat was coming off the fire
he?d started.

?I need some of your blood,? Draco said finally, setting the pale green
powder aside and picking up a dagger.

?Blood? Why??
?The spell is made with blood, yours and mine, and it can?t be undone
without it. I won?t cut too deeply, it?ll hardly bleed at all.?

Still nervous, Harry held out his arm. Holding his hand gently, Draco drew a
light line down the inside of Harry?s wrist, which, no more than a scratch,
only drew tiny beads of blood.

?Merlin?s sake, Draco,? Harry snapped, bringing his other hand up and
pressing down on Draco?s hand, forcing the dagger in deeper. He hissed at
the sting and his blood rushed up, swelling around the dagger and then
running down, over his hand.

His hands were trembling when Draco quickly moved a vial to catch some
of the blood. ?Too deep,? he mumbled. ?I didn?t need this much.?

?It?s fine,? Harry growled, jerking his arm away. Draco had brought
bandages and Harry picked them up, balling them up and holding them
against the wound.

?I?ll magic them better after this spell, any other magic in the room will
mess with it,? Draco said, having gotten control of himself. He cut his own
wrist, caught the blood in another vial, and then spent another hour mixing
precise amounts of other liquids Harry could not identify. The scents of them
singed his nostrils and made him feel slightly ill. Adding the blood to the
liquid mixture last, Draco then turned to the fire. He was holding a
paintbrush in one hand and the crock of blood-coloured liquid in the other.
?Gobbler?s Ink originated in a small tribe in Africa,? he said absently.
?Though it had a different name then, of course.? He started painting bold
strokes on the floor that seemed to soak into it, quickly becoming the dusty
colour of dried blood. He continued the design all around the fire until there
was just a tiny space left, right in front of Harry, all that kept the blood ring
from being finished. ?You?ve got to be inside the ring,? Draco told him, and
Harry stepped inside.

The heat seared his skin, the fire burning unnaturally hot as the temperature
flared briefly while Draco finished the ring. Then, fire flickering over his
features, he picked up the powder and the journal, glancing at Harry rather
nervously.

?Are you sure?? he asked softly, barely heard over the roaring of the fire.
The heat was making Harry feel dizzy, feverish, and images danced through
his mind of the day he?d finally fully succumbed to the fever, the first time
he had kissed Draco.

?Tell me this is real,? he had begged, lost in fever. This was no different,
really.

Swallowing hard, he said, ?Until I was eleven years old, everything


everyone had ever told me was a lie. I need to know if this is real.?

Draco?s face seemed carved from marble, and he didn?t nod or speak as he
tossed the powder, crock and all, into the flames. They flared, turning green
and cold. Harry shivered, watching them in fascination, and then Draco
threw the journal in.

Consuming the little book with a hiss, the flames writhed over the leather
cover, curling the pages and charring them. Harry watched until, with a
small flash, the book was gone and the fire flickered and died. Though
imprints of the flames still danced in his eyes, the room was suddenly flat
and still, blood ring a mere smudge on the floor.

?You alright?? Draco asked in the sudden silence.

Harry swallowed. ?Is it done??

?Yes.?

?The spell is gone??

Draco searched his eyes and then said quietly, ?I hate Herbology. Lucius is
my middle name. I think I could love you. Which one was the lie??

Harry felt like he?d be punched in the stomach, and he flinched. ?I don?t
know,? he whispered.

?Then we know it worked, don?t we?? Draco said with sardonic and cynical
humor.

***

It was still crimson and gold, not fading the least at the edges, not dying.
Harry lay on his back in his bed, the hangings drawn, twirling the leaf Draco
had left in the journal between his fingers. It was still rather early for bed,
and most of his house was still down in the common room. He was hoping
no one would disturb him, especially Ron, who was still furious by all
accounts.

He didn?t have the patience for it. He didn?t seem to have the patience for a
lot of things, really, not any more. Just Draco. Which, of course, took a lot of
patience.

Harry carefully tucked the leaf back onto his trunk, the stem of it slipping
under the hatch and holding it there.

He couldn?t sleep. Couldn?t think of anything except the harsh scent of


magical flames destroying paper and ink, the look on Draco?s face as green
flames danced in his eyes. Harry wouldn?t let himself think of anything else,
like the taste of Draco?s mouth or the feel of his tongue in Harry?s own. Or
his hands or his teeth or his body, all over Harry?s? the way he stopped
breathing when he was inside him, the way his hands would shake? no,
Harry wouldn?t think of any of that.

Except he couldn?t seem to help it, and with a frustrated groan, Harry rolled
over and buried his face in his pillow. Even just a few quick thoughts about
not being able to think about it had succeeded in making his blood seem to
burn all over again, his skin tighten in that strangely painful and pleasurable
way.

Harry fell asleep, and Draco was, of course, the last thing he thought of
before he did.

***

?You smell of astinine,? Snape said suddenly, directly behind Draco,


causing him to jump.

?What? Oh. Professor, I didn?t see you there.? Draco swallowed, hoping he
wasn?t about to get in trouble for being out of bed after hours.

?Apparently not. And the smell??


?I was making a potion earlier,? Draco told him, shifting and trying not to
feel nervous. He?d never felt nervous in Snape?s presence before.

?Astinine is one of the key ingredients in the making and breaking of all
aspects of Gobbler?s Ink. I do hope you haven?t been playing around with
that, I daresay Potter wouldn?t survive another run in with it.?

Draco?s nostrils flared and a vague sort of fury burned in him at even that
casual mention of Harry?s death. ?No harm came of it, I assure you.?

Snape seemed to want to ask any number of questions, most likely regarding
Draco?s reasons for the Gobbler?s Ink, and the eventual results. He, after all,
knew of all the properties. Instead, he merely said, ?And what are you doing
out of bed at this late hour??

?Couldn?t sleep,? Draco replied, and it was the perfect truth, except that he
hadn?t mentioned the fact that he hadn?t bothered to try.

Snape nodded. ?I could get you a sleep potion. Dreamless Sleep.?

Draco jumped, shivering. After all, dreams of Harry were the one thing that
would prove without a doubt that it had been real. Without the spell to
induce them, there had to be another explanation, and he could only think of
one possibility. ?No, sir,? he said quickly. ?I?m actually feeling a bit tired
now.?

Snape studied his face again and than nodded abruptly. ?A word of caution,
however, Malfoy. It is not wise to get too dependent on something that can?t
possibly last. Take it from someone who knows. Those with a death wish are
inevitably granted their wish.?

?Are you saying I?ve got a death wish?? Draco asked, confused.

?Do you regularly engage in foolish heroics in which your life is again and
again threatened??

?No.?

?Then no, Malfoy, I?m not.? With an enigmatic smile, Snape turned and
walked away.
It was moments later, after he was alone again, that Draco realized Snape
had been talking, of course, of Harry. ?He hasn?t got a death wish,? Draco
grumbled to himself.

He made his way up to his room, crawling into bed and, surprisingly, nearly
instantly falling asleep, mumbling one more time, ?Death wish,? in a
scoffing sort of tone.

He dreamed of Harry.

***

It was over. There was no explanation for it other than that. It had all been
the spell. Draco wondered why he wasn?t bawling his eyes out at the news.

It could be, of course, that Malfoys didn?t cry. Probably.

He glanced over at Harry once more, but the other boy seemed immune to
his stare. He seemed intent upon staring a hole in Snape?s forehead. He
wasn't just avoiding Draco, however, but Weasley and Granger as well.

It had all been the spell, then. Because surely if he still felt anything,
anything at all, Harry would have looked at him, spoken to him, sat near
him. Because Draco knew that when Harry had come into the room, Draco
had been instantly aware of it, had instinctively longed to be closer.

Apparently it wasn?t a returned sentiment, and the whole tragic, unrequited-


ness of it was so very clich頴hat Draco was scoffing at himself, let alone
what anyone else would say should they ever hear of the madness. The idea
of Draco pining over anyone, especially Harry Potter, was ridiculous.

It was also true.

But of course, Draco didn?t have to admit it to anyone, even himself. Denial,
after all, was another one of those things Malfoys were so good at.
Something Draco himself had spent six years perfecting.

Potions ended, and Draco left the dungeons, still scowling. Crabbe and
Goyle, intimidated by his black temper, had found other companions to walk
with, and Pansy was giggling with Weasley, so he was alone as he stalked
up the stairs and down the hall, heading towards his next class.
***

?Pansy,? Harry said, feeling rather nervous. She looked up at him, startled.
Ron, too, looked shocked, and then furious. He didn?t speak, but then, Harry
hadn?t expected him to. It wasn?t why he?d approached the two of them,
snogging in a doorway to an abandoned classroom. His stomach seemed
filled with acid and he didn?t think he could stand an entire night of lying
awake in his bed wondering and wishing and remembering. It would drive
him mad.

?What?? she asked.

?Does Malfoy like Herbology??

She looked confused and said slowly, ?I don?t think so. He finds plants
terribly boring.?

Harry nodded, flashed her a weak smile, and said, ?Thought so.? He walked
away with Ron glaring daggers into his back, but Harry couldn?t care.
Classes had just ended, and he was feeling even worse than he had all day.
He?d been so worried that he?d see repulsion and rejection on Draco?s face
that he had avoided looking at him all day. Which was extremely difficult,
given how much he generally liked to look at Draco. Even when they?d
hated each other, he had enjoyed watching emotions playing on the other
boy?s face, in his eyes.

And now, there was only a fifty-fifty chance that Draco had been lying when
he had said what he had said the day before. ?I think I could love you.?
Harry shivered.

Finding out for sure, however, was something even Harry Potter, Hero and
Gryffindor to the Core, lacked the courage to do. After all, if Draco had lied
about loving him?it could destroy him. Drive him mad.

There was a mirror over the sink in the boy?s bathroom, and, long after his
bath and while his hair dried into dark wisps around his face, Harry studied
his reflection. His green eyes, his dark hair, the scar on his forehead. He
traced it thoughtfully. If it hadn?t been for that dratted scar, Draco never
would have hated him in the first place.
Well, that wasn?t exactly true, Harry remembered. Draco had wanted to be
Harry?s friend, originally, and it had been Harry who had rejected him. So
really, if Draco rejected him now, it would only be fair, wouldn?t it?

He was desperately wishing there was someone to go to for advice. He


certainly couldn?t go to Ron. Not only was Ron still furious, Harry couldn?t
imagine what he would think if Harry confessed that not forty eight hours
before, Harry had been snogging Draco, and more. That Draco had been
inside him. Harry still got shivers at the memory, the delicious sort of
shivers. The removal of the spell hadn?t affected that. In fact, it hadn?t
changed anything, except that Harry could no longer tell when Draco was
lying, not that he had ever really been able to before. Which meant, of
course, that Draco hadn?t lied, since this strange relationship had begun, or
else Harry would have noticed.

But he still wished there were someone to advise him. Staring into a mirror
would hardly help, he knew, even if it were a mirror that could talk, which it
couldn?t. If it could talk, it would mostly just comment on the hickey on his
neck, which everyone else in the bloody school seemed so obsessed with.
Like it was a huge deal. It wasn?t, not really.

He could just imagine what a mirror at the Weasley house would have to say
about it. ?Now that?s what I like to see, evidence of a good shagging.?
Alright, he didn?t really need to imagine it, he?d heard a mirror say just that
to Percy Weasley the summer before, when Percy had Apparated suddenly
into the small entrance hall of their home, his hair wild, breathing heavily.
Whether or not Percy really had just returned from a ?good shagging? was in
doubt, though he did throw a fit befitting someone in extreme denial. The
only evidence against the mirror?s claim was that Percy had just returned
from Oliver Wood?s London Flat?

Harry?s eyes widened as he briefly considered that in a new light. Based on


his own recent experiences, it was quite possible?

His musings were cut off abruptly when the door opened and Draco walked
in.

They stared at each other, wide-eyed with shock and hardly daring to
breathe, waiting for some sign. Finally, Draco spoke. ?Bloody everlasting
hell. Figures you?d be in here, Potter. It?s late, what are you doing here? I
didn?t think anyone would be here.?
?I was busy,? Harry replied defensively. ?I did Charms homework until late,
and this was the only time I could get away for my bath.?

Draco?s eyes flickered to Harry?s damp hair. ?Ah. Well then. Hurry along. I
can?t go to class smelling like this tomorrow, and I certainly can?t bathe
with you in here.? He made an arrogant shooing motion with his hand and
Harry felt his chest tighten a little bit. That was it then. Over. Obviously
Draco felt nothing any longer.

?I think... I think you smell fine,? Harry said, sounding uncertain. He made
no move to go, standing there staring, his throat burning with something like
tears.

Eyes narrowed, Draco studied him for a while. ?You?re not going to cry, are
you??

?No. Why would I?? Harry asked, turning away.

?Exactly. Why would you.? But it was Draco?s turn to sound uncertain.
?Unless??

He trailed off, and Harry spun back around. ?Unless what??

?Nothing.? Scowling, Draco walked past him, turning on the tap for the
bath, a stream of hot water hitting the ceramic bottom and breaking the
silence. Steam rose up off the water, and soon the room was filled with
swirling, sticky heat.

He hadn?t moved. Harry watched Draco, who seemed determined not to


acknowledge him. Only after the bath was filled and Draco turned off the
water, did Harry speak.

?Draco, we need to talk.? It had taken a lot of courage even for that.

His gray eyes were cold, and Harry would have lost his nerve if he hadn?t
noticed Draco?s hands were shaking the tiniest bit. ?About what? The
spell?s broken.?

Harry took that for proof. Draco no longer felt the same. How much clearer
could he be about it? ?Fine. Yeah. Same here.? He turned to go.
?Good,? Draco said in a thick voice. ?I never wanted any of this anyway,
none of it.?

Harry froze and then turned around slowly. ?Liar,? he hissed.

Eyes widening a bit, a sharp smile lit up Draco's face. ?You want to fight,
Potter?? he snarled.

Harry didn?t have his wand with him, but it didn?t matter. If he could not
touch Draco gently, he?d touch him in anger, and with that in mind, he
slammed his fist into Draco?s face. Draco laughed, even as he shoved Harry,
sending him stumbling back, mist swirling. With a growl, Harry launched
himself at Draco with enough force to knock him to the ground, sprawling
on top of him.

It was a shock, being pressed against the length of Draco?s body that
suddenly, and Harry froze, his eyes flying to Draco?s face, his hands twisted
in the front of Draco?s shirt. Draco was breathing very, very heavily and his
eyes were closed. Against his hip, Harry could feel evidence that fury
wasn?t the only thing making Draco breathless.

His lips were close enough to Draco?s that they nearly touched when Harry
whispered, ?What?s your middle name??

Draco?s eyes flew open and met Harry?s and the coldness inside of them
was gone. Steam had dampened his hair, made it curl a little at the ends. ?I
haven?t got one,? he said, in a voice that nearly cracked.

Harry?s fists, tangled in Draco?s robes, flattened against his chest, and he
breathed out silently as he lowered his head, so his cheek brushed Draco?s,
and Harry rested his head on Draco's shoulder, turning his face and burying
it in the side of Draco's neck. Draco hesitated for a moment, before lifting
one hand and burying his fingers in Harry?s damp hair, his other hand
slipping up to rest on the middle of Harry?s back. They lay like that for a
long while, tangled together on the floor while Draco?s bath cooled and the
mist settled. Both of them were breathing deeply and adjusting to this, being
this close with nothing to blame it on, nothing to hide behind. No magical
spells drawing them together, no lies and deceptions. It could have been
hours later when Harry finally sucked in a trembling breath and said, ?I did
think of you. Last thing before I went to sleep and first thing in the morning.
It?s always been that way and the spell-breaking couldn?t affect that
anymore than it could affect this.?

Draco turned his face a little and closed his eyes. Harry felt his eyelashes
brush his cheek as Draco did it. ?I dreamed of you.?

Smiling a little, Harry lifted his head and staring down at Draco. ?You did??

Draco nodded silently, and Harry kissed him then, very lightly, his fingers
tracing circles in the tiny beads of moisture the steam had left on Draco?s
face. Then he pulled away, and Draco said quietly, ?So what does this
mean??

Harry sat up, grabbing Draco?s hand and pulling him up as well. ?I thought
that when the spell broke, you didn?t want me anymore. I spent all day
regretting that I didn?t just let you leave the spell alone, because the only
reason I had you take it off was because I wanted to prove that it was real,
but I thought I?d failed in that.?

He blinked. ?That?s why you wanted me to break it? Harry, I thought you
wanted to prove that it wasn?t real!?

?Why would I want to deny this?? Harry asked incredulously.

?Because it?s wrong.?

Harry reacted as if he?d been stung, jerking away. He stared at Draco for a
long moment, his eyes narrowing, righteous anger that Draco would dare
call this wrong filling him. With a low growl, Harry slammed his lips against
Draco?s grinding his teeth against his lips in some sort of punishment for
trying to pretend that this was beneath him. The morally deficient son of
Voldemort?s right-hand-man found this wrong?

Draco responded predictably. He moaned and returned the kiss, flipping


Harry so that he was beneath him, back pressed against the stone floor,
dominating him, tearing at his clothes.

Draco broke the kiss he?d taken control of, sat up, straddling Harry?s waist,
and pulled his shirt over his head, tossing it aside. Harry growled again,
shoving Draco off of him and standing up, jerking his trousers off. He
grabbed Draco?s hand and pulled him to his feet, and before Draco could
even catch his balance, Harry had pinned him to the wall, kissing him almost
violently.

?What are you doing?? Draco asked breathlessly, as Harry pulled away to
focus on Draco?s trousers.

?D?you want me to stop??

?Hell no.?

?Then shut up.?

Draco leaned his head back against the tiled wall, closing his eyes and
swallowing heavily. ?I think I?ve been a bad influence on you,? he said, his
voice shaking a little. ?I mean, this is very Slytherin of you.?

Harry didn?t bother to reply. Anger at Draco?s words had made it hard to
think, but even that was nothing compared to what the fire in his blood was
doing to his mind now.

Draco had to bit his lip to keep from making a sound as Harry fell to his
knees before him, and Draco grabbed the counter for support.

?Harry? Harry, what are you doing? I?ohhh?? He sucked in a shaky breath,
closing his eyes. ?Oh god. Don?t stop??

Harry did, standing up again and when he pressed his open mouth to
Draco?s, Draco could taste himself on Harry?s tongue.

The floor was wet, puddles of water from Harry?s bath and settling steam
from Draco?s making it slippery, and as they fought for control of the kiss,
they slipped, falling together into the bath and splashing most of the water
over the edges, onto the floor.

It didn?t matter though, that Harry?s hair was soaked again, and it had nearly
dried, or that his glasses were now spotted with water. Draco?s skin was
slick with water and it made him feel like silk, and later, as they lay together
trying to catch their breath, Harry whispered, ?Now try to tell me again that
this is beneath you.?
?It?s not that it?s beneath me, Harry, that?s not why it?s wrong.? Draco?s
voice was husky.

?Why, then?? Harry buried his head in the side of Draco?s neck. He was still
shaking.

Draco was silent for a long moment, and then he said quietly, ?Because.
Because it?s an archetype. A clich鮠 Tempting the light into darkness.
That?s why it?s wrong.?

?Tempt me, alright, but not into evil. Into you. All over you. Draco? This
isn?t wrong. How can it be wrong?? Harry sounded like he was begging, and
the knowledge made him wince.

Draco shook his head and replied in a lost tone, ?It can?t be. It?s the most
right thing I?ve ever known. It has to be wrong, Harry, it has to be.?

?You?re not making any sense,? Harry cried desperately.

?This doesn?t make any sense! It?ll never last, you know. It?s doomed from
the beginning. Ever since we?ve known each other, we?ve repelled each
other like magnets. I pushed you closer to Dumbledore and you became his
Wonder Boy and I grew so?so jealous that I responded by pushing myself as
far away as I could, straight into Voldemort and if you get hurt by this, by
becoming my weakness? Harry, it?s wrong.?

?I?ve never seen you fall apart like this.?

?That?s because I never have.?

It was silent for a long time, and then Harry sat up. Water ran down his back
and chest, but he didn?t notice, untangling himself from around Draco and
then helping him sit up as well. The remaining water in the bath lapped at
their legs. ?Draco,? Harry said, very gently. ?This has nothing to do with
Voldemort or Dumbledore. It?s just me and you. That?s all it?s ever been.?

Draco scowled. ?I don?t think I know how to make you understand.?

?You?ve never cared if I understand you before, why start now??


?Because now it has everything to do with you and if you don?t understand,
you?ll be hurt.?

?I?m not afraid. Draco, you said this is the most right thing you?ve ever
known. Isn?t that enough??

?I said a lot of things,? Draco replied almost absently.

?Like that you thought you could love me.?

Draco?s eyes flew to Harry?s and then flicked away. ?Yeah. Like that.?

Harry couldn?t think of a thing to reassure Draco. It was incomprehensible


that Draco would deny himself something that gave him pleasure, just as
incomprehensible that he would do it out of worry for someone else.

Instead of wasting words that would be awkward and unsure, Harry touched
Draco?s face, turning back towards his own, and kissed him very, very
gently, coaxingly. It was different than anything else, because for the first
time, Draco let himself be led, touched without needing to dominate,
controlled without needing to fight it. It wasn?t half as bad as he had always
thought it would be.

Harry pulled away and said, ?Trust me, Draco. It?s right.?

?Fine, Potter,? Draco replied finally, smirking a little and rolling his eyes.
?You?ve convinced me. Or at least, I?ll let it go, because any more of this
kind of convincing and we?ll still be in here come morning and, judging by
our luck, some professor will walk in on us.?

Harry grinned. ?You know you liked it.?

?Mmm. Yes. I?m going to have to run myself another bath now, you know.?

?Do it, and I?ll wash your hair,? Harry suggested impishly.

Draco looked appalled. ?I?m quite capable of washing my own hair, Potter!?
he snapped.

Harry laughed, climbing out of the bath. His clothes were wet and he pulled
them on with a grimace. ?Fine then, I?ll leave you to it.?
Harry made his way to the door, and was just about to slip out into the hall,
when Draco called, ?Potter??

He turned. ?What??

Draco was smirking playfully. ?One of these days I?m gonna have to teach
you how to kiss like a man.?

Harry tried desperately to think of a reply to that, his face slowly turning red,
but instead, he just slammed the door and hurried away.

Draco?s laughter followed him all the way down the hall.

Chapter Nine

I'm learning to breathe


I'm learning to crawl
I'm finding that You and
You alone can break my fall
I'm living again, awake and alive
I'm dying to breathe in these abundant skies
So this is the way
that I say that I need You
This is the way
That I say I love You
This is the way
That I say I'm Yours
--Learning to Breathe, Switchfoot

?It?s just an ordinary day,? Draco told himself, as he sat at the window in the
Slytherin dungeons, just before dawn. The giant squid was out already,
breaking up the ice that had formed the night before, and Draco tilted his
head as he watched. Somehow, even if it was like every other morning, at
the same time, it wasn?t. How could it be, when everything had changed?

He hadn?t slept much the night before. He?d lain up all night, trying to think
of ways that this could go wrong, that he could be hurt. After all, nothing he
ever tried to do turned out the way he wanted it to. Just look at the whole
journal thing. Rather than having control over Potter, being able to command
Potter?Well. He wanted to? kiss him. It had been completely unforeseen,
though in retrospect, he couldn?t imagine it turning out any other way.
It all seemed to make a bit more sense at breakfast, however, when he
walked into the Great Hall and Harry seemed instantly to sense him there,
glancing over and smiling, a slight, lopsided and secretive smile. Draco
returned it, even as he rolled his eyes indulgently and went to his own table.

?You alright, Draco?? Pansy asked, as he took his seat beside her.

?You look pale,? Goyle added, though he hadn?t looked up.

?He always looks pale,? Pansy snapped, rolling her eyes in irritation.

?I?m fine, where?s Crabbe?? Draco replied, changing the subject.

Goyle shrugged. ?When I sat near her, he refused to sit with me.? He
shrugged.

?Oh.?

They finished breakfast and made their way to Potions. Pansy seemed
determined to make up for his unusually quiet mood by talking three times
as much as usual, though he didn?t mind. Goyle had gone off to find Crabbe.

They had been learning about Wolfsbane Potion, and that day was to be their
first class in which Snape taught them to brew it.

He was looking grim, probably imagining all the ways they were going to
screw up what was a very difficult and complex concoction, and started the
class off by saying, ?I don?t suppose any student in this class is capable of
brewing this potion alone. That said, I?ve decided that the only way any of
you stand a chance of getting it right is if you are combined into larger
groups. You will brew your potions in groups of three. Make up your groups
and send someone up to the front to get your ingredients. Hurry up.?

?Oi, Pansy!? Weasley cried at once, after Snape had finished talking. ?I?ll be
in your group!? He still wasn?t speaking to Harry.

Pansy shot Draco a beseeching look. ?Sorry, Draco, do you mind??

?Excuse me? Work with Weasley? Willingly??

?Please, Draco?? she begged.


?You?re welcome to him, Pansy, but I?ll find another group.? He walked
away quickly, rolling his eyes. Weasley took his seat, and Draco made his
way over to Harry?s table.

?You can?t be in our group,? Granger said at once.

?Can?t he?? Harry asked, one eyebrow raised.

?I refuse to work with him,? Granger said stuffily.

?Oh, shut up, Hermione,? Harry said mildly, moving his stuff aside so Draco
could sit beside him. Draco smiled at her smugly even as Harry finished.
?Who else are we going to have in our group? Everyone?s already gotten
into groups of three, there?s no one else. Besides, he?s almost as good at
Potions as you are.? His tone was teasing and he reached over and took
Draco?s hand under the table, smiling at him.

?Well, if you would apologize to Ron already,? she snapped, ?We wouldn?t
have to work with Malfoy out of desperation. Be in our group, see if I care,
but we better get 100%, Draco Malfoy, or you?ll pay. If you screw this up??
She scowled, shaking her head. ?I?ll go get the ingredients.

Draco snorted. ?Bitchy little thing, isn?t she??

Harry rolled his eyes. ?Don?t piss her off, Draco, I?d like to have at least a
few friends when the day is over.?

?You don?t need friends, Potter, you?ve got me.?

Harry?s face felt rather warm, and he smiled almost shyly. ?That?s right, I
do, don?t I??

Draco smiled at him. Before he could say anything, Granger had returned,
depositing their ingredients on the table.

Harry had never had a more interesting Potions class. It wasn?t the
Wolfsbane Potion, though that would come in handy. It was the interesting
interactions of Hermione and Draco, both who seemed incredibly possessive
of him. Draco seemed always to find a way to touch him, whether it be just
touching his hand as he reached for something, leaning close enough to
brush his shoulder against Harry?s, or under the table, where sometimes,
Draco would touch Harry?s hand or his leg. Hermione didn?t notice, because
everything looked perfectly accidental, though she did seem blatantly to be
ignoring Draco, forcing Harry to speak to her and look at her, pay attention
to her, and if he seemed to drift off, she?d kick him under the table. Draco,
of course, noticed all of this and found it incredibly amusing to try to distract
Harry, if only because it was driving Hermione mad, and more likely
because he found the most interesting ways to distract him.

All he had to do was say Harry?s name and Harry would jump a little and
turn towards him, forgetting Hermione existed.

By the end of class, she was watching them both with narrow eyes.

She packed up her things, still shooting suspicious glances at the two of
them. Draco further unnerved her by smiling very sweetly, and she leapt out
of her chair.

They started cleaning up the potion ingredients in silence, and just as they?d
finished, Draco knocked over a beaker of Emery blood.

?Oh, bother,? he said, not sounding bothered at all.

Hermione stared at the pool of blood in disgust. ?Malfoy, honestly, I don?t


have time for this, I?ve got an exam in my next class!?

?Go on, Hermione,? Harry said quickly. ?We?ll do it.?

Her eyes narrowed once more and she watched as Harry reached for a rag to
clean the mess up with. Draco reached for the same one at the same second
and their hands brushed, staying in contact for a few seconds too long.

?Mmm. Yes. Uhh. I?ll see you at lunch, Harry,? she said distractedly, before
hurrying out of the classroom. Most of the other students had left as well,
leaving only Snape to sourly take stock of the damage. He was too busy
inspecting the sad attempts at the potion to take much notice of Harry and
Draco, who quickly cleaned up the blood. Then, laughing breathlessly,
Harry let Draco grab him by the arm and tug him into the hall.

?C?mon,? he said. ?We?ve got to hurry.?

?Hurry? Why? Draco, I?ve got class.?


?Exactly. And we don?t want to be too late, do we? People will get
suspicious.? He grinned over his shoulder, and they took off running down a
corridor, up a flight of stairs, and into the wing that led to the greenhouses.
Harry started laughing halfway up the stairs and didn?t stop until they?d
ducked into the arch over Greenhouse Three. Even still, every few seconds,
he?d snicker breathlessly.

?What if someone sees?? Harry asked, though he didn?t really care.

?They won?t,? Draco promised. ?Sprout always needs a bit of time to


prepare for her next class, to finish up whatever didn?t get done and needs to
be done immediately. All her teaching blocks are scattered, so no one?ll be
down here now.?

?Mmm,? Harry murmured, too distracted to really care. Draco was kissing
him and nothing else mattered. He tightened his grip on Draco?s hand,
closing his eyes, and their hands and lips were the only place they touched.

?This is very strange,? Harry said when Draco pulled away.

Draco smiled. ?But I like it.?

?Do it again then.?

Smirking, Draco kissed him again, rough and playfully, biting at his lips and
making Harry laugh, breathless giggles cut off every now and again by
another kiss.

Draco was nibbling on his earlobe and Harry had closed his eyes, tilting his
head back against the door, when there was a startled gasp.

The next thing he knew, Draco was being shoved off of him and someone
was shouting hysterically, ?Harry, Harry, what was he doing to you? Is he a
vampire? I knew it!?

Still rather dazed, Harry stared at Ginny, his eyes clouded over. Taking that
as a sign that a vampire had indeed just attacked him, Ginny spun towards
Draco, who was also feeling rather disoriented. ?You bastard, what have you
done to him?? she cried.

?Ginny,? Harry said, shaking his head a little.


?Don?t talk, Harry, you?ve lost a lot of blood,? Ginny said, standing
protectively in front of him and glowering at Draco, who, for the first time in
his life, kept darting unsure glances at Harry. He didn?t know how to react
to this, if Harry wanted to keep it a secret.

?Ginny,? Harry said, firmer this time. ?Draco didn?t bite me.? Draco looked
as if he were about to argue and Harry amended quickly, ?Well, he didn?t
drink my blood, anyway.?

She spun around to face him. ?Oh really?? she asked, rolling her eyes. ?Then
what was he doing, necking with you??

Harry?s eyes flew to Draco and Draco smirked a little. ?Ginny,? Harry said,
very gently, even as he reached over and took Draco?s hand. Rather
relieved, Draco let himself be tugged to stand at Harry?s side.

Ginny?s eyes widened very slowly as she stared at their joined hands, letting
out a confused whimper. ?I?ve? I forgot my book,? she said slowly, wide
eyes flying from Draco, watching her with rather detached amusement, and
Harry, who was struggling to find someway to make this less awkward.

?Did you find it?? Draco asked, after the silence became too dreadful even
for him.

She held up a book as proof. ?Uh huh.?

?Then be on your way. We?re rather busy.?

She nodded like a puppet and, still pale and startled, turned and
mechanically walked down the hall.

Harry waited until she was gone. Then he started swearing.

Draco rolled his eyes. ?It really wasn?t as harsh as it could have been.?

?You don?t understand. She tells her brother everything.?

?Ah. So you wanted this a secret??

Harry rolled his eyes. ?No. I wanted to tell Ron myself, after he?d gotten
over the fact that he thinks I?ve been messing with Ginny?s head
deliberately and trying to hurt her. He?s very dense when it comes to his
sister.?

?He?s very dense about a lot of things.?

Harry ignored him. ?He?ll hate me. He?ll never understand. Draco, he won?t
understand.?

?He doesn?t have to,? Draco said quietly, seeing the sincere panic in Harry?s
eyes. ?You understand and I understand and he doesn?t matter.?

?He?s my best friend. You wouldn?t understand??

?Oh, of course not, I have no friends, only servants, and they call me your
majesty,? Draco said sarcastically, rolling his eyes.

Harry glanced at him and cried, ?This is really important, can you be serious
for even a minute here??

?I?m always serious! I just don?t see the concern!?

?That?s because you hate him! He can?t hate me. He was the first friend
I?ve ever had.?

?You could be jumping ahead of yourself, Harry. Maybe he?ll understand.?

?Understand that his sister who?s in love with me caught me making out
with not only another guy, but the guy who?s made his life hell for seven
years??

Draco brightened considerably at that. ?Made his life hell? Really? Well, I
do try.?

Harry glared at him. ?Draco. You?re not helping.?

He sighed. ?It?s simple. You?ve just got to tell Weasley before his sister gets
to him. He?s in class now anyway, as we should be. We?re very late.?

Harry still looked uncertain. ?I didn?t want anyone to know,? he said


quietly.

?Ashamed?? Draco asked coldly, sneering.


?No. It was a secret, it was just ours, no one else knew about it. It
was?secret. The only thing I?ve ever had that no one else knew about.?

Draco smiled at him. ?We?ve got to get to class, Harry. You can tell
Weasley whatever you want after that. I?ll even come with you if you want.?

Harry looked relieved. ?You will? That?ll probably infuriate him more, but?
it?ll make it easier for me.?

?Of course I?ll come with you,? Draco said, looking pained at the thought of
willingly associating with Weasley. Harry looked relived and he took his
hand and they walked off down the hall together.

***

As soon as his last class ended, Harry met Draco in the Great Hall and they
went to find Ron. Though he tried to hide it, Harry was feeling incredibly
nervous. Confessing to Ron would be the hardest thing he?d ever done.

?I heard him mention something about the library,? Harry said. ?Hermione
was telling him to meet her there after class. C?mon.?

They went to the library, Draco waiting outside and Harry going in to see if
Ron was there. He was sitting on a table at the back and looking bored.
Hermione wasn?t there yet.

?Ron,? Harry said quietly. ?We?ve got to talk.?

He looked startled, and then he scowled. ?No, I?ve got nothing to say.?

?I?ve got to explain some things to you, it?s important. I?m sorry if you got
the wrong idea, but I never meant to hurt your sister. Come with me, we
can?t talk in here.?

He still looked sullen, but Ron hopped off the table and followed Harry out
of the library. When he saw Draco there, however, he froze.

?What?s he doing here??

Harry licked his lips nervously, glancing from Draco?s lazy smirk and
Ron?s pinched face. ?Ron??
Ron looked at him. ?What??

Trying desperately to think of something to say, Harry shot Draco a pleading


look. Rolling his eyes a little, Draco drawled, ?Look, Weasley, it?s like this
??

?What are you doing here?? Ron snapped.

?I asked him to come,? Harry blurted.

His eyes narrowed and Ron glanced back at him. ?Why? Harry? why? You
hate him.?

?I don?t.?

There was a tense silence as Ron glanced from Draco to Harry and back
again. ?Is that what this is about? You?ve got a new best friend? Malfoy??

Harry was feeling desperate again. ?No, Ron, he?s not my best friend!
You?re my best friend!?

?Then what are you trying to say?? Ron shouted, losing his temper.

Harry was shaking and fighting panic. Forgetting about Weasley for the
moment, Draco reached over and took his hand. ?Calm down, Harry,? he
said quietly, teasingly. ?You?re forgetting how to breathe again.?

?Don?t touch him,? Ron said shakily. ?Don?t fucking touch him. Harry,
don?t let him touch you.?

Ron was staring at their joined hands with disgust and something almost like
terror in his eyes. Harry?s hand tightened instinctively around Draco?s and
he glared at Ron. ?I like it when he touches me, Ron, that?s what I?m trying
to say.?

?You hurt my sister, played with her, made her cry, as a cover for? for? It?s
wrong, it?s wrong, how could you? Harry, how could you let him touch
you?? He sounded lost and weak, and Harry lost his temper.

?What, it surprises you that I?d rather be with Malfoy than your little sister?
That I?d rather he kissed me than she did? Honestly, Ron! Being with her
was painful, I never wanted her, you just kept pushing her at me, and every
time I tried to get away, you blamed me for hurting her! If I led her on, it
was only because you wouldn?t let me get away. If anyone hurt her, it was
you, with your incessant claims that I was meant to be with her! I?m not, I
never was. I am where I belong. With Draco.?

There was a stunned, painful silence, and Harry suddenly realized that Ron
wasn?t even looking at him anymore. He was staring at something just over
Harry?s shoulder and, with a sick feeling of dread, Harry turned. Hermione
was standing there, one hand tightly wrapped around Ginny?s upper arm, the
only thing keeping the red haired girl from turning and running as fast as she
could. Her face was pale, her eyes wide and stunned, shining with tears.

?Ginny,? Harry said, voice cracking. ?I didn?t mean ??

Hermione?s lower lip was trembling. ?Harry?? she chided, very gently. A
low sound, like an animal in pain, escaped Ginny?s lips, and she wrenched
away. Harry would have thought she?d run, but she didn?t. She was staring
at him with dark, bruised eyes.

?Harry,? she said, in a lost little voice. ?I was coming to tell Ron that? that it
wasn?t your fault. That if you were in love with someone else, it was alright.
I? I didn?t mean?? She trailed off, glancing at Draco who, for the first time
was looking at her with something other than a cold sneer. He looked almost
compassionate. ?I?m sorry.?

She walked away, her entire body stiff as if she were made of glass and
afraid she would break. Harry shot Ron a panicked glance, but Ron didn?t
seem to be over his shock yet, and Hermione said quietly, ?Go after her,
Harry.?

Harry shook his head. ?I?ve got to make Ron understand.?

?I?ll explain it to him,? she said, smiling gently.

?But how do you know??

?How dense do you think I am? Go after her.?

With one last glance at Draco, Harry let go of his hand and took off after
Ginny. Hermione ignored him, took Ron by the arm, and led him away.
Seconds later, Draco was standing alone outside the library. He rolled his
eyes, ran a hand through his hair, and sighed. ?That could have gone better,
I?ll admit that,? he said out loud, wishing that he felt more confident that
Harry would eventually be back.

***

He had no idea where Ginny went when she was upset, so if Harry had any
chance of talking with her, he knew he had to catch up to her before she got
too far away or he?d never find her.

He ran as fast as he could, desperate to find her and explain. Finally catching
up to her just outside of Moaning Myrtle?s bathroom, he grabbed her by the
arm. She yelped, startled, and spun around to face him, furious.

?Harry, let me go,? she said stubbornly, tugging at her arm.

Harry was panting, trying to catch his breath. ?No, I?ve got to talk to you,
you?ve got to let me explain.?

?There?s nothing to explain. Do you have any idea how humiliating that
was? Honestly, Harry!?

He was vaguely surprised and impressed. Ginny was proving that she had a
backbone for the first time. ?No, that?s what you?ve got to understand. I
never meant you to hear that.?

She rolled her eyes and spat, ?Oh, so you only wanted Malfoy and Ron how
you?d never wanted me? How you hated me??

?I don?t hate you,? he said quietly.

She laughed spitefully. ?Oh, no, you don?t. What is it you said? Being near
me was painful??

?Ginny?I didn?t mean it. I was just so angry at him.?

She finally succeeded in wrenching her arm from his grip. ?You know what,
Harry? I really liked you. Back in first year, I would have done anything for
you. You were so blind, but that was alright, because at least that, I
understood. This, this whole year, you?ve been acting so strangely towards
me, and you know what? If Harry-Potter-Boy-Who-Lived is that unstable, I
decided weeks ago that I wanted nothing to do with it! The night of the
Halloween Ball. That?s when I decided. But you kept acting like you might
want me and pushing me away and I was so confused, but I didn?t want
you? I didn?t.?

He wondered if she was lying but couldn?t quite tell. ?Honestly, Ginny, we
were friends, weren?t we? Before all of this happened this year??

?Friends? You were so obsessed with your little group of Ron and Hermione
that you didn?t know I existed, Harry! How is that friendship? And now
look what you?ve done, destroyed all that as well, and for what? Some
perverted relationship with Malfoy??

He flinched. ?It isn?t like that, it?s not. Listen to me.?

?Then defend yourself, Harry. Prove that hurting me and making me cry and
hurting Ron and breaking up your precious little group of friends was worth
it.?

He started to get a little angry himself. ?I don?t see you crying, Ginny.?

?You never did,? she said softly, shaking her head.

It was silent for a moment or two, because Harry didn?t know what to say.
Finally, he sighed. ?Those things I said to Ron today, they weren?t true. I
was just so angry, I wasn?t thinking right. We were friends, Ginny, before
all of this happened, and I never meant to hurt you. Just as I never meant for
any of this with Draco to happen. But it did, and I can?t change it, and I
can?t take any of it back.?

Her eyes narrowed, and she asked quietly, ?You?d take it back? Everything
with Malfoy? If it meant that you had never hurt me and that you and Ron
were alright again, would you take it back??

Harry took a slow step back, his eyes wide and dark. ?I don?t know,? he
whispered. ?It wasn?t supposed to happen.?

?Well then, figure it out before you try explaining it to me again,? she
snapped, walking away. Harry didn?t bother going after her, and he didn?t
notice when, as soon as she turned the corner, she fell to the ground and
started to cry, much the way he had expected in the beginning.

Harry turned slowly and walked away, feeling bruised all over and very
tired.

***

Hours had gone by, and Draco had wandered around the castle, vaguely
amused and embittered all at once at the knowledge that he, a Malfoy and a
Slytherin and all else combined, was wandering the castle moping and
waiting for The-Boy-Who-Lived to remember he existed and come back for
him. Finally, as the sun set, he made his way back to his common room,
annoyed at Harry for not coming to find him and disgusted at himself for
waiting, and for his paranoid imaginings of all the nasty things Harry could
have gotten up to with the Weasley girl by now. Jealousy, especially as
irrational as it was in this case, was not something he was used to feeling.

He sat by the long windows that looked out towards the lake. On the
windowsill with his legs pulled up and his arms looped around them; he was
still sitting that way when Pansy entered the common room, glanced around
almost nervously, and approached him.

?Draco.?

He glanced at her, startled. Then he smiled, though it was forced and weak.
?Oh. Pansy. Done shagging Weasley for the night??

She rolled her eyes and perched nervously on the nearest chair. ?Don?t be
crude, Draco.?

He laughed. ?Crude, me? Never.? He turned so his legs were hanging over
the ledge of the window and studied her for a moment. Abruptly, he said,
?What do you want??

?To talk. I heard something strange about you and wanted to know if it was
true.?

?You know I don?t put much stock in rumors.?

?Ron told me.?


Draco stiffened. ?Ah. And what did Weasley tell you??

She glanced around nervously and said reluctantly, ?That you had been? that
you and? you??

He rolled his eyes. ?Shagged Harry Potter??

Flinching a little at his dry tone, she shrugged. ?Yeah? Did you? I didn?t
believe him when he told me, but he was so adamant that I just had to ask.
It?s ridiculous, isn?t it? Like Draco Malfoy would ever willing touch
someone like Harry Potter ??

He cut her off by hopping off the windowsill and walking away. Startled,
Pansy stared after him for a long moment before hurrying to follow him. She
stopped him just before he went up the stairs to his dormitory by grabbing
his arm. He froze, and said in a tight voice, without turning, ?Don?t touch
me. Don?t fucking touch me.?

Pansy snatched her hand back as if it had been burned. ?Draco,? she said
softly. ?Talk to me. What did I say??

He turned quickly and snarled, ?What is it you want to hear? All the nasty
details? If you thought I was being crude before, Pansy, you wouldn?t be
able to handle that.?

?D-details?? she squeaked.

He didn?t care that there were other people in the common room who might
overhear. It didn?t matter anyway, because when he started to shout, the
small group of first years, the only other occupants of the room, exchanged a
few startled glances and left hurriedly.

?Yes, details,? he spat, and she stepped back, startled. He stalked her like
some sort of wild cat, until she was backed against the wall. His voice rose
with every word. ?Details about how it happened, how I ended up fucking
Harry-Potter-Wonder-Boy like an animal, and every sound he made, and
every sound I made, and how many times and where and when and how??
Finally, his voice fell to a silken whisper. ?And how much I liked it. How it
was to be inside him. Those details. Isn?t that what you came here for??
Her wide eyes held his for a long moment, and she shook her head slowly.
?No,? she whispered. ?I came because we?ve known each other our whole
lives, and if you were hurting, I wanted to help you.?

?Help me?? he growled. ?Oh, of course I need help. Because Draco Malfoy
would never willingly touch someone like Harry Potter.?

?I didn?t know you had,? she said delicately, pushing at his chest lightly to
get him to back off and let her move. He still had her pinned against the
wall. ?Honestly, Draco, I?m not afraid of you. Are you trying to scare me??

?You certainly looked scared.?

?Startled, yes. It?s not everyday you find out the boy you?ve known forever
and had a crush on as a little girl is?well?shagging his worst enemy?and a?
umm? another guy.? She shrugged, and slipped away from him, studying
him from a safer distance. Finally, she asked, ?Why?? Her voice was laden
with curiosity.

?You wouldn?t understand,? he said finally, with a wry and self-deprecating


smile. He went back to the windowsill, sitting on it and staring out at the
lake again, thoughtfully. The sun had gone down now and silver moonlight
was the only light in the common room as no one had yet lit the fire in the
hearth. It cast Draco in silver shadows and, Pansy decided almost ruefully,
almost made it look like he was carved from marble.

?Wouldn?t I?? she asked quietly, pulling herself up onto the sill beside him.
?Understand, I mean. Maybe not all of it. But some. Ron wasn?t exactly the
best person for me to fall for, you know.?

Draco smiled. ?Mmm, I know. Weasley isn?t the best person for anyone to
fall for.?

She rolled her eyes and shoved him playfully. ?Be nice.?

?I?m always nice,? he said angelically.

?Mmm, yeah, sure.?

There was silence for a while, and Draco rested his head on his folded arms,
lost in thought. It was a clear, cloudless night, and he could easily see all the
way down to the lake. He wondered fleetingly where Harry was and if he
should go look for him, but forced the thoughts away. After all, if Draco
Malfoy didn?t willingly touch someone like Harry Potter, then he certainly
didn?t spend hours waiting for him and then go in search of him when he
neglected to come back. There was just so far he could lower himself in this
bloody situation without permanently damaging his pride.

?Draco?? Pansy asked, after a while had passed. ?Can I ask you something??

He glanced at her and shrugged. ?I don?t care. What??

?Did it mean anything? You and him, I mean.?

Draco considered for a long moment and then said abruptly, ?Everything. It
was everything.? He didn?t know if he expected her to scoff or laugh, or
maybe even understand. After all, her relationship with Ron had to be
something like his with Harry. Something that never should have happened,
but now that it had, he couldn?t see any other way things could have turned
out.

?Well? Ron was pretty upset, when I talked to him. Because they?d had a
huge fight, from what I understand. And if Ron was any indication, then
I?ve got to say, Harry?s got to be a mess right now.?

?So??

?So what are you doing here with me??

He looked away, shoulders slumping, and laughed scornfully. ?He didn?t


come back for me,? he said after a long pause.

?So??

Draco scowled. ?So? I may not hate the git any longer, but I?m still a
Malfoy, for god?s sake! I don?t go following people like a lovesick puppy.?

She rolled her eyes. ?C?mon, Draco, even if you did go after him, you?d
hardly be a lovesick puppy. More like a lovesick dragon, and there?s still
some dignity in that. If it means that much to you, and I know you well
enough to see that it does, even if I don?t understand how it happened, then
go after him. I won?t tell anyone, and he?ll most likely appreciate it. If he
doesn?t, he?s a fool.?

?Are you trying to advise me?? Draco snickered.

She shoved him off the windowsill. ?Yeah, and maybe someday you?ll get
over yourself enough to thank me for it,? she said, laughing.

Draco, looking disgruntled at having been pushed, straightened his clothing


and said scathingly, ?Yeah, and maybe someday you?ll remember that I told
you not to touch me.?

She grinned. ?Maybe. But probably not.?

Smiling reluctantly, Draco rolled his eyes. He moved to take his seat on the
windowsill again, but Pansy stopped him with a glare. ?Draco,? she scolded.
?What?s more damaging to your pride? Moping around in here and being all
?oh poor me, the object of my affections had a huge fight with his best
friend and forgot to come back for me? or going after him yourself? I didn?t
think Malfoys were the type to give up when they want something. At least,
not this easily.?

?Fine!? Draco snapped. ?I?ll go, alright??

She smiled brightly. ?Good.?

He glared at her once more before letting himself out of the common room,
and she was still beaming at him.

***

?It?s not like I had a choice,? Harry said, and Hedwig just watched him
patiently. It was cold, with the tower window open, but he didn?t notice. The
chill served to keep his growing headache at bay, and he was grateful for
that.

?It?s not like I betrayed them all on purpose,? he whispered, feeding her an
owl treat. She had found him up in the tower and delivered a letter from
Sirius that he hadn?t yet bothered to look at. ?It wasn?t like I had a choice,?
he repeated.
?Potter.?

He jumped and spun around. Draco was standing in the tower, his eyes
narrowed. He looked very indignant. ?Draco,? Harry said with a shaking
smile. ?Hi. I didn?t know you were there.?

?You never came back.? He sounded sullen.

?Ginny and I fought and I? needed to think.

Draco rolled his eyes and frowned. ?You never came back. I don?t wait for
people, Harry. I was??

?What??

?Well, imagining all manner of foul things you could be up to with


Weasley?s sister, actually.?

Harry looked shocked. ?Jealous? I made Draco Malfoy jealous??

Draco scoffed. ?Don?t get used to the idea, I assure you that it won?t happen
again.?

Harry smiled. ?Good. Cos you?ve got nothing to be jealous of. We fought.
Ginny and I, I mean.?

?About me??

He shrugged. ?More about me, really.?

Draco was feeling rather insecure and he hated the feeling. He scowled
fiercely. ?You said that you didn?t have a choice. When I was standing in
the doorway. Like? like you didn?t want this. I gave you plenty of
opportunities to deny it, Potter. Plenty of opportunities to run like a child.?

?You said so yourself that I was never a child. Neither of us were.?

?Being a child and having a childhood are completely different things, but
you?re changing the subject. You said that you?d never been given a
choice.? He tossed his head back and snorted. ?I?m giving you one now.?
Harry watched him nervously. There was a tense energy wound tightly
around Draco and it worried him. ?Draco, are you alright??

?Alright?? Draco snapped, voice like a whip. ?I waited for you, Harry! Like
a bloody fool, I waited for hours. I don?t wait for people, and if I ever did
lower myself to wait, I certainly would expect whomever it was I was
waiting for to show up.?

?Draco ??

But Draco wasn?t finished yet. ?What sort of trust is that? The first time
something happens with those bloody friends of yours, you go prancing off
and forget I exist? I won?t have it, no one forgets I exist, not even ??

Harry was shaking his head in a bemused sort of way and he walked towards
Draco, smiling indulgently. Before Draco could say another word, Harry
interrupted with, ?You stupid, stupid Malfoy.? He kissed him then, holding
his face captive with his hands, and when he finally let him go, all of
Draco?s righteous anger had drained away, letting Harry see the true
insecurities beneath.

?Not even someone who didn?t have a choice in being with me,? Draco
finished quietly.

Harry?s eyes widened a fraction, and his hands were still on Draco?s face.
?Stupid Malfoy,? he said again, very softly. ?You think if I had a choice, I
would have chosen anything other than this??

For a wild moment, Draco just stared at him, speechless and trying to decide
how he was supposed to react to that. ?Then make up your bloody mind!? he
shouted finally, losing all control. ?If you feel that way, than stop going on
as if you?re just a victim of fate! If you don?t want this, then bugger off! If
you do, then stop with the unnecessary moping! Honestly, Harry, you did
have a choice and you chose this and now it?s like you?re feeling guilty and
trying to say you had no choice in the matter, as if that?ll make it alright.
Well I won?t have it. Make up your sodding mind, right now. Do you want
this? Do you want me? And remember, Potter. I?m a Malfoy. Most people
don?t get second chances, and I honestly think this must be your fourth or
fifth.?
Harry, feeling rather stung at being attacked by all of his friends and now
Draco as well, said weakly, ?Draco, don?t.?

?Fine,? Draco snapped. ?You don?t want to choose? Then I?ll choose for
you.?

?Don?t? don?t go,? Harry pleaded, even as he winced at how weak he


sounded.

?Go?? Draco repeated, his tone low and silky even as he stepped closer.
?You seem to have forgotten, Potter. I?m a Malfoy. If you didn?t want me, it
wouldn?t matter, because we don?t generally ask permission for what we
want, we just take it. And I wouldn?t be here now if I didn?t want you. You
don?t want to choose, then I?ll choose for you.? He had backed Harry up
against the window now, startling Hedwig and sending her flying out of the
tower with an indignant shriek.

?What are you doing?? Harry asked nervously.

Draco smiled slightly. ?Making up your mind for you.?

Harry swallowed thickly. ?Well, hurry up,? he said weakly. ?You?re driving
me mad, being this close and all.?

Smirking triumphantly, Draco tilted Harry?s head up and slammed his lips
down, driving all thoughts about anything other than how much he wanted
this from Harry?s mind.

Draco forced Harry?s mouth open and kissed him so hard that it nearly hurt.
His fingers dug into Harry?s arms, his tongue flicking into his mouth, lips
crushing Harry?s, grinding them against his teeth. It was punishment for
making Draco doubt Harry and in turn doubt himself, and Harry decided
rather breathlessly that if this were the punishment for making Draco
jealous, he should definitely try to do it again, many times in the future.

And then, so suddenly that Harry let out a low moan of frustration, Draco
stepped back and let go.

?Draco, what?? Harry asked incoherently, taking a steadying breath.

?You?re mine, Potter.?


Harry frowned. ?You own me??

?Yes.?

?Since when??

Draco smiled slowly, devilishly, and Harry watched his lips hungrily. ?Since
I decided you were worth owning.?

?Like a horse.? Harry still hadn?t quite gotten a hold of himself, after
Draco?s devastating kiss.

Nodding with a regal air, Draco said, ?Quite right, Potter.?

Harry felt vaguely like he should be arguing, but somehow staring at


Draco?s lips just seemed like the better thing to do. However, halfheartedly,
he said, ?Does that mean I own you too??

Snorting, Draco drawled, ?Malfoys aren?t owned by anyone, Potter.?

?And Potters are??

?Apparently.?

Before Harry, who was beginning to feel quite indignant, could argue, Draco
kissed him again, and Harry let his indignation slip away. After all, it wasn?t
as if he couldn?t bring this up later when there weren?t so many distractions.
Besides, it wasn?t as if Draco had claimed him, was it? Left some mark on
him?

??Oh.? Harry shivered, as Draco started ripping his cloths off. ?You?re
ravishing me, aren?t you?? He laughed and then began returning the favour.
He paused as Draco?s shirt hit the floor. ?But you don?t own me, Draco
Malfoy. You?re wrong.?

Draco just smiled and kissed him again, having decided that more distraction
was in order. And distract he did. Moments later, on the floor and on top of
Harry, who seemed to have forgotten how to breathe, Draco began teasing
Harry almost beyond control. He flicked his tongue along the outer shell of
Harry?s ear. ?Say it. C?mon, you know it?s true.?
?No,? Harry said shakily, answering the challenge he heard in Draco?s voice
with a lopsided and rather desperate smile. ?It?s not true. I am not yours.?

Draco smiled grimly. After all, he always welcomed a challenge.

Moments later, he?d driven Harry to the edge over and over again only to
back off with a small smirk, and Harry was nearly wild with desperation. He
was pouting like a sullen child, his body bathed in sweat, his hands
trembling.

Draco smiled very slowly, and bit Harry?s bottom lip playfully. ?You?re
mine, Harry,? he said coaxingly, his hand trailing down Harry?s sweaty
chest, over his flat stomach, and lower.

Harry let his eyes close slowly, his eyelashes brushing Draco?s lips as the
other boy hovered over him. His breath hissing out between his teeth, Harry
breathed, ?I?m yours.?

Draco smiled triumphantly as he kissed Harry very gently, even as the other
boy arched against him and moaned. Draco pushed inside him and Harry
knew that it was true.

He was lost. Body, heart, and soul. Draco may as well have branded him and
claimed him with a thousand flags, because there was no going back. Harry
belonged to him, and no matter what happened in the future, Draco was
inside of him, all over him, and Harry didn?t care one bit. If he believed in
fate, he would have said that everything in his life had led up to this.

As it was, he was too busy trying to catch his breath to consider it.

Chapter Ten

What are you hungry for?


Just a slice of something sweet?
Or a smorgasbord of lost romances?
What do you need me for?
Another enemy to beat,
Just to prove that you've thrown all your chances out?
--Matt Caplan, September
When Harry entered the Gryffindor common room, his eyes were blazing
with some new conviction he hadn?t had in the hall when confronting his
friends earlier. It didn?t matter that his hair was wild from Draco?s fingers,
his clothing wasn?t quite tidy, or that his lips were a little swollen from
having been kissed so many times, because no one noticed that. All they
noticed was his eyes and how bright they were. Harry?s eyes hadn?t been
that bright since beginning the third challenge at the Triwizard Tournament
in third year.

?Harry?? Hermione asked. ?You alright??

Ron didn?t say a thing, but he ran his eyes over Harry?s body, noting his
hair and his lips and the wrinkles in his clothes. He turned away in disgust,
conveniently forgetting that his own hair was ruffled from Pansy?s fingers
and his own lips swollen from her kisses.

?Ron,? Harry said sharply. ?Outside, now. We?ve got to talk.?

?I don?t want to talk,? Ron said stubbornly. ?At least not to you.?

?And I don?t want to hear anymore of your hypocritical whining. Outside,


now.?

Ron?s eyes widened a bit. ?I don?t want ??

Harry grabbed him by the front of his robes, hauled him to his feet, and
shoved him out of the portrait hole.

?Harry?? Hermione began.

He smiled at her. ?I won?t hurt him. We?ll talk when I?m done with him.?

The portrait closed behind him, and Ron was waiting with a baleful glare on
his pale face. ?Don?t push me around,? he snarled.

?Then listen when I tell you to do something,? Harry replied easily. ?C?mon,
we?ve got to talk.?

Ron still looked mutinous, but he followed Harry down the hall and into an
empty classroom. ?I don?t think we have anything to talk about.?
?I do. I?m only going to explain this to you once, Ron, so listen carefully.
It?s complicated enough without your self-righteous attitude, like you?ve got
a reason to be offended by this.?

?I?ve got every reason to be offended,? Ron hissed. ?Ginny ??

?This has nothing to do with her and you know it,? Harry snapped. ?Just
admit it, Ron. You know I?d never hurt her on purpose. Ginny and I are
friends.?

?You and I are friends, and look what you?ve done to me.?

Harry smiled in a satisfied sort of way. ?Finally, we get to the point.? He


crossed his arms over his chest and then said, ?Ron, I didn?t do anything to
you to make you react this way.?

Considering for a moment, Ron sat on one of the empty desks and studied
Harry in silence. ?Damn it, Harry, it?s Malfoy. How can you say you
haven?t betrayed me? I mean, if you wanted to fuck around with another
guy, which I don?t get either, but far be it for me to question that, you could
have at least chosen someone that wasn?t? that hasn?t been an ass to me
since the first day I met him!?

Harry?s eyes narrowed. ?It wasn?t about you. Get that through your head. I
didn?t sit around thinking ?what is the one thing I could do that would hurt
my best friend? Oh, I know! Fall for Malfoy!? Not everything?s about you.
This had nothing to do with you.?

Ron looked hurt. ?You?re wrong, it had everything to do with me. You
never would have even started hanging around him if I had been a better
friend.?

Exasperation made Harry roll his eyes. ?That?s bullshit. That?s so stupidly
wrong, Ron, and you know it.?

?Then why?? he snapped. ?I wanted you to be with Ginny. My little sister. I


thought you were worth her, Harry. But I would have understood if you
hadn?t liked her because? because you fancied Dean or? or Oliver or
Seamus or? I would have even supported you if you wanted to shag Neville,
for gods? sake.? He laughed in a desperate tone. ?Hell, Harry, I?d have fixed
you up with Percy if you wanted me to. Anyone but Malfoy.?
Harry?s voice was soft. ?I don?t want anyone but Malfoy.?

?But ??

?You can?t say anything that?ll change my mind, Ron. If you can?t accept
this, than it?s up to you. I?m not going to let go of this because you don?t
like him.?

Ron?s eyes reflected his hurt. ?You?d choose him over me??

Gently, Harry replied, ?He?s not the one making me choose, Ron.?

?I? You?d lose all of this because you like shagging Malfoy.? Ron sounded
weak with disgust.

?I don?t just?shag him!? Harry snapped. ?I? talk with him and? and hold his
hand and kiss ?? He stopped at the pained look on Ron?s face. ?And it?s
more than that, much more. I?d lose my friendship with you because even if
I did choose you over him, Ron, I?d never trust you again because you made
me choose. Either way, I?m losing you. The way I see it, it?s choose you and
lose everything because in choosing you, I destroy our friendship anyway.
Or letting you go and keeping what I?ve got with Draco. I don?t want to lose
you, you?re my best friend. So the only way you?re going to lose me is if
you choose to let me go. I?ve found that it?s easier to let others make my
choices for me.? He smiled. ?But this choice is yours to make, Ron.?

Ron was still looking rather pale and weak, and Harry had run out of things
to say. He sighed. ?I never meant for Ginny to be mixed up in this, and I
didn?t mean what I said earlier about her. Let me know what you decide.?

He turned to go, walking slowly, waiting for Ron to call him back. He
didn?t.

***

It was easier, telling Hermione, probably because she?d figured most of it


out already. She was shocked, of course, and a little reproachful, especially
when he told her how things had gone with Ron.

?Oh, Harry,? she said, her eyes wide. ?Surely you wouldn?t stop being
friends with Ron over this.?
?It?s not my choice,? Harry replied with a shrug. He wasn?t quite sure how
he felt about Ron, but he knew that it was out of his hands. He wouldn?t lose
Draco, not for anything.

?And Ginny??

Harry smiled wryly. ?Strangely enough, given all the things she shouted at
me earlier, I think she may be more understanding than her brother.?

Hermione smiled slightly, though she still looked worried. ?Do you trust
him, Harry? Do you trust Malfoy? If he hurts you? If he does, I?ll curse him
so badly??

?Don?t worry, Hermione, I know what I?m doing.?

?I don?t understand how it happened.?

He shrugged. ?I?ll tell you someday, when I?ve got the time. But I?ve got to
find Ginny, and it?s late, so I?ll talk to you later, alright? And? take care of
Ron. I hope?? he trailed off and shook his head. ?Never mind.?

He found Ginny in the library, where she had gone to hide after he had
dragged Ron from the common room. She was staring sightlessly at a book,
her eyes glazed over and her face very pale. Harry sat down across from her.

?Ginny. Hi.?

?Hello, Harry,? she said tonelessly, not looking up from her book.

Harry reached over and took the book from her. ?Look at me.?

She sighed and did so, asking dryly, ?What do you want??

?To explain.?

?You tried this once already today.?

?Yeah, and you freaked out, started yelling, and ran away. So I figure the
library?s the perfect place to try again as Pince?ll kill you if you start
shouting. So now you?ve got to listen.?
?Talk then, Harry, but do hurry up.? She rested her head on her hand and
tried to look bored.

?Right. First? about the ball.? He took a deep breath, knowing that she?d be
hurt when she knew everything but determined to be honest. ?I asked you
because I wanted Ron to go to the ball and he said he?d only go if I asked
you.?

Her eyes widened a little and her lips tightened, but Ginny didn?t say a
word.

?I? he was only doing what he thought was right for you, Ginny,? Harry said
quickly. ?But it wasn?t fair, all the same.?

?Then why did you kiss me that night?? she snapped.

?Well? That?s where it gets?harsh. See, I didn?t. It wasn?t me.?

?Funny,? she said sarcastically. ?He looked just like you.?

?Draco?s costume charm made him look just like me. It was him.? After he
blurted that out, Harry flinched and waited for her reaction.

It took a few startled minutes of her just staring at him blankly, and then
Ginny said slowly, ?Malfoy. Malfoy pretended to be you and kissed me
and?? She trailed off, frowning. Harry was rather relieved, he?d expected
her to start screaming and throwing things. ?No wonder you didn?t
remember,? she said with a brittle laugh.

?I didn?t know he had done that until that day I got really sick. I?m sorry, it
shouldn?t have happened, he was just playing around, Ginny. He?s got a
twisted sense of what?s fun.?

?And yet you still like him better than me?? she asked sharply.

?Ginny,? Harry snapped. ?It isn?t about you. I do like you, as a friend. It?s
got nothing to do with Draco.?

She rolled her eyes but didn?t comment. ?What about that night you made
me kiss you? That was you, wasn?t it??
Harry shrugged. ?Yeah. I was? I was sort of confused.?

?I would have understood, you know,? she sighed. ?If someone had just told
me? I meant what I said earlier, Harry. After Halloween, you sort of scared
me.? She was smiling a little painfully.

?You were never supposed to get involved in this and I never meant to hurt
you. But you asked me earlier if I would take back everything with Draco if
it meant that I?d never hurt you or caused these problems between me and
Ron. I wouldn?t, Ginny. Not for the world.?

She studied his face solemnly and then a small smile flickered at her lips. ?I
wouldn?t think so, Harry,? she said. ?I may not like him at all, but even I?ve
noticed that you?ve been happier than ever lately. People who are lucky
enough to find something like that shouldn?t ever let it go.?

Harry grinned. ?I won?t. Not ever.?

She smiled and nodded, reaching over to gently push his glasses back up his
nose. He hadn?t even been aware they?d slipped. ?He?s really lucky, Harry,
I hope he understands that.?

Laughing, Harry took her hand and squeezed it. ?If he doesn?t, he will soon
enough,? he said with a smirk that it took Ginny a moment to realize where
she?d seen it before. On Draco?s lips.

***

The next day, Harry walked into Potions just before class started. He smiled
shyly at Draco before sitting next to Ron, deliberately ignoring the glare on
his best friend?s face that got nastier when he noticed the direction of
Harry?s smile. Harry turned to him.

?Hello,? he said, rather stiffly, waiting for Ron?s reaction. After all, their
entire future depended on Ron?s choice, whether he would turn away from
Harry or not.

It appeared that Ron didn?t even know what he was going to do. His eyes
narrowed and Hermione glared at him and he mumbled, ?Hi.?

It was a start at least, and Harry felt a little better.


After class, it seemed to be an unspoken agreement, and both Harry and
Draco took an incredibly long time packing up their things. In fact, by the
time they had finished, everyone except Snape had already left and, with
rather shy smiles, they left the classroom together.

?You alright, Harry?? Draco asked, as they made their way down the hall
towards their next classes.

Harry frowned. ?Yeah, why??

Shrugging, Draco said, ?What happened last night, with Weasley??

?You care?? he couldn?t help being surprised.

Draco shoved him playfully. ?Of course I care, you twit. I may not like him,
but I don?t want him to? to hurt you.?

?Oh.? Harry considered that for a moment and then, blushing a little, he
slipped his hand into Draco?s, almost experimentally.

Glancing at him sideways, Draco smirked. ?Are you holding my hand,


Potter??

Harry looked rather defiant, even if his face was still red from his blush.
?Yes.?

Draco laughed and kissed him quickly. ?Alright. But don?t change the
subject.? He tightened his hand around Harry?s. ?What happened with
Weasley??

?Well, he? sort of said that I?d betrayed him and that I should be with Ginny
and? if the problem is that? that I don?t like girls, I should be with?Seamus
or Percy or something.? Harry shrugged.

Scowling, Draco rolled his eyes. ?What did you say??

He glanced at Draco and smiled. ?That I didn?t want to be with anyone but
you.?

Draco felt his face flush a little bit, just along the cheekbones, and he winced
at the knowledge that Harry had the power to make him blush. He could see
Harry watching him in amusement, laughing a little, and stuck his tongue
out playfully, making Harry laugh even harder.

They had to part ways soon after, going to their separate classes, and they
did so with a lingering kiss and a few whispering words, promising to meet
up later.

In Divination that day, they were studying prophecy, and Harry found the
subject very boring. After all, he didn?t believe in fate, and this was just a
fancy way for crackpot old men to pretend they could predict it. Riddles,
Harry didn?t like riddles. They were deliberately misleading and far too
often self-fulfilling.

That?s why he was a little startled when his attention snapped away from the
tower window and back to the professor. She had said Draco?s last name.

?What?? he asked suddenly, and the whole class turned to look at him,
surprised. Ron rolled his eyes.

?I said, Mister Potter,? Trelawney repeated, ?That some families have


ancient prophecies that are passed from one generation to the next, until the
time that they are fulfilled. Almost every old, pureblooded family has at
least one, kept in their library somewhere. I mentioned that the Malfoys
were one of them. Did you require further repetition, or did you find the rest
of my lesson worth paying attention to?? She sounded quite annoyed and
Harry flushed.

?Uhh, that?s good, thanks,? he mumbled, and she continued teaching. Harry
glanced out of the window.

It was rather interesting, actually. Draco had never mentioned it. Then again,
being from a pureblooded family and all, he probably took the ?family
prophecies? for granted. Draco didn?t believe in fate, and his family passed
prophecies from one generation to the next? It was something to tease him
about, Harry decided with a smile.

And then, spoiling his light mood, he wondered what prophecies Ron?s
family passed down, and was filled with the painful urge to cry. He didn?t
want to lose his best friend over this.
At lunch, sitting beside Ron, Harry asked almost timidly, ?Ron? Does your
family have any prophecies?? He was desperate for something to talk about,
not wanting to let Ron drift away.

Ron scowled and Hermione looked curious. ?What are you talking about??

?Surely you know that old, pureblooded families pass down prophecies from
one generation to the next,? Ron said a little stiffly.

Hermione?s gaze became guarded. ?Actually, I prefer to study more relevant


matters, not what ?pureblooded? families do in their spare time.?

Ron rolled his eyes and turned back to his lunch, leaving Harry to explain.
?We learned in Divination that they do, yeah. She mentioned the Malfoys. I
just thought that maybe Ron?s family?? he was feeling decidedly miserable.

Looking compassionate, she reached over and briefly touched his hand. Ron
wasn?t speaking to her either. ?Well, maybe if we owl Mrs. Weasley, she
could tell us??

Dropping his spoon suddenly, Ron stood up. ??In times of darkness and
times of light, a Weasley always stands to fight,?? he recited sharply before
walking away.

Hermione and Harry looked at each other, waited until Ron had left the hall,
and then burst into hushed laughter. ?What a ridiculous prophecy,? Harry
said finally.

She grinned. ?It?s more like a rhyming couplet or a family motto.?

?I think sometimes that?s what happens to the prophecies,? Harry told her.
?They get adapted into family mottos, probably even worked into the family
crest.?

Turning a little more solemn now, Hermione said, ?Do you think Ron?ll
ever talk to us again??

?Hermione, you don?t have to do this,? Harry sighed. ?It?s my battle.?

?But he?s wrong!? she said fiercely. ?He?s being a hypocrite. If you and?
and Malfoy?? she lowered her voice dramatically so no one could hear? ?are
a betrayal, then so are him and Pansy! It?s the same. He?s just worried that
it?ll mean you don?t need him anymore.?

Harry studied her for a moment and then said gently, ?You still like him.?

She glanced away. ?Harry, I never really liked him that way all that much,
don?t worry about it.?

?Still. You shouldn?t lose him as a friend over this.?

?Neither of us are losing him!? Hermione snapped. ?I?m going to talk to


Pansy about it, actually. As soon as I get up the nerve. I mean, she cares
about Malfoy, they?re friends. And she seems to care for Ron. So I?ll tell her
what a prat he?s being and see if she?ll talk to him.?

?Thanks. For everything. For not being horrified.? He smiled.

?Oh, I?m properly horrified!? she cried. ?It?s Malfoy. However, I like to see
you happy and he obviously makes you happy. It?s just more complicated
for Ron.?

Lunch wasn?t even half over when, over at the Slytherin table, Draco stood
up, causing Harry to instinctively glance up. Draco met his gaze and jerked
his head towards the door, mouthing the world ?library?. Harry smiled his
understanding and started to clean up his things.

Hermione rolled her eyes. ?Lovely, Harry,? she teased. ?Abandon me here
just like Ron did.?

Glancing at her guiltily, Harry said, ?I can stay if you want.?

?Oh, go on, I suppose Malfoy?s calling,? she said, smirking a little.


?Besides, I?ve got some things to talk to Ginny about.?

Harry nodded, flashed a grateful grin, and hurried from the room. Ron was
waiting just outside the hall. ?Harry,? he said. ?Malfoy just left, so I
assumed you?d be out soon as well.?

That instantly put Harry on the defensive, and he crossed his arms over his
chest. ?What is it??
?I?? Ron took a deep breath. ?I don?t think I can do this, Harry. This, I
mean. Just thinking about it makes me sick.?

Harry felt stung, but struggled not to show it. ?Is the problem,? he said, his
voice a little thick, ?That it?s a guy, or is it that it?s Draco??

?I could handle the other guy,? Ron admitted in a tiny voice. ?And I tried,
Harry, but? I can?t? can?t stand it! I can?t??

Harry tried to work up a righteous fury. He tried to shout. He tried, as he?d


seen Draco do a thousand times, to call up a protective layer of cold distain.
He couldn?t, however. All he could do was stare at Ron?s eyes, where a fine
sheen of tears destroyed any chance he had of anger.

Ron didn?t want this as much as Harry didn?t want it.

It was that fact alone that hurt the most, and Harry took a stumbling step
backwards, away from Ron, nearly blinded with pain. Ron didn?t want it,
meaning he?d tried to see past it, and couldn?t. He wasn?t willing to let
Harry go over this, but he was doing it all the same. Over nothing! It
shouldn?t matter! It shouldn?t mean anything to Ron, just as Ron and Pansy
meant nothing to Harry.

Harry was suddenly quite sure that he was about to cry, and he turned away
hurriedly.

?Harry,? Ron called gently, before Harry could get more than two steps
away. ?The Malfoy prophecy? I?d look into it, if I were you.?

Harry stiffened and said harshly, ?That, Weasley, is no longer your


concern.?

He walked away, his legs jerking like they were made out of wood. Puppet
legs pulled by some careless puppeteer.

The library wasn?t far and he was glad, pushing through the doors and
heading blindly towards the table farthest from the light, the table where
he?d eaten cherries out of Draco?s hand.
Draco was waiting, and he glanced up with a smile. It quickly faded,
however, when Harry collapsed in the chair beside him and folded his arms
on the table, burying his face.

?Harry,? Draco said gently, one hand awkwardly on Harry?s back. ?What is
it??

Harry mumbled a few words, not trusting himself to speak more than that
without bursting into tears.

?C?mon, Potter,? was the reply, Draco taking his hand and tugging. ?The
library is no place for this.? Already, a few Ravenclaws were staring in
shock.

Harry lifted his head and Draco winced at his paleness, his dark, shocked
eyes. ?C?mon,? he said again, very gently, and Harry let himself be pulled to
his feet and guided out the door.

Draco pulled him down the hall and into an empty classroom. ?Right then,?
he said, business-like now. He didn?t quite know how to deal with this new
fragile Harry, and figured detachment was the best option.

With a low growl, Harry started pacing, ranting out loud. ?He?s such a
stupid bastard,? he said, throwing up his hands and stalking around the
room. Draco watched him worriedly. ?Thinking that you can just let a six-
year friendship go over something like this. It shouldn?t matter to him. I
didn?t betray him! I would never? This isn?t a betrayal of him, it?s got
nothing to do with him! Why doesn?t he see that??

?I?m assuming,? Draco said, when Harry paused for a breath, ?That you?re
talking about Weasley? What?s he done now??

Harry stopped his pacing and turned to face Draco, looking lost again. ?He?
he doesn?t want to be my friend anymore,? he said in a lost tone, his voice
breaking and eyes shining unnaturally. He choked on something that could
have been tears, and Draco saw the way he was valiantly trying to hold them
back.

?Harry,? he said gently, stepping closer. He grabbed Harry by the shoulders


and wrapped his arm around them, having abandoned the business-like
option and opting for following his instincts. ?Harry, I?m sorry.?
Harry buried his face in Draco?s neck and took a deep breath, closing his
eyes and letting Draco hold him. He?d been a little nervous, not quite
knowing how Draco would react to him falling apart this way, and startled
when Draco had held him. As if he cared about him, hurt when he hurt, cried
when he cried. Harry wondered vaguely if maybe Draco did. They?d never
exactly discussed it.

?Are you alright?? Draco whispered, his breath ruffling Harry?s hair.

Harry nodded and said, ?Just don?t let go yet. No one?s ever?? he trailed off
and Draco smiled a little, tightening his hold. No one had ever held him like
that either, and he wondered if it felt as good to be held as it did to hold.

Harry didn?t cry, the urge to cry had disappeared when Draco had wrapped
his arms around him.

***

That night, unable to sleep, Harry took his invisibility cloak and crept out of
Gryffindor tower. He made his way to the library, guilt nearly making him
change his mind and return to bed. However, he still slipped into the library,
holding a lantern, and quickly scanning the titles, not quite sure what he was
looking for. He finally selected ?The Old Families: A History of Aristocracy
in Wizarding?. Slipping it off the shelf, he made his way over to a table in
the back and flipped to the glossary. Malfoy was on page 56.

It was basically boring information on the family founders, the family tree,
the last publicized bank holdings, a listing of all the real estate they owned, a
few words on some important historical things they had taken part in, and
then, as a caption under a picture that was enchanted to show the current
generation of Malfoys, the Family Prophecy.

Harry read it in a whisper. ??The bearer of light shall carry to the feet of the
Serpent lord, a child. That child shall deliver into the hands of the Dark One
his own Destruction, choose life over love, and become His loyalist
disciple.??

Frowning, Harry carefully copied it out word for word, and folded it,
slipping it in his pocket.
?Life over love?? he whispered. ?The Serpent lord, that must be Voldemort.
Maybe this already happened?? he trailed off. ?Or is going to happen.?

Intensely uneasy, Harry returned the book to it?s shelf and started back to
Gryffindor tower. He wasn?t paying particular attention and walked right
into someone he hadn?t even seen, knocking his invisibility cloak to the
floor.

?Harry!? Draco cried with a smile. ?I snuck through the window to


Gryffindor tower and you weren?t there so thought you?d be in the library or
the kitchen or something.?

Harry returned the smile warily. ?What are you doing up so late??

?I could ask the same as you. Couldn?t sleep.? He was holding a broomstick,
and Harry glanced at it, confused. ?I was going flying,? Draco explained. He
grinned. ?Wanted to know if you wanted to come with me. I could show you
some real flying, not like Quidditch.?

?Quidditch is real flying,? Harry argued, even as he pulled out his wand.
?Accio Firebolt.?

?If you think that, you?ve lived an incredibly sheltered life,? Draco said with
a confident grin.

Harry rolled his eyes. ?Cupboard under the stairs, remember?? he said dryly.

His Firebolt appeared and he caught it out of the air. ?Let?s go then,? Draco
said, leading the way.

It was dark, still, and very cold. Draco was on his broomstick and in the air
in seconds. Following more slowly, Harry watched Draco fly gracefully for
a few moments in awe, and then, determined to show him up, took to the
skies as well.

He was a natural flyer, but Draco was more practiced, and was soon teaching
Harry techniques the other boy had never even heard of.

?You realize,? he said, laughing, ?that this?ll make it even easier for me to
beat you at Quidditch.?
?It hasn?t helped me beat you yet; it?s not very useful, actually,? Draco
admitted, turning an easy backwards loop in the air.

Harry studied the move and tried to duplicate it, laughing breathlessly as he
gracelessly pulled out of the awkward, lopsided move. ?I?m not very good
anyway.?

?Practice,? Draco said with a shrug.

They flew until Harry?s fingers, ears, and nose were numb, and then they
went back inside, shivering and talking softly.

It was nearly dawn and they kissed hurriedly, lips frozen and awkward.
Harry giggled as he pulled away and smiled, hurrying off to Gryffindor
Tower.

***

Harry had forgotten all about the prophecy by morning, until he found it in
his pocket. Deciding to ask Hermione what she thought it meant, he tucked it
inside his Potions text and went down for breakfast.

Secretly relieved to see that Ron wasn?t there, Harry sat next to Hermione,
pulling the prophecy out of his book. ?I found this in the library,? he said.
?It?s the Malfoy family prophecy, what do you think it means??

She read it over quickly and frowned. ?I?m not sure, really. That?s why I
don?t like Divination, Harry, it?s not an exact science. It could mean any
number of things, really. I?d suggest you ask your professor, but
Trelawney?s an unreliable old bat who?s never given a true prophecy in her
life.?

?Not true,? Harry said. ?Once she did.?

Hermione snorted and started a long lecture on the joys of Arithmancy,


which Harry, having heard it all before, only caught a few highlights of.

After breakfast, Harry and Hermione stood to go to Potions together. Draco


met them at the door, with a frosty smile for her.
?I?ll walk with you,? he said, not asking permission. He fell into step beside
Harry, who cast him a rather adoring, smitten smile. Upon seeing that smile,
Hermione rolled her eyes and let go of the indignation she?d felt at his
interruption.

Ron had gone to Potions early with Pansy, and he was sitting in Draco?s
spot. Glaring furiously at him, Draco walked past in silence, taking Ron?s
abandoned seat by Harry. He wasn?t angry that Ron had taken his spot, he
was rather pleased at the excuse to sit beside Harry. He?d never forgive
Weasley, however, for hurting Harry. Never.

The strange thing, Harry realized later that class as he, Hermione, and Draco
worked together on their Potions assignment, was that Hermione and Draco
got on quite well when they stopped trying to antagonize each other. They
almost seemed to enjoy the challenge of, for the first time, meeting someone
with enough knowledge of Potions to challenge them in class. An almost
friendly and certainly relaxed conversation about the potion they were
brewing, in which both seemed determined to show they knew more, took
place, and Harry was left to watch as most of the information went straight
over his head. Draco would smirk challengingly at her and she?d smile
smugly in return.

It was a relief, at least, that Draco didn?t say anything hurtful to her all
through Potions. He was trying, as was Hermione. If only Ron would do the
same.

At the end of class, Harry was cleaning up when he accidentally knocked his
Potions text to the floor. He scooped it up quickly and piled it with his
things, helping Hermione rinse out the cauldron. When he turned back
around, Draco was standing very still, a strange look on his face. He was
holding a slip of parchment in his hand.

?Why didn?t you just ask?? he said, looking at Harry strangely.

Harry winced. It was the prophecy, and he took it gently, glancing at


Hermione, who nodded and left the classroom quickly with the other
students.

?I was just curious,? Harry told him. ?We learned about family prophecies in
Divination and your family was mentioned and Ron said I should ??
?Weasley,? Draco spat. ?He told you to look it up, did he??

?Yes.? Harry studied Draco?s face worriedly. ?But I don?t even know what
it means, Draco! I didn?t mean to make you angry, I just ??

?Don?t know what it means?? Draco growled, snatching the paper back.
??Bearer of light?,? he read. ?My father. Lucius means ?bearer of light?. The
Serpent Lord is Voldemort of course. The child is me.?

?Your father is going to give you to Voldemort,? Harry whispered.

?And I shall become his loyalist disciple,? Draco shrugged.

?Choose life over love.?

?I know, Potter,? Draco snapped. ?I?ve read the prophecy.?

Harry?s eyes widened painfully and he struggled to think up something to


say. To think that Draco had known all along of the prophecy, was so
accepting of it? accepting of the fact that he would become a Death Eater,
that he would choose that over love? Harry?s love.

Draco was looking rather defiant, but before he could speak, Snape drawled,
?Is there a problem??

?No, sir,? Draco said quietly, watching the thousands of emotions flickering
in Harry?s eyes. Hurt, doubt, fear?

?Then I suggest you hurry to your next class,? Snape said dryly.

?I?m going to be late,? Harry mumbled, scooping up his books and hurrying
from the room.

Draco swore, grabbed his own books, and hurrying after him. ?Harry!? he
called, running down the hall. ?Harry, wait!?

Pausing just before a staircase, Harry turned. ?What?? he asked warily.

?You can?t know what it means, Harry. The whole point of prophecy is that
you don?t know what it?s really talking about until after it happens. So
whatever you?re thinking it means, it?s probably wrong.?
?It says you?ll leave me,? Harry said thickly.

?Shit, Harry, you think after all the shit I?ve gone through just to have you,
I?d willingly leave you??

?It?s in the prophecy! It?s fate!?

?I don?t believe in fate, remember??

?And no wonder, with a fate like this.? Harry smiled finally, reluctantly, and
Draco was relieved to see it.

?Forget the family prophecy, Harry. I?ve done a fine job of forgetting it my
whole life.?

Harry nodded and smiled distractedly. ?I?ll try. But I?ve got to go.
Trelawney will kill me herself if I?m late again, and trust me, she knows
some interesting means of death.?

Draco laughed and Harry hurried up the stairs to Divination.

***

The prophecy was always a nagging worry in the back of Harry?s mind, as
was the situation with Ron, but over the next few days, Draco managed to
drive most of his thoughts on both topics away. Harry had never laughed so
much as when Draco teased him, never blushed so much as when Draco
touched him and he would never remember a happier time than that.
Carefree, without scars, nothing but forever to look forward to because
that?s all Draco seemed to promise every time he smiled at him.

Being outdoors in any season was something Harry had learned to treasure,
especially after a childhood of living in a cupboard. Small spaces made him
feel rather claustrophobic, so he was lucky to have a companion in Draco.
Hermione and Ron didn?t much like the snow or cold and, in winters past,
Harry would spend his free time outside, alone. Now he had Draco with him.
Before, he?d use this time alone to think, and he?d always rather thought
that he?d resent any intrusion. Now had he been alone, he would just have
thought of Draco anyway, and he?d really prefer to look at, touch, or kiss
him, so he didn?t much mind the company. In fact, he loved it. Each day,
he?d find at least an hour, most times more, to walk around the lake with
Draco, always taking a different path so it didn?t seem routine. After all,
neither liked routine.

As for Draco? well, quite simply, while he found snow pretty in a purely
aesthetic sense, when admired from indoors, he absolutely loathed the way it
made his cheeks red (destroying his lovely Malfoy complexion), and the
way it inevitably gave him the sniffles (due to a weak constitution inherited
from his mother). However, he willingly went out daily with Harry, if only
because (though he?d never admit it), he found the other boy adorable with a
cold-reddened face and snow on his lashes. He also was quite entranced
(entranced? Entranced?) by the way Harry always smiled as if he couldn?t
help it whenever Draco complained of the cold.

He was ?smitten?, as his mother would have said. Draco Malfoy, smitten
with The Boy Who Lived. Harry-Golden-Boy-Potter.

His father would kill him!

His thoughts had trailed down this path one day in mid-December, and he
scowled. Harry didn?t notice, he was chatting on brightly (his wistful,
pensive depressions came less and less now). Draco leapt easily over a
snow-covered log, turning and reaching out automatically to catch Harry as
he gracelessly tried to do the same. Harry tripped on the log and stumbled
straight into Draco, his mittened hands clinging to Draco?s shoulders. His
scowl easing somewhat at the way Harry had fallen so easily against his
chest, Draco teased, ?Clumsy.?

Harry flushed and smiled, interrupting what had been a long, drawn out
story, to mumble his thanks. Draco didn?t particularly mind that the
narrative had been interrupted, he hadn?t really been listening. He didn?t
care what Harry said, as long as he got to hear his voice.

Slipping his hand into Draco?s, Harry walked beside him in silence for a
while, approaching the rockier side of the lake.

Inevitably taking up his narrative again, Harry talked for a few minutes more
before he finally sucked in a deep breath and said, ?And that?s when I
decided that the best option would be to just come out and ask you.?

Draco smirked, careful not to let Harry see it, and said, ?Ask me what??
Stopping suddenly and turning towards him, Harry licked his lips nervously.
Draco prepared himself for any number of ridiculous questions, from
confessions of lurid fantasies to strange diseases.

In a way, Harry?s question was a perverse mixture of both.

?Do you love me??

Draco, in his defense, had been rather lost in musing thoughts about his
father and what his reaction would be if he knew about Harry. His eyes
glazed over blankly and he said without thought, ?Am I supposed to??

Harry reacted as though he?d been burned and snatched his hand away. The
motion threw him off balance and he stumbled, slipping in the snow and
falling over, sliding down a small, snow-covered hill.

?Harry!? Draco cried, slipping down after him. ?Are you alright??

A little dazed, Harry blinked up at him, humiliated to feel his eyes welling
up with tears. ?I hurt my back,? he said lamely, in an attempt to explain
them away.

Draco fell to his knees beside him and said very gently, ?Harry, I didn?t
mean it like that.?

Harry glanced away. ?I don?t know what you?re talking about.?

?You surprised me, that?s all.?

Harry let out a frustrated breath that misted in the air, waiting about thirty
seconds before asking, ?Well? Have I given you enough time to consider it?
It?s not a surprise now. Do you??

?What do you think?? Draco asked, growing a little irritated. He crossed his
arms over his chest.

?I think you?re changing the subject. It?s alright if you don?t, I mean? it?s
not like I?love you or anything.? Harry ran a mittened hand through his hair
and pretended to find the snow crystallized on the bare tree branches all
around fascinating. He was still sprawled on his back in the snow, Draco
kneeling beside him.
Draco studied him for a long moment, his irritation replaced with mild
amusement as he watched Harry, who was very aware of his stare, slowly
turn red. ?You don?t?? he asked him quietly. ?You don?t love me??

Embarrassed at having gotten himself into this difficult situation in the first
place, Harry reacted angrily, snapping, ?How am I supposed to know??

?What do you mean??

?I mean that I don?t know what the hell this is! Obviously it?s not love,
because it?s a rule somewhere that love has to be returned.?

?It?s not.?

?Not love??

?Not a rule. Sometimes you can love someone who doesn?t love you back.?

Harry snarled. ?Oh, lovely, thanks for clearing that up for me, Draco.?

Smiling faintly, Draco shook his head. ?But you don?t, Harry.?

Frustration had made him lose track of the conversation. ?I don?t what?? he
snapped. ?I know I don?t love you.?

?No, you don?t love someone who doesn?t love you back.?

Harry sat up quickly, buried his face in his hands, and shouted, ?Will you
stop talking in circles, Draco? I have no idea what you?re going on about
this time, you do it on purpose, I know you do! You probably stay up all
night thinking up ways to drive me completely out of my mind!?

Laughing, Draco fell back into the snow, lying beside the imprint Harry had
made and suddenly feeling lighter than he had in weeks, which was amazing
to him as the last few weeks had been the lightest of his life. He hadn?t been
sure how to define what he felt for Harry until that moment, when Harry had
asked him if he loved him, and now he could only wonder at how he could
have been so blind.

If this wasn?t love, he didn?t know what was.


?Harry,? he called, grabbing Harry?s hand and tugging until Harry weakly
let himself be pulled back into the snow. ?Shut up.? Draco was grinning
wildly, crookedly, and Harry?s eyes narrowed suspiciously.

?I don?t like it when you smile like that,? he said after a moment.

?Like what?? Draco asked, fighting the embarrassing urge to giggle.

?Like you?re drunk. Or losing your mind. Either way, now is not the time.
I?m trying to have an intelligent discussion with you.?

Harry was glaring up at the clear blue sky, gritting his teeth in annoyance,
and Draco studied his profile for a long moment, his lopsided smile still
firmly in place. Finally, when he grew tired of Harry pretending he didn?t
notice him staring, Draco slipped his hand out of his glove and reached up,
his fingers touching Harry?s cheek lightly. The sudden shock of it, combined
with the beckoning heat in Draco?s hands, caused Harry to slowly turn to
look at him, finally letting him see deep insecurities underneath his anger
and annoyance.

?How could I not?? Draco said quietly, his smile gone now and his
expression very solemn.

?Not lose your mind?? Harry whispered.

A fleeting smile twisted one side of Draco?s mouth as he slowly shook his
head. ?Not love you.?

Harry blinked twice, quickly, and opened his lips to ask another question,
but Draco didn?t let him. He crossed the distance between them quickly,
gently brushing his lips across Harry?s, their breath mingling as he then
kissed Harry?s nose, his cheek, and his forehead. He was grinning again
when he pulled away.

His kisses had stolen Harry?s words almost as effectively as Draco?s


confession had stolen his breath.

Lying that way for a long time, there didn?t seem the need for any more
words. Everything that needed to be said was being said without them, in the
way Draco?s fingers stroked Harry?s face, the way Harry couldn?t look
away from his eyes.
Finally, Harry glanced away and whispered, ?Your hand?s going to freeze.?

?It?s fine.?

Harry reached up and took Draco?s hand, pulling it off his face and Draco
curled his numb fingers around Harry?s hand. Smiling a little shyly, Harry
brought Draco?s hands to his mouth and brushed his lips against his
knuckles.

?You were wrong before,? he whispered against Draco?s hand.

?I?m never wrong,? Draco replied with a smile.

?You were,? Harry insisted.

?When??

?When you said I didn?t own you.? Harry smiled slowly, wickedly, as he
watched Draco?s eyes widen a little and his lips twitch in a smile. ?You?re
mine, you know you are, admit it.?

?Only because I want to be,? Draco countered with a smirk, and Harry rolled
his eyes, still smiling.

?And I fought so hard against being yours,? he scoffed sarcastically.

?Six years.?

?Shut up.? Harry laughed, sitting up and glancing back down at Draco.
?Your nose is red and at this rate, you?ll be sniffling for a week. We should
go in.?

Draco wanted to argue, loathing to have Harry point out any weakness in his
character or physical appearance (and to him, a red nose was definitely a
weakness), but he let Harry pull him to his feet anyway. They started back to
Hogwarts together in comfortable silence, and Draco put his glove back on
and then took Harry?s hand.

It started snowing when they were just leaving the rocky terrain around the
lake and Harry let go of Draco?s hand and, laughing over his shoulder,
shouted, ?Race you back!?
?You little shit,? Draco swore, before taking off after him.

Despite being taller, Harry?s legs were shorter and Draco easily caught up
just outside the doors, grabbing the back of Harry?s cloak and tugging
sharply enough to make him stumble, swearing. Laughing, Draco pushed
past him, the first to spill into the entrance hall, and then he reached back
through the doors, caught Harry by the front of his robes and jerked him
inside as well, letting the door swing shut behind him. He kissed him almost
lazily while the snow melted off them both and left puddles all over the
floor.

Chapter Eleven

Where does the wound begin?


In a closetful of toys,
Or a childhood of faceless fathers?
You never let them in
They were only girls and boys
But you know that it's too late to bother now
And if you try to hard to ask yourself that scary question
We all know you'll hide again
You'll just turn your head and sell your soul away
--Matt Caplan, September

Things had gotten remarkably complicated for Hermione when Harry had
decided to fall for Malfoy. For one, she was worried about Ginny, who
seemed to have withdrawn from her, Ron, and certainly Harry, since he had
told her. A perfectly understandable reaction, of course, except she had no
one to withdraw to. She?d never gotten on well with her own year. Then
there was Ron, of course, who was proving to be incredibly thick-headed
and stubborn. She had accepted him wanting to be with Pansy though that
hurt; why couldn?t he accept Harry?s decision? Didn?t he understand that
accepting Harry?s decision didn?t automatically mean he had to accept
Malfoy? Just like Hermione didn?t have to accept Pansy.

She sighed at that thought, and glanced over at the Slytherin table where
Pansy sat beside Malfoy. It was lunch, and Ron hadn?t bothered to show up
for it. Harry was sitting with Seamus, Ginny was sitting alone, and
Hermione was standing in the doorway, trying to decide what she could do
about this mess Harry had created.
Today would be her last chance until after Christmas as the holidays began
the next day and she and Pansy were both leaving early in the morning.

Tightening her hands on the Arithmancy book she?d brought to study after
lunch, she screwed up all her courage and strode purposefully over to the
Slytherin table.

It was Malfoy who turned towards her first. ?Is Harry ??

?He?s fine,? she said, glancing at Pansy, who hadn?t bothered to turn. ?I
actually wanted to talk to her.?

Malfoy glanced at Pansy, rolled his eyes, and elbowed her. ?What?? she
snapped, before seeing Hermione standing there. ?Oh. Granger. Hi.? She
smiled weakly, rubbing her side and shooting a furious glance at Malfoy.

?I was wondering if we could talk,? Hermione said.

?Why?? Pansy asked rudely.

She blinked. ?Umm, it?s rather private.?

?I don?t know, I?m rather busy.?

?Shut up, Pansy,? Malfoy snapped, immediately increasing Hermione?s


respect for him. ?Just go with her, it?s got to be important if she?s willing to
talk to you about it.?

Pansy scowled but still got out and stalked out of the hall, leaving Hermione
to flash Malfoy a distracted, thankful smile, and then hurry after her.

When she finally caught up, Pansy was standing with her arms crossed over
her chest, scowling furiously. ?What?? she snapped.

?It?s about Ron.?

?What about him??

Hermione paused and considered her next words delicately. Before she
could think of how to say it, Pansy rolled her eyes and said, ?Don?t tell me
you fancy him.?
Her eyes widened and she stammered, ?W-what??

?He?d never have anything to do with a nasty-looking girl like you!?

?He?s my best friend!? she said indignantly.

Pansy laughed. ?That?s what you think.?

?Will you shut up?? Hermione growled suddenly. ?This has nothing to do
with that, that isn?t the issue here. The issue is that Ron is being a complete
prat to Harry ??

She snickered. ?Why should I care??

?Are you blind? Because Harry is now intimately connected to Malfoy, you
stupid girl. Even you can?t be so blind as to not have seen it. The first thing
he asked me today was if Harry was alright. He?s the first person Harry
notices in a room. When Harry?s hurt, Malfoy?s going to notice, and right
now, he is very hurt. Ron hurt him. I don?t know Malfoy well, but he
certainly seems the type to be very protective. Do you want him to hurt
Ron??

Pansy considered for a moment, and then her shoulders slumped and she
glared balefully. ?No. I don?t want Draco to hurt Ron.?

?Then talk to Ron. Make him stop being so stubborn. You could lose him,
Pansy. You?re friends with Malfoy, Ron might pull away from you because
of that association. He?s just as hurt as Harry is.?

Shaking her head slowly, Pansy smiled rather painfully. ?The only way I
could lose him is if you decided to take him from me. Even I can see that.?

?What are you talking about?? Hermione whispered.

?Apparently I?m not the only blind one here.? She smiled. ?But I?ll talk to
him. I don?t want Draco hurt, and if talking to Ron makes that less likely,
then I?ll be happy to do it.?

Hermione was still staring at her suspiciously. ?What did you mean about ??
?Listen, Granger,? Pansy interrupted, nearly managing to sound bored. ?I?ll
talk to Ron, if the subject comes up. I don?t want Draco hurt by this thing
with Potter, and I will do what I can to prevent that if only because if Potter
does hurt him, I?ll have to kill him, and Ron?ll probably frown on that. As
for this little discussion?Quite honestly, it?s boring. So unless you?ve got
something particularly interesting to say, I?d quit now if I were you.?

?No,? Hermione stammered. ?I? just wanted to talk to you about Harry and
Malfoy.?

Pansy nodded once and walked away, leaving Hermione to gape after her,
astounded at her rudeness.

?What on earth does he see in her?? she grumbled out loud. Probably the
same thing Harry saw in Malfoy.

***

In Pansy?s defense, she did try talking to Ron about his stubbornness
regarding Draco and Harry?s relationship. However, given that it was their
last night together until after Christmas, the last thing Ron wanted to do was
talk about Harry, and Pansy finally gave up with a sigh, resolving to talk to
him about it tomorrow or maybe owl him later? After all, he had much more
pleasant things in mind to do on their last night, and Pansy was only too
happy to agree. Ron didn?t make it back to his own bed that night. It was
lucky for him that he didn?t.

The promise of pumpkin juice and chocolate frogs is what lured Harry to
accept Draco?s idea of a celebration of the beginning of the holidays and the
last day of class. To make matters all the more intriguing, Draco had decided
to have their celebration after hours, in the Great Hall, all alone, because any
situation is made all the more exciting when given the added benefit of
possible punishment if caught. So after all the other students had retired to
their respective common rooms or Shag Spots of Choice, Harry donned his
invisibility cloak and snuck into the Great Hall.

He got there before Draco and had a few moments to sit on the edge of the
Gryffindor table (it felt wrong enough to be in the Great Hall alone in the
dark, let alone to sit at another table) and consider how creepy the hall was
when empty and dark. The ceiling shone with rolling, dark purple clouds and
the occasional glimpse of a star or two between them, so the only light was
the flickering, almost under-water quality of that false star light. Shadows
seemed to dance like phantoms and that thought made Harry shiver as he
fervently hoped that Peeves and the other ghosts would find other students to
bother that night. The Great Hall was creepy enough without the undead
floating around.

The silence was broken with the soft creak of the door, and Harry leapt off
the table and spun around nervously. He was incredibly relieved when he
saw it was Draco.

?Where?ve you been?? he hissed, gathering up his cloak.

Draco grinned. ?Scared, Potter? I was in the kitchens, getting the pumpkin
juice. C?mon.?

He walked past Harry and climbed the three steps up to the High Table.

?Where are you going?? Harry asked nervously.

?I thought it would be fun to celebrate up here,? Draco replied, glancing


over his shoulder with a cocky grin. ?That is, unless you?re scared.?

?Scared? Yeah, right,? Harry mumbled, climbing up onto the platform.


Draco gracefully hopped up onto the table, crossing his legs and setting a
bunch of frogs and a jug of juice down. He gestured with an impatient jerk
of his head.

?C?mon, get up here.?

?It just doesn?t seem right,? Harry protested weakly, even as he climbed
onto the table. It shone like ice and looked like it had just been polished.

Draco tossed him a frog and went about pouring the drinks, but Harry only
glanced around nervously. ?Why do we have to celebrate in here?? he
whispered.

?Because,? Draco replied in a voice Harry was sure he?d made louder than
normal on purpose. ?I like living dangerously. Besides, who would come in
here??
Relaxing just a little bit, Harry smiled and took a sip of his juice. It was
alright, he decided. Rather romantic, with the swiftly moving clouds and
occasional glimpses of stars.

They ate all the chocolate frogs and drank most the juice and by the time
they had finished, Harry had relaxed enough to have sprawled out on his
back on the table, watching the clouds swirl above. Draco lay beside him,
and they were silent for a long time.

Harry had been thinking of his parents. When everyone left to go home and
visit their families, it invariably left him wondering about his, missing his.
Draco sensed his mood and glanced over at him worriedly, unsure of what to
say.

?Harry,? he said finally, gently. He wasn?t sure if it was a trick of the light
or what, but Harry?s eyes seemed to be shining with tears.

?Hmm?? He didn?t pull his eyes away from the ceiling.

?Are you alright??

?I was just thinking, that?s all,? Harry said softly.

?About what??

It was silent for a long time, and Draco had almost given up on Harry ever
answering when the other boy finally said, ?If you had to die, would you
rather die fast, suddenly, with no warning and no time to say good-bye, or
would you rather know the day you were going to die and how??

?Well,? Draco said slowly, worried more about why Harry?s train of thought
had taken this path than the actual question. ?Fast, I suppose.?

Harry snapped his head around to look at him now. ?Why? Why fast? You
wouldn?t have time to say good-bye.?

?Because I couldn?t imagine waking up each day and thinking to myself that
it was one of the last days I?d ever wake up. I?d drive myself mad long
before I actually died. I?d be?terrified.? Only to Harry would Draco ever
have admitted such a weakness as fear.
Smiling a little and looking back up at the sky, Harry whispered, ?I wouldn?t
be scared. As long as you were there to hold my hand each morning, I
wouldn?t be scared. And I?d make sure that everyone I loved would be
taken care of and that they?d know that I loved them.?

Draco propped himself up on one elbow, one hand reaching over to pull
Harry?s glasses off and set them aside so he could see his eyes without the
reflection of the sky on his lenses. ?Harry,? he admonished gently. ?Your
parents loved you, whether they had a chance to say good-bye or not.?

Swallowing heavily, Harry nodded. ?I know.?

He didn?t know what else to say, so Draco slid closer, lying beside Harry
with his head on the other boy?s shoulder, one of his arms across his chest,
pulling him closer, his face pressed into Harry?s neck.

They lay that way for a long time before Harry shifted and turned a little, so
that he?d buried his face in Draco?s chest. When he spoke, his voice was
muffled. ?I just wish I had someone to go home to for the holidays.?

?You may not have anyone to go home to, Harry, but now you?ve got
someone to stay for.?

Harry lifted his head and smiled. ?You.?

?Who else??

?Ron, Hermione, Ginny, Dumbledore ??

?Shut up.?

They smiled at each other and Harry sighed, feeling a little better and laying
his head back down, where it was cushioned on Draco?s arm. ?Tell me about
your father,? he said sleepily, closing his eyes.

?There?s nothing really to tell,? Draco replied, feeling a little defensive.

?There has to be,? Harry insisted. ?You define everything you are by what
your father would approve of and what he?d frown on. Makes me wonder
what he?d think of this.?
Draco smiled a little. ?I don?t know, honestly. He doesn?t pay much
attention to me, he probably would only care because you were?? He trailed
off uncertainly.

?Harry Potter.?

?Yeah.? Draco tightened his arm around Harry possessively. ?Someday he?ll
notice though,? he said quietly. ?I?ll make him notice.?

Disturbed, he pulled away a little. ?What if the only way to make him notice
is to become Voldemort?s follower??

?You?re thinking about the prophecy again, I told you to stop,? Draco said
with a frown. ?Besides, my father thinks I?m too weak for that. He sends me
away whenever he knows Voldemort will be near.?

?You?ve seen him? Voldemort??

?Once or twice,? Draco evaded, pulling Harry close again.

Harry didn?t know what to say. He wasn?t sure if he had the right to
question Draco on this, who had never questioned him on Voldemort or
Dumbledore or any of it. He nestled closer and closed his eyes. ?Don?t leave
me to join him,? he said quietly.

?I wouldn?t,? Draco said with a smile. ?Not for the world. Besides. He
insists entirely too much on giving orders. Maybe my father delights in
taking them, but I don?t. It?s always been about impressing my father, not
Voldemort. I couldn?t care less about him, all he?s done is made my father
weak.?

?See?? Harry said, relieved at Draco?s words. ?You do define yourself by


your father.?

?No. I want to be everything my father is but stronger. My father?s nothing


more than Voldemort?s puppet. He?s a strong man, my father, and whenever
Voldemort isn?t around, you can see it in the way he walks and everything.
But the instant Voldemort is near, he?s weak. Terrified.?

?Why does he follow him if he?s terrified??


?Some people get off on fear, I suppose. That?s all I can think of. It used to
drive me mad a few years ago when Voldemort came back, that my father
who rarely noticed me would be so inclined to chase after Voldemort and
beg for forgiveness for something he hadn?t really done, that sort of thing.
That when I was a kid, he never had time for me, until I was six and I started
repeating to him everything I?d ever heard him say about Voldemort and the
cause. Then he finally paid attention to me. I remember the first time I said
?Mudbloods should die?, it was at a dinner party, and he looked at me with
absolute terror in his eyes for a second, while all his friends laughed, and
then he blinked and it was gone and he was smiling at me. So I kept doing
it.? He shrugged, smiling faintly.

?You were cruel to Hermione for seven years because you wanted attention
from your father,? Harry said dully, offended on her behalf but too disgusted
to react.

?You wouldn?t understand,? said Draco, very quietly. ?You never had a
father to impress.?

Harry did react to that, jerking away as fast as he could and sitting up,
staring at Draco in shock. He wasn?t wearing his glasses and couldn?t see
Draco?s expression, but he didn?t care. Fury and hurt were mixing together
inside of him and making him shake. ?I don?t,? he admitted, voice
trembling. ?You?re right. I haven?t got a father to impress. He was killed by
the creature your father supports, the same creature you support to impress
that father. So that makes it okay, Draco. Support him, because I haven?t got
one so that means I don?t understand the pressure of trying to impress a
father. So that makes it alright.?

?Harry.? Draco reached out to touch his arm.

?Don?t,? Harry snarled, flinching away.

?This is why we?ve both avoided this whole subject all this time,? Draco
finally said, sighing. ?Just let it go.?

?Let it go? How am I supposed to let the death of my parents go??

?I didn?t mean it like that! I was just pointing out a fact, Harry, I wasn?t
saying that it was alright or that I?m right because your father?s dead!
That?s ridiculous! I was just saying that you haven?t got a father, you
wouldn?t understand!?

?And you wouldn?t understand just how much I?d give up so I could
understand!? Harry shouted, not caring if anyone heard. ?My father?s dead,
Draco! Don?t you get it? Maybe you?ve got some bitter love/hate thing
going with yours, but you?ve still got a lot more than I ever had. Every time
you look at him and see that his eyes are the same colour, you know where
you got yours from! And you did, I?ve seen. You have his eyes, Draco. I?m
told I?ve got my mothers, but I?ll never know for sure, because all I?ve got
is a few photos and the memory of seeing her reflected back to me in a
mirror! So you can tell me my father?s dead in an effort to make me
understand how hard your life is all you like, but I already know. How could
I not know that I?ll never understand what it is to have a father??

?Harry,? Draco said quietly. ?Harry, I?m sorry. I didn?t mean it like that.?

Swallowing thickly, Harry held his breath for a long moment, closing his
eyes. ?I know,? he said finally. Years of wondering what it would be like to
have a father and a mother, all the pain and bitterness of not knowing, it was
all swirling inside him, threatening to choke him, and he knew he was about
to break. He just didn?t know if it would bring with it angry shouting or
painful crying. Suddenly both seemed the same.

?Harry?? Draco called softly, pleadingly. ?Stop it, you?ve got to breathe.?

Still holding his breath and trying to stop the break he could feel coming,
Harry shot him a desperate look, whimpering low in his throat.

Draco stared in shock at his eyes. They?d nearly turned black with the force
of his emotions, and he?d never seen eyes like that, so full of hatred and
pain. For a long moment, he froze, not sure of what to do, and then Harry let
out the breath he?d been holding, his entire body shaking with the force of it.
He collapsed forward and Draco was there to catch him.

?You don?t think,? Draco said very quietly, after a few moments had gone
by and Harry was still clinging to him, silent except for the occasional shaky
breath that sounded like a sob, though he wasn?t crying, ?that if your father
could see you now, he wouldn?t be impressed, Harry? How could he not be
impressed??
?If that?s the standard by which we?re judging our fathers? impressions of
us,? Harry said finally, his voice stronger than Draco thought it would be,
?then your father?s got to be proud of you too.?

Draco laughed a little, and Harry lifted his head, his hands still braced on
Draco?s shoulders. His eyes weren?t so dark now, they were familiar and
very bright green, though still shining with tears. He was smiling, however,
just a little bit, and he shifted a little so he was kneeling in front of Draco,
rather than collapsed against him.

?We?re both alright,? he said, tracing Draco?s features in the dim starlight.
?Despite everything.?

Draco smiled and bit one of his fingers lightly. ?I think so,? he agreed.

?I know it,? Harry whispered, leaning forward and brushing his lips against
Draco?s. He moved to pull away and Draco shook his head, a soft growl in
the back of his throat. One hand lifted to Harry?s cheek, cupping it and
pulling him close again as Draco kissed him very gently, begging for
forgiveness the way he couldn?t in words. Harry didn?t respond, though he
didn?t pull away and his eyes slowly closed. Growing more insistent, Draco
traced his tongue along Harry?s bottom lip before biting it lightly, his growl
turning into something more like a whimper, and Harry suddenly realized
that Draco?s hands were shaking.

?Shit,? he whispered against Draco?s lips, reaching up to take Draco?s hands


in his, holding them tightly. ?I?m sorry.?

Draco pulled back just a little, laughing weakly. ?What are you sorry for??

?For shouting. For getting angry. For being weak and for making you hurt.?

Shaking his head, Draco opened his lips to say something but Harry kissed
him this time, his hands sliding up to tangle his fingers in Draco?s hair, his
tongue slipping inside Draco?s mouth. Forgetting whatever he had been
about to say, Draco tilted his head and opened his mouth further, letting
Harry taste him. If that was one thing he?d learned since all of this with
Harry had began, it was that it was sometimes just as good to submit as it
was to dominate.
Harry was very gentle, more gentle than Draco could ever remember anyone
being with him. He pressed closer, tilting Draco?s head so he could angle
better, lightly stroking his tongue along Draco?s, grazing his teeth.

Moments later, with hardly a break in the kiss, Harry had pulled Draco?s
shirt off and tossed it aside. ?Lay back,? he whispered, kissing Draco?s jaw.

Letting himself be guided until he lay on his back, Draco smirked a little as
Harry straddled his waist. ?What are you doing, Potter?? he drawled.

Harry smiled but didn?t reply, only kissed him in that same incredibly gentle
way as before, lying so that his entire body was on top of Draco?s, pressed
against him. Draco shifted, pulling his knees up so Harry?s hips were
cradled against his, and Harry whimpered a little into his mouth.

?Dumbledore,? Draco said breathlessly, moaning a little when Harry started


undoing his trousers.

Harry froze, confused. He glanced down at Draco, who?s eyes were glazed
over, his face flushed. ?What about him?? Surely Draco wasn?t fantasizing
about Dumbledore while Harry touched him.

Draco took a deep breath and grinned. ?He wouldn?t approve.?

?Ah,? Harry replied, losing interest and returning his focus to Draco?s
trousers. ?Why not??

?Because we?re about to shag on the High Table.?

Harry?s head snapped up again and he glanced around, eyes wide. He?d
forgotten all about the Great Hall! Littered on the table all around them were
chocolate frog boxes, a half-empty jug of pumpkin juice, and two tumblers,
and they were indeed about to shag on the High Table, right in front of the
headmaster?s chair.

For a moment, Harry considered stopping, but Draco shifted restlessly


beneath him (probably a deliberate act to get Harry?s attention), and Harry
turned back to him.
?He never has to know,? he said breathlessly, lowering himself again to kiss
Draco, shoving his hands down the other boy?s trousers. Draco smiled
appreciatively and moaned.

?Anyone here??

They both froze, Harry?s eyes flying wide as he glanced to the door, which
was slowly creaking open. He looked back at Draco, half-naked and panting
beneath him, eyes smoky and lips swollen, and started frantically trying to
think up an excuse for this.

Draco?s legs swung up and locked around him, and Harry opened his mouth
to yelp, trying to pull him off. Draco laughed softly, clapped his hand over
Harry?s mouth, and rolled, right off the table, ensuring that he landed on the
bottom so Harry wouldn?t be hurt.

?Don?t say anything,? he whispered. He?d grabbed his shirt and the
invisibility cloak as they fell and threw it over them.

It was Filch, with his cat, Mrs. Norris. They peered suspiciously into the
hall, taking in the garbage all over the table.

?My glasses,? Harry hissed suddenly, very quietly. Draco swore softly. They
were still on the table, partially hidden by the jug of pumpkin juice.

?Stay behind Dumbledore?s chair and don?t move,? Draco commanded


softly, shifting the cloak around him as he stood up. Filch, holding Mrs.
Norris, was now standing before the table, studying the mess with narrowed
eyes.

Draco started sliding his arm across the table slowly, towards Harry?s
glasses, which Filch hadn?t yet noticed.

Filch lifted the jug of pumpkin juice, stuck his finger in it, and brought it up
to his lips. ?Still cold,? he whispered to his cat. ?That means there?s
someone out of bed!?

The glasses were an inch from Draco?s reach when Filch slammed the jug
back down, nearly crushing his hand and sending the glasses sliding a little.
Flinching a little, Draco leaned forward, reaching for them again.
That?s when Harry, who had crawled under the cloak around Draco?s feet,
smirked and started stroking Draco?s leg.

Draco jumped a little, knocking into a chair, which made a soft scraping
noise. Mrs. Norris?s ears twitched and Filch narrowed his eyes. ?Who?s
there?? he rasped. ?I?ll get you, just wait, I?ll find you??

Harry?s hand was sliding up Draco?s leg, past his knee and up his thigh, and
Draco started panting, desperate to reach Harry?s glasses and get back under
the table so he could kill that stupid boy.

Filch was raging now, throwing chocolate frog boxes and shouting at them,
fury at his inability to see them making him crazy.

Draco?s fingers had just wrapped around the glasses when Harry?s hand had
slipped inside his trousers, and he strangled a moan as he snatched them and
quickly sank back under the table.

?You?re trying to get us killed!? he hissed to Harry, shoving the other boy?s
glasses back on, his voice not heard over Filch?s shouting.

Harry was grinning widely, and he pulled his hand away, kissing Draco
hard. ?I was bored,? he whispered, snickering.

There was a sudden silence above and then Filch whispered, ?I?ll see what
Dumbledore has to say about this! Children out of bed!? He left, still hissing
under his breath, and Harry struggled not to laugh.

?We?ve got to get out of here before Dumbledore comes,? Harry said.

Draco was struggling to do up his trousers and nodded, flashing Harry a


grin. As soon as he was done, they stood carefully, glancing about for Filch
and then dashing for the door, still under the cloak. The hall was clear and
Harry grabbed Draco by the wrist, tugging him down it and up the stairs to
Gryffindor Tower. As they rushed up the stairs, neither one could help
snickering, and by the time they got to the Fat Lady, they were both
laughing breathlessly.

Harry pulled Draco across the common room and up the stairs, into his dorm
room where Seamus, Dean, and Neville were sleeping, the hangings on their
beds closed. Harry glanced at Draco and motioned for him to be quiet,
before slamming him against the closed door and kissing him again. The kiss
grew bolder as Harry pressed closer, his mouth grinding against Draco?s as
he bit Draco?s lip, his hands sliding lower, until his arms were around the
other boy?s waist and he was tugging him closer. This Draco responded to
more than the gentleness in the Great Hall, fighting for control because it
was a force of habit and he liked this better than anything with Harry. The
battle for control that had stopped being so much about winning and started
being more about seeing how far they could push each other.

They stumbled a few steps, falling onto the nearest bed, thankfully empty.

It was a long time later when, tangled up and sprawled over Draco, neither
wearing any clothing, Harry realized something and sat up, eyes widening
even as a horrified giggle escaped him.

?Oh god,? he whispered.

?What?? Draco asked sleepily.

?This is Ron?s bed.?

Draco smirked a little as he sat up, glancing around. ?It was empty, I thought
it was yours.?.

?It is empty,? Harry realized, eyes widening still further. ?But it?s so late,
where?s Ron??

?I?ll have to thank Pansy for this,? Draco mumbled, rolling out of the bed
and grabbing Harry?s hand. ?But still, sleeping in Weasley?s bed has never
been a fantasy of mine, which one?s yours??

Harry half-heartedly tried to straighten Ron?s sheets and then gave up,
gathering up their clothes and carrying them over to his bed, giggling again,
breathlessly, as he climbed onto the bed, pulling Draco with him and closing
the hangings.

Draco kissed him and they started all over again, falling asleep tangled
together hours later, the curtains sealed with silencing and locking charms.

***
There is a subtle art to the way the body works, with smooth and silken skin
stretched over muscles and framework of bone. The way a chest would rise
and fall with breath, making it seem all the more vulnerable and perfect for
that mortality. Eyelashes so delicate and dark against pale skin, lips parted
the tiniest bit in sleep, a hand closed into a fist and attached to an arm,
outstretched and reaching.

Then again, maybe Draco just found art in watching Harry Potter sleep.

His father would kill him, his friends loathe him, but none of that mattered,
however, because the sun was rising, shining through the bed hangings in
tiny specks of gold, falling over Harry?s body, half turned towards him with
tangled sheets around his hips and legs. A fine splash pattern of muted gold.
His father could kill him a thousand times over and Draco wouldn?t care.

He?d never known imperfection could be beautiful. All of his life Draco had
been taught that nothing was worthwhile until it was oozing with pure-
blood, aristocratic beauty. Poisoned oleander flowers and belladonna. Not
buttercups (too plebian) or thistle (too rough). Maybe that was why he found
beauty in wild black hair and wide green eyes, glasses, crooked smiles.

The sun was higher now, and still golden, though now bright enough to cast
a hazy light over the entire room. The other seventh year Gryffindors would
be rising soon, and he had to go. If they found him here, in Harry?s bed? It
did not bear thinking about. Not even heavy velvet bed hangings of crimson
pulled tight around the bed, wrapped in a silencing spell, could keep the
secret for long.

The invisibility cloak was tossed negligently at the foot of the bed, and
Draco watched the sunspots hit random threads, making them dance, reflect
rainbows.

Watching it, knowing he?d have to sneak away under it, suddenly made
Draco extremely bitter, and he found himself not caring, suddenly, who
found out.

But he had to care. Harry could be in danger if they weren?t careful.


Already, Pansy, Weasley, and Granger knew. His father could not find out
about this.
So it was still a secret then, which meant a long day of pretending that it was
different, that Harry meant nothing to him. The night before could be
nothing more than something to think about, and only very rarely. Draco
usually couldn?t bear to think of it for too long, his body inevitably reacted
to it.

Somewhere, someone whispered and there was a snort of laughter. They


were waking and Draco sighed.

?Harry,? he whispered gently, shaking his shoulder. ?I?ve got to go.?

Moaning low in his throat, Harry turned his face into the pillow, eyelashes
fluttering weakly. ?No,? he mumbled, and Draco smiled, leaning down and
kissing his shoulder.

?Yes. C?mon, Harry. I don?t want to sneak out when you?re still asleep, it?s
not very classy.?

Harry turned his head, eyes narrowed into sullen slits, looking more
vulnerable because his glasses were safely stowed inside his trunk. ?Fuck
class,? he said very clearly, before flopping back down on the pillow.

?You wouldn?t be so hard to wake in the morning if you got more sleep,?
Draco teased.

Turning his head once more, Harry scowled. ?Whose fault is that?? he
asked, rolling over and sitting up, still blinking sleepily.

?Yours, if I recall correctly,? Draco said almost primly. ?You do carry on,
Harry.?

Harry smirked. ?You like it.?

He was looking adorably mussed, sitting there with his hair fluffy from sleep
and lines from his pillow on his cheek, and Draco impulsively leaned over
and kissed him quickly before running his hands through Harry?s hair,
tidying it.

Harry rolled his eyes but let Draco fix his hair. ?Everyone?s leaving today
for the holidays,? he remembered suddenly.
?Yeah.? Draco smiled. ?And I?m the only Slytherin staying, you can come
and see me any time you want. The password?s Incendio.?

?Harry? Harry!? It was Neville and he was digging fruitlessly through the
bed hangings, trying to open them. ?Are you awake??

Draco rolled his eyes and dove under the cloak, even as Harry tugged a sheet
over himself and ended the locking charm. The hangings flew open.

?What??

?It?s Hermione, she?s downstairs waiting to say goodbye.?

?I?ll be right down,? he promised, and Neville nodded, closing the hangings
again. ?Urg,? Harry mumbled, pulling a shirt over his head and reaching
through the curtains for his glasses. Dean, Seamus, and Neville had already
left the room, and Draco tossed the cloak off, smirking.

They were both just finishing dressing when the door flew open again and
Draco froze, wide-eyes flying to it.

Ron stood there, his face pale, eyes narrowed as they flew suspiciously from
Harry to Draco and then to the invisibility cloak on the floor.

Harry swallowed and glanced at Draco, who was smiling coldly,


challengingly, at Ron. ?Hi, Ron,? Harry said lamely.

?If you ever let him in here again,? Ron said very calmly. ?I?ll tell
Dumbledore. He?s not allowed in here.?

Harry got a little irritated. ?And where were you all night? I?ll bet the same
rule goes for Gryffindors in the Slytherin dorms.?

Ron turned a little red. ?None of your business,? he snapped.

He pushed past Harry with enough force to knock him out of the way and
into the wall. Before he got two steps away, however, Draco had stepped in
front of him, smirking coldly at him. ?If I didn?t know you were a Weasley
and didn?t already know that you weren?t, I?d say that you obviously
weren?t raised very well. That wasn?t very nice, don?t touch him again.?
Ron scowled, trying to shove Draco out of the way. ?I could say the same
for you, Malfoy, but I know you wouldn?t listen.?

?You could say the same, Weasley, but it wouldn?t be true, as I?m not a
Weasley and was raised to be a hell of a lot more courteous than you.?

His face was turning purple and Ron snarled, ?Not about that, about the rest
of it. About not touching him again. Get out of my way.? This time, he tried
to shove Draco, but the other boy reacted by pushing him back. Ron hit the
door and growled, launching himself at Draco, knocking him the floor and
punching him in the stomach. Smiling grimly, Draco reacted by slamming
his fist into Ron?s jaw, sending his head snapping back and splitting his lip.

?Shit. Shit. Stop it! Will both of you grow up?? Harry cried, falling to his
knees and trying to pull Ron off Draco.

?Don?t touch me,? Ron shouted as Harry tugged at him. He angled a swift
kick at Harry, knocking him away and then going back to pounding Draco,
who snarled and intensified his own attack.

?Don?t you dare touch him again,? Draco spat, flipping Ron over so that he
was on top, pinning the other boy beneath him and slamming his fist against
his face.

The shouting brought Hermione running, and she appeared in the doorway
just as Harry threw all of his weight against Draco and knocked him off of
Ron. They rolled, and Harry ended up pinning Draco against the floor,
breathing heavily and scowling.

?Leave him alone,? he growled. ?I don?t want to cause this.?

?He?s been asking for it for days,? Draco replied, his eyes narrowed and
dark.

?I don?t care,? Harry replied, crawling off him and going to see if Ron was
alright. Ron had already gotten to his feet and stalked to his bed, digging
through his trunk to find something to stop his bleeding lip.

?Get Draco out of here,? Harry said over his shoulder to Hermione, as he
approached Ron. He didn?t want them fighting anymore.
Draco snorted, rolled to his feet, and walked out without giving her the
chance. Hermione hurried after him.

?Ron,? Harry snarled, after Draco had gone. ?If you ever touch him again??

?Only you?d be sick and perverted enough to think I was turned on, rolling
around with Malfoy on the floor. Only you would have been jealous by
that,? Ron spat.

Growling, Harry shoved him against the wall. ?Don?t fucking try to make
me any angrier, Ron. If you ever touch him again, I will hurt you. You may
be my best friend, but you?re not doing a very good job of acting the part,
and I will hurt you if you touch him again.?

He let go of him and walked away quickly, and if Ron had a reply, Harry
didn?t hear it. He was gone in seconds, hurrying down the stairs.

Hermione was pacing the common room nervously. ?Harry,? she said
worriedly. ?You didn?t hurt him??

?Ron?s fine,? Harry said with a scowl. ?But if he ever ??

?I know, Harry,? she said soothingly. ?It was wrong of him, he shouldn?t
have ??

Not feeling particularly up to listening to her pretend she understood, Harry


interrupted. ?Where?s Draco??

She looked even more nervous now. ?I caught up to him outside the Fat
Lady, Harry, he was furious. He wouldn?t listen to me, he just left, I don?t
know where he went.?

Harry felt an instant of panic and then he forced himself to calm down.
Draco probably just went back to his own room.

?I?ve got to find him,? Harry said distractedly.

?Harry,? Hermione said gently. ?Ron?s just upset. He doesn?t mean to make
this harder for you.?
?You seem to be under the mistaken impression that being with Draco is
hard for me. It?s the easiest thing I?ve ever done. The hard part is
everyone?s making such a big deal about it!?

She looked chagrined. ?Alright. Sorry. I?ve got to go, the carriages are
leaving soon. I?ll see you after the holidays.?

After a quick good-bye, Harry hurried off to search for Draco.

He still didn?t quite feel confident enough to just walk up to the entrance to
the Slytherin dorms, say the password Draco had given him, and saunter in.
Instead, he wandered into the library, the Great Hall, and even the kitchens,
searching for Draco. He went up to the South Tower and then outside,
ending up at the hollow and sitting down in the roots of the tree,
remembering all those times he?d sat there before, writing to Draco. How
stupid and stubborn they?d been, to waste so long with words written in
poisoned ink in a journal.

He started idly shifting the powdery snow through his mittened hands,
confused when something glittered like ice on his palm. He brushed the
snow off and saw it was a shard of glass.

?The inkwell,? he remembered. Draco had crushed it.

Harry dug until he?d uncovered all the broken pieces of it. There were dried
remains of black ink, like dried blood, staining some of them, and when the
sun hit them, they glittered. He shivered, feeling a chill that had nothing to
do with the cold, and climbed to his feet, determined to find Draco again. It
had only been a few hours, but he needed to see him.

?Incendio,? he said at the opening to Slytherin House. The stone barrier slid
open and he stepped inside the common room.

It was empty, the fire had died down to a few glowing embers, the torches
on the walls were dark, cold, as if they hadn?t been lit since the night before.

?Draco?? he called, but got no response. ?It?s me. Are you here? Is anyone
here??
Again, only silence, and Harry approached the stairs that had to lead to the
dorms. He?d only ever been in the common room before, and that had been
second year, disguised as a Slytherin.

It was silent up there as well and by now, Harry was feeling very uneasy. It
wasn?t just that he couldn?t find Draco, it was that he felt he had to find
him. He could only imagine what Draco thought, since that morning. It
probably looked like Harry was choosing Ron over him, but he hadn?t been,
and he had to explain it to Draco.

There was no one there, he opened the door to every dorm, thinking that
maybe Draco had fallen asleep. He hadn?t. He wasn?t there.

More than that, none of his stuff was there. No trunks, no clothing tossed on
the floor (Harry had enough experience with Draco and the way he removed
his clothes to know by now that he was never very neat when he did it),
nothing.

The faint unease he?d inexplicably felt all day had tightened to very real
worry, and Harry left the Slytherin dorms quickly, heading for Gryffindor
Tower. He went up to his room and sat on his bed, thinking hard.

?Where is he?? he whispered.

Idly, he picked the crimson leaf off of his trunk and studied it in silence,
twirling it between his fingers as he thought about what to do next.

?If he?s not at dinner,? Harry decided suddenly, out loud. ?I?ll ask
Dumbledore.?

The remaining members of his house had already made their way to the hall
for dinner, and Harry, still playing with the leaf, quickly left his dorm,
setting out for the hall. If anyone knew where Draco had gone, it would be
Dumbledore. Because he had to be here, he had to be. He?d promised that he
was staying. Something had to have happened.

There weren?t many students staying over the holidays, and they were all
gathered around one table, with the professors. Harry was a few minutes
late, and he sat beside Ginny, glancing at Dumbledore and then back around
the table. Draco wasn?t there, and there were no Slytherins staying, so he
couldn?t even ask them if they?d seen him.
Hoping that Draco would show up late, Harry picked at his food and waited,
jumping every time anyone spoke to him, darting many furtive glances at the
door.

Finally, they?d finished eating and Dumbledore stood to leave, talking softly
to Professor Snape.

Harry hurriedly rose as well. ?Professor Dumbledore,? he called.

Snape shot him an irritated glare for daring to interrupt, and Dumbledore
said, ?My office, Harry, in about fifteen minutes? I?ve a feeling I know what
this is about.?

Harry nodded and they left, still talking quietly. The entire table of students
was staring at him, including Ron, and Harry winced at the fury in his eyes.
He didn?t know what he?d done wrong this time, and didn?t particularly
care to wait around to find out.

He left quickly, heading straight for Dumbledore?s office and waiting.


Exactly the appointed time, the door opened, letting Harry in. Up the spiral
staircase and into the round office he went, the faces of sleepy headmasters
peering at him, boredom in their eyes.

Dumbledore was behind the desk, his fingers tented in front of his face, his
eyes patient and kind. ?Well now, Harry, why don?t you tell me what this is
about??

?I thought you already knew,? Harry said, wincing at his own rudeness. He
wasn?t thinking right because something had to have happened to take
Draco away.

?I could be wrong. Tell me.?

?It?s Draco,? Harry blurted. ?I can?t find him.?

Dumbledore shook his head gently, smiling. ?But Harry, why on earth
would you want to find a boy you?ve hated since the first day of school??

Irritated, Harry sat down heavily in the chair across from Dumbledore and
said, ?I know you know more than you?re letting on, sir, so let?s skip this
whole vague part of the conversation and get to the point. Where is he?? He
had no patience for politeness and Dumbledore seemed to understand that.

He sighed. ?He went home, Harry. He was needed there.?

?He promised he?d be here.?

?Not all promises can be kept, you know that. Just as not all circumstances
can be foreseen.?

?What circumstances? What happened??

?I wouldn?t normally break the bounds of confidentiality, Harry, but I


somehow doubt Draco would mind in this case. It?s his father.?

?His father sent for him?? Harry whispered.

?His father,? Dumbledore said delicately, ?was in no condition to do so.?

Harry?s eyes narrowed. ?Why? Just tell me what happened!?

?He?s ill, Harry. We got an urgent message from the house elves, sending
for Draco. Lucius is very ill, they doubt he?ll survive the night. He?s finally
taken on more than he can handle.? Dumbledore?s voice had grown softer,
his eyes distant, thoughtful.

?Ill? He?s ill? Lucius is dying.? Harry thought for a moment and then
panicked. ?But Draco? You don?t understand, you can?t have sent Draco
there!?

?He needs to be there.?

?He can?t be there! What if Voldemort comes for him? If Lucius is dying,
and the prophecy hasn?t happened yet, then he?s only got tonight to give
Draco to Voldemort!? He wasn?t thinking quite coherently, and he leapt
from his chair. ?You can?t let Voldemort have him! He?s mine!?

?It?s his choice, Harry. We?ve done all we can for Draco, he?s stronger than
you seem to think.?

?No, you don?t understand! He?s not going to be strong, his father is dying!
He measures himself by his father, and his father wants him to go to
Voldemort. Sometimes you don?t get a choice in these things. Did I ever
choose to be yours??

Finally, Dumbledore smiled, though just slightly. ?You did choose, Harry,
when you were eleven and you stood before the mirror and had immortality
and wealth and all of Voldemort?s power spread before you and you saw
only yourself, finding the stone. You choose further when you called Fawkes
to you in the Chamber of Secrets. Sometimes you don?t even realize you?re
making a choice, but that doesn?t mean you haven?t done so. You?ve got to
have more faith in Draco, Harry.?

?I?ve got to go to him.?

Now, Dumbledore?s eyes hardened. ?You won?t. You don?t belong there, I
can?t protect you there.?

?You can?t protect him either and you let him go!?

?He?s not??

?Not what??

Dumbledore didn?t reply, and Harry scowled.

?Not Harry Potter? Not savior of the wizarding world?? Harry growled. ?He
could be, if you would give him half a chance!?

?He doesn?t want to be, Harry.?

?And I do??

?Sometimes you don?t get a choice in these things.?

?Don?t you dare throw my words back in my face!? Fury made him
reckless, rude. ?So I don?t get a choice and he does??

?Harry.?

?Send me to him.?

?I can?t. You don?t belong there, it isn?t your world.?


Harry was on his feet now, and he leaned over Dumbledore?s desk, hissing
through gritted teeth, ?If you can?t see that I belong wherever he is, then
you?re mad.?

?Calm down, Harry,? Dumbledore said, very gently, sounding tired. ?I


won?t send you to him. He?ll come to you, he always does. You think that
he measures himself by his father, but he stopped doing that when he was
eleven and met a green-eyed boy in a robe shop.?

Suddenly Harry felt like he was going to cry. ?You don?t understand.?

?Perhaps I don?t,? Dumbledore agreed. ?But then, I?m not so old that I
don?t remember what it is to be in love, Harry. You?ve got to have faith in
him. Draco is not his father. He?ll come back to you.?

?I wish I could believe you,? Harry said quietly, before walking out of the
office.

Chapter Twelve
It's not that I am stupid
It's not that I'm scheming
It's not that I'm searching for a sign
It's not that I am righteous
It's not that I'm unfeeling
I don't expect you to be mine
Oh, but I could break you if I wanted to
Be cruel to you and I could show the world your song
Oh, I could break you if I wanted to
Be cruel to you, 'cause I was broken all along
And the things you tell me don't mean a thing if you're not scared
And turning your back on me won't leave me weak or unprepared
-?Broken?, Matt Caplan

He was halfway back to Gryffindor Tower when the fury returned. Someone
sought to take Draco from him?

The Fat Lady swung open wordlessly when she saw his scowl. ?Dear, are
you alright?? she asked as he stalked through.

He didn?t reply.
Ginny and Ron were playing chess in the common room, and they both
looked up when he came inside. ?Harry?? Ginny asked, getting to her feet.
?What?s wrong??

?Nothing,? Harry bit off savagely.

?Where?s Malfoy?? Ron asked quietly.

Harry spun towards him and exploded. ?Like you care, like you fucking
care, Ron!?

Instantly, Ron?s eyes grew hard. ?I only ??

?I don?t care what you ?only?, Ron! I don?t care about anything about you!
So just leave me alone, because I don?t want to deal with you right now!?

It was Ron?s turn to become furious, and he leapt to his feet. ?Don?t act like
a fucking self-righteous prince, Harry! You?ve always thought that your
problems were worse than everyone else?s and gone on about how horrible
it is to be you, and whenever anyone tries to see if you?re alright, you bite
their heads off! Is it any wonder Malfoy left you??

Harry reacted like he?d been punched in the stomach, physically flinching.
?He didn?t,? he whispered, eyes welling up with tears. ?He didn?t leave me,
he just left. And he needs me. And I don?t care if you think it?s wrong, Ron,
because it?s the most right thing I?ve ever known and I don?t want to lose
him.?

Before Ron could say another word, Harry hurried up the stairs to his room.
He sat carefully on his bed because his body felt like glass, about to shatter.

It could have been hours or merely minutes before the door opened and Ron
walked in. He looked thoughtful and very pale. ?Harry?? he said quietly.

?What??

Ron sat beside him, measuring his words carefully. ?You?re very angry.?

?I?m scared,? Harry corrected.


?Is this what it?s going to be like? Are you going to be this scared and angry
forever if you don?t get him back??

Harry glanced at him sideways and didn?t say a word.

Ron rushed on. ?Because I thought that if he was gone, like before, then
we?d go back to how we were. You know. Because things changed when
you and he? you know. And I thought, if only he went away, everything
would be better again. But then he did go away, didn?t he? And? and
nothing got better because you?re not even giving me the chance to get
angry and shout at you, you shout at me first, and it?s just not right.?

It was rather incoherent and Harry shook his head. ?What are you saying??

?I?m saying,? Ron said after a moment, ?that I?d rather have you if it means
having Malfoy too than not have you at all and have things be like this.?

Harry swallowed thickly and would have said something, except all of this
with Ron, it had stopped meaning anything the instant he had learned that
Draco had gone home. To his father. To Voldemort. And that he had gone,
thinking that Harry had chosen Ron over him when he hadn?t chosen either.
He just hadn?t wanted Draco to be hurt anymore. ?That?s lovely,? Harry
said, suddenly feeling like he was going to cry. Or vomit. ?But he?s gone.?

Ron got up and grabbed his cloak off his trunk, putting it on and then
wrapping his Gryffindor scarf around his neck.

?Where are you going?? Harry asked tonelessly.

?Get your bloody cloak,? Ron snapped.

?What? Why??

?Because! You?re the one who wants to go after Malfoy so bloody badly, so
hurry up, before I change my mind!?

?But ??

Ron sighed. ?Harry? trust me, alright??

Harry grabbed his cloak. ?But where are we going??


?Where?s Malfoy??

?At home.?

?Then I suppose we?re going there.?

?Why??

?Because you?re hard enough to get along with when you?re in love with the
git, let alone flopping about whining because he?s not here! Stop with the
questions and let?s go!?

Harry couldn?t help but smile a little. ?But why??

With a wry and rueful grin, Ron asked, ?What are friends for?? He shrugged
a little.

?But I don?t know where Malfoy Manor is, and we have no way to get
there.?

Ron shrugged. ?The Knight Bus?ll pick us up from Hogsmeade and bring us
wherever we wanna go.?

Even Ron couldn?t help but notice the way Harry?s eyes lit up behind his
glasses, and a beaming smile twisted his lips. ?Brilliant. But you don?t have
to come with me, Ron.?

Ron scoffed. ?Harry. You think I?d let you go traipsing off to Malfoy Manor
alone? I don?t even trust you alone with Malfoy here where Dumbledore?s
around to protect you if the prat tries to hurt you. And I know, you think
he?d never hurt you. But honestly, Harry, you think this is easy for me,
trusting a Malfoy not to hurt my best friend? I?m trying, I really am. So
don?t lecture me, and let?s go. The sooner we get there, the sooner we?ll be
back. Hermione?s going to kill us for not bringing her. You do realize this,
don?t you??

Harry just laughed and grabbed his cloak and his scarf.

The walk to Hogsmeade was strange for Harry, who hadn?t been there since
that night he?d run into Draco, drunk in the forest. The only sound was the
crunching of snow beneath their shoes, and Harry shivered, glancing around
the forest.

Finally, he broke the silence. ?Thank you. For coming with me, I mean.?

Ron glanced at him. ?Welcome. What are friends for? I? I?m sorry too. For
everything. Not for fighting him, of course.? That was said with wild
defiance and a scowl. ?But for being such a prat. I don?t like him, Harry, I?ll
never like him. But if you like him enough for all of this?? He waved a hand
vaguely, indicating the current situation, ?then I guess I?ll? let it go. But if
he ever hurts you, Harry, I?ve got first claim on kicking his arse.?

Harry smiled a little. ?He won?t, Ron. He?d never hurt me. He loves me.?

?Spare me the details,? Ron moaned, looking pained.

Laughing, Harry shoved him a little. ?You?ve got him to thank for getting
together with Pansy, you know that, don?t you? It was his plan.?

Ron looked appalled. ?He was in on that? Tell me he had nothing to do with
that!?

Harry just smiled.

They walked the rest of the way talking lightly, catching up on all they?d
missed, as busy as they?d both been lately.

On the outskirts of Hogsmeade, Ron hailed the Knight Bus and he and Harry
climbed onto it, paying the fare and making their way to the back, sitting on
creaky beds. For some reason, they were both giggling, the whole idea of
having escaped from Hogwarts by way of the Knight Bus to rescue Draco
Malfoy, disobeying Dumbledore?s orders directly, going to their heads and
making them a little giddy. After all, despite everything they?d done in their
younger years at Hogwarts, they?d never done anything this foolhardy,
reckless, and? strange. Rescuing Draco Malfoy? A year ago, Harry would
have laughed himself hoarse at the very idea.

It took a few hours to get to Malfoy Manor and Ron slept for most of them.
Harry was too tense to sleep, and listened to the creaking bus, biting his lip
and conjuring up a thousand possible scenarios for what was about to
happen. First, he?d hold him and tell him he was sorry about Lucius. Which
he was. Not for Lucius?s sake, of course, he loathed Lucius. But for Draco.
Then he?d explain about the scene that morning, that he hadn?t really taken
Ron?s side, he just hadn?t wanted Ron to hurt him. And then he?d kiss him
and never ever let him go. Harry smiled a little at the thought.

The bus dropped them off outside Malfoy Manor and Harry stared at it in
mesmerized horror. It was a huge gothic mansion, tall, dark, made of stone,
with granite gargoyles perched on the roof. It looked frightening,
intimidating, and not warm at all. Every window in it was dark, except one,
which flared with colour.

?That must be Draco?s room,? Harry whispered. It was the type of house
you didn?t want to speak too loud in front of, as if it had ears and you didn?t
want it to notice you standing before it.

?Let?s go then,? Ron replied nervously, taking a few brave steps towards the
front gate.

Harry grabbed his sleeve. ?Ron. You?re not going in.?

Ron whirled around and scowled. ?I?m not letting you prance off into
Malfoy Manor alone, Harry!?

?Yeah, you are. It?ll be dangerous; I don?t want you in danger. Draco?ll take
care of me if anything goes wrong, I know he will. But if you?re there too
and something happens, he might not be able to help us both.? It was a lie,
sort of. Harry was quite sure that it would be fine, nothing would happen,
and it was hardly dangerous. He just didn?t want Ron inside that house;
Draco would hardly appreciate it. If he was upset over his father, he
wouldn?t want Ron to see.

?But Harry ??

?The bus driver said there?s a village just over that hill,? Harry said,
pointing as he pulled a small bag of coins out of his pocket. ?Go there and?
and wait for me, alright? And if I don?t send word in? three hours, go back
to Hogwarts without me.?

Ron laughed grimly. ?Right, Harry, I?ll do just that, you stupid prat,? he said
sarcastically. ?If you don?t show up in two, I?m coming back for you. I?ll
see if they?ve got any carriages or anything to borrow or whatever, and I?ll
wait for you. I?m not going back without you.?

?Right, do that then.? Harry smiled reassuringly. ?It?ll be fine.?

Ron hardly looked reassured but set off towards the village anyway, and
Harry watched until he was out of shouting distance. Then, taking a deep
breath, he touched the front gates. They were iron and cold, swinging open
at his touch. He let out his breath and, praying that they didn?t have any sort
of security charm, stepped hesitantly onto the grounds of the manor.

***

Draco didn?t know what he expected. Dumbledore had shown him the letter
from one of his house elves, had gently explained things that Draco was too
dazed to catch, and then had sent him home in a carriage. Hours, maybe days
later (his concept of time from the meeting with Dumbledore until months
later would always be distorted) he?d arrived at home. Usually his mother
was there to meet him on the steps, but she had died the summer before. He
charmed his trunk to float behind him and led it up to his bedroom, sitting on
the side of his bed for a long time, lost in thought, Dumbledore?s words
echoing in his mind.

?It?s your father, Draco. There?s been an accident. The details aren?t at all
clear to me yet, but from what I?ve been able to gather from the letter your
house elf sent, a spell backfired? Something went wrong?? More words,
sympathetic, soothing words, none of which meant a damn thing. ?I?m
sorry, Draco??

?Sorry?? Draco whispered. He didn?t know how he felt about that, really.
His father had always been a presence in his life that couldn?t be denied.
They?d never been close. Close? They?d never been anything! Which was
what had lead to this numb confusion. They were going to be close, as soon
as Draco was strong enough? ?Malfoy? enough. As soon as he?d done
something to make his father proud.

But then, the things that would make his father proud?

Draco stopped thinking about it and instead thought of Harry, who he knew
would be frantic. He wished he?d thought to leave a note, to say good-bye.
Harry wouldn?t have forgotten had it been him.
Someone else Draco would never live up to. If there was one thing he hated,
it was feeling inferior, and he was so confused at the moment that he found
himself feeling inferior to Harry. It was easier to be furious at Harry for all
those years of making him feel inferior then his father for an entire lifetime
of it. His father, who was dying.

Fury. Draco slammed out of his bedroom, finding strength in that rage.

His father?s room was on the fourth floor and Draco?s anger sustained him
all the way up the stairs. He threw the door to his father?s bedroom open and
there he froze, uncertain.

The room was dark. The house elves were terrified of disturbing Lucius,
after the last one to try had received a bookend to the head. That had been a
few days ago, however, when they still thought there was some hope. When
Lucius was still strong enough to light his own fires. His strength had fallen
prey to the weakness soon after, and now, Lucius, Prince of the Malfoy
family fortunes, second hand to Voldemort, was bedridden and dying.

Draco had never been afraid of his father. As a child, he?d tried to emulate
him, they had never been close, and Draco had always known it was because
his father found him weak. Now, staring down at the shattered man who lay
there with huge, glazed eyes (the very same ones that Harry had only the
night before claimed that Draco had inherited), Draco shook his head slowly.

?I don?t even know you,? he whispered. ?How am I supposed to be you


when I don?t even recognize you??

Lucius was aged now much more than ever, with eyes as dark as bruises and
as deep and empty as a hole in the ground. Draco felt a vague stirring of
numb horror.

?What did you do?? he asked in a hoarse, shocked tone.

Lucius? eyes narrowed and, when he spoke, spit glistened at the corners of
his lips. ?Nothing. Nothing. You?ve got to finish it.?

?Finish what??

Lucius lurched forward, trying to sit up. ?Bringing her back.?


For one wild moment, Draco didn?t say anything. He was afraid of what
he?d say if he opened his mouth. When he finally spoke, his voice cracked.
?Bring back who??

?Narcissa.?

Draco would have flinched had he remembered how to move.

?Too weak. She was too weak. I was too weak. All too weak.? Lucius was
ambling now, eyes closed.

?Father? Father, what are you talking about?? he sounded as though he were
begging and, in a way, he was.

Manic strength gave Lucius the power to sit up. ?You have to understand. I
had to bring her back! She couldn?t leave me, she couldn?t leave me to do
this alone, I couldn?t do it. She was so weak!?

?Where? where is she?? Draco asked, swallowing hard.

?In the dungeon,? Lucius whispered, falling back and closing his eyes again.
?I kept her in the dungeon, all these months, while I waited for the proper
time to call her back. I kept her body whole, kept it clean? waited? gathered
ingredients and strength? not enough strength. He?ll know it, he?ll know it
when he sees me, he?s here, Draco, he?s here, and this is my punishment?
punishment?? He was shaking his head now and rambling, and Draco
backed out of the room.

His eyes ached, like someone had poured sand on them. Walking slowly,
delicately, he made his way downstairs to the dungeons. As soon as he
opened the iron door that led to the last flight of stairs, he could hear the
screaming. He knew from his studies that Necromancy was one of the
forbidden arts and that, if interrupted, the body lies halfway between death
and life, the soul torn between two polar opposites. It?s like dying only a
thousand times more painful because the soul resists being torn from the
afterlife and the body resists having it forced back inside.

Only the most powerful wizards could do it, and Lucius had always been
cruel but never powerful. His body and mind had cracked before he could
finish it, and Narcissa?s body was twitching and writhing, her lips, dead and
tinged blue, were wide open, emitting shrieks that hurt to hear. Her wrists
and ankles had been shackled to the stone slab she lay on, and all around her,
painted on the floor, were the symbols his father had drawn for the spell.

Draco stood on the bottom stair, unable to tear his eyes away from his
mother?s body.

Her eyes were opened, but rolled back, white. Her hair, always her main
vanity, ratty and dull, dusty and tangled. Her skin was limp, too pale, and
had a gray tint to it. The dress she?d been entombed in lay off her body like
a skeleton. Her stomach was still rounded as she?d died while giving birth
and the baby was still inside of her.

And she was still screaming and twitching.

Finish it, his father had said. Finish it. Draco didn?t even know how.

Clapping one hand over his mouth to stop himself from vomiting, he ran
back up the stairs and into the nearest bathroom.

Then he returned to his father. ?If you loved her so much, you would have
let her go,? he said weakly.

?I didn?t do it for her,? his father said with a strange smile.

?Then why??

?For you.?

Draco sat heavily on the floor against the wall, burying his head in his
hands. ?Why?? he croaked. ?Why would you do this for me??

?Better to lose a child I?ve never known then you.?

Lifting his head, Draco stared at his father. ?What??

?He wants you. He?s always wanted you. I kept him away. I made you
weak.?

?You?? Draco started laughing painfully, standing up and coming closer,


leaning over the bed. ?Just tell me already. Tell me all of it, before you lose
anymore of your mind.?
?He gives nothing without a price, nothing, but you were mine. You were
mine.?

?I don?t understand,? Draco whispered.

Lucius?s eyes flew wide. ?He?s here,? he whispered. He grabbed Draco?s


robes and tugged him closer, hissing, ?He?s here. Run. Get out!?

Jerking out of his father?s grasp, Draco shook his head, stepping back. ?I
don?t understand you,? he said quietly. ?I don?t understand why you?ve
done this.?

Lucius? eyes had wandered away from him and focused on something
behind him, and Draco suddenly became aware of the chill in the room, the
darkness. He turned slowly but there was no one there.

Terror had twisted Lucius? already twisted face and his ragged breathing had
become even more laboured. ?Get out of here,? he whispered, and Draco
somehow didn?t think he was talking to him.

?Father?? Draco pleaded softly. ?Stop.?

Sucking in a painful, hissing breath, Lucius? body suddenly bucked, his


head falling back, and he shrieked, suddenly looking like Narcissa?s body
had in the dungeon. Wondering nervously if that was the price for being too
weak to finish a high level dark spell, Draco slowly backed towards the
door, eyes trained on his father. It was almost as if his father were going
through the Necromancy spell himself, only backwards. His soul was being
forced from his body.

When Lucius kept shrieking, the same, otherworldly shrieks as Narcissa had
just moments earlier, Draco turned and ran from the room, squeezing his
eyes shut and slamming the door behind him. He could still hear the
screaming, and he was shaking as he hurried blindly away.

He instinctively made his way back to the dungeon, because even if she
wasn?t really his mother, she was still? part of his mother. A small part. And
he had missed her, and mothers were who you were supposed to go to when
you were scared and suddenly the dark was too frightening because it
seemed to jump out at you.
?Mother?? he whispered, pausing on the last stone step and watching her
body with narrowed eyes. She was panting like an animal, the motion all the
more grotesque because her body was still dead, and her lungs were
faltering, jerking and wheezing and echoing with the air forcing its way into
dead flesh.

Draco dropped onto the last stair, sitting there and watching his mother?s
body fight off her soul, his eyes wide. Every time she screamed, he fancied
he heard an echoing cry from his father, though of course he couldn?t, not so
many floors down. He?d flinch just the same.

He watched over her for a long time, minutes shifting into endless hours, as
he wondered numbly when the ritual had gone badly, when this torture had
started. He didn?t know how to finish it and probably didn?t have the power.

He sat there so long that the shadows began swaying strangely before his
glazed eyes, taking on strange shapes that would melt away whenever he
focused his eyes on them. That was why it took him a moment to react to the
feeling of eyes on him, and then he only reacted because the body of his
mother had stiffened, her eyes rolling in her head, her scream twisting into a
whimper. Then, her eyes rolled again, the whites rolling back to show her
irises for the first time. They were dilated and black, empty. And they were
fixed sightlessly on the far wall, much the way his father?s had been.

Draco followed her stare and narrowed his eyes, waiting for the shadow she
was watching to melt away.

It stepped forward instead, and smiled.

Draco rose slowly to his feet, his heart pounding, though he wasn?t afraid.
?You shouldn?t be here,? he said quietly.

?Draco,? was the reply, said in a soft, pleasant tone. ?Where else would I
be??

?In hell? It doesn?t matter to me. I don?t want you here, I don?t want you
near her.?

Voldemort glanced almost fondly at Narcissa?s body, and then back at


Draco. ?You said you didn?t understand.?
?When?? Draco asked dully, aware that he should be scared, or humbled. A
private audience with the Dark Lord himself, who wouldn?t be honoured?
But he wasn?t. Scared or honoured or anything, really.

?When you were standing over your father?s body. You said you didn?t
understand why he?d done this.?

?You were there.? It wasn?t a question.

Voldemort smiled. ?Where else would I be?? He stepped closer, studying


Draco in the thick shadows. ?Don?t you want to know, Draco??

Draco nodded, not because he particularly cared, but because he felt it was
expected of him, and Draco always strove to do what was expected of him.

Narcissa moaned; she seemed to have stopped writhing, and was now
shaking, her lips falling open, her eyelids fluttering weakly. Despite himself,
Draco got to his feet and stood over her, studying her. She?d always been so
beautiful to him, an ice queen, his own pretty, perfect mother. And now she
was a monster.

He reached out to touch her cold face and she flinched, lips wrinkling back
in an awful hiss.

?I want to know,? Draco said hollowly.

?He did it for you, Draco. Everything he?s ever done was for you.?

Draco shook his head, laughing harshly. There was a sick feeling in the pit
of his stomach as things started clicking together in his mind. ?What?s he
ever done for me?? Draco whispered defiantly.

Cocking his head to the side, Voldemort studied Draco in silence for a long
moment, an indulgent smile on his face. He reached forward and stroked one
finger down Draco?s face. ?Such a pretty boy,? he said softly, and Draco
jerked away.

?Don?t touch me,? he said, oddly shaken.

Voldemort just smiled. ?I?ll do whatever I like,? he said simply. ?Now that
your father?s gone. Or nearly. That was the arrangement, after all.?
?Arrangement,? Draco repeated heavily.

?Of course. You, in exchange for her.? Voldemort had turned back to
Narcissa?s mangled body, smiling down at her graciously. ?You were only a
child when the binding was done, I suspect you don?t remember.?

?The prophecy,? Draco realized, his eyes widening. ?You?re talking about
the dratted prophecy! You and everyone else in the world, it seems! That?s
ridiculous! I don?t believe in fate, and I certainly don?t believe that being
your ?disciple? or whatever is mine, so sod off. You can?t have me.?

Voldemort smiled again, showing his pointed teeth. ?But Draco,? he said
softly, his voice a warm hiss. ?You?re already mine.?

?What are you talking about?? Draco spat.

?Your father was just a boy himself when he made the arrangement, and his
pretty young wife was too weak to have a child. A family curse, I suppose,
weakness. You were killing her, your mother, and Lucius could tell. He
honestly loved her, then. And she was dying. He went a little mad and was
about to do something quite melodramatic and pathetic when I happened to
arrive on the scene. He?d been a follower of mine, you see, though not very
useful, and I strove to strengthen my power over him. An important man,
your father. And then there was the Malfoy Prophecy. Loyalty is what I
praise above all else, Draco.?

?Mother was dying and Father was going to kill himself. Over me.? Draco?s
voice was hollow, he was finding it hard to process.

?Patience, Draco. The story?s only half done. So I offered him a deal. I?d
save her life, and the life of the child she carried, if he?d give me a child. My
own stupid fault, I suppose, wording it that way. But he seized on that hope
and signed the life of his child away. Narcissa survived, and you were born.
Weak and sickly, of course, given your mother?s weakness, but still, alive.
The deal was that you would be mine upon his death. I had no use for you,
until he was gone and I needed you to take his place. His loyalty, I thought,
was assured. I had saved your life. He owed me his soul. He betrayed me, in
the end. He sought to keep you from me. Sought to make you weak so that I
wouldn?t want you.?

?What are you talking about??


?You were a sickly child, Draco. It was Narcissa who first realized why. He
poisoned you with small amounts of belladonna and ground cypress root, to
keep you weak, small, pale. So that I would not want you. It had been easy
enough to sign away the life of a baby he?d never seen, but to hand over his
beautiful little boy? Narcissa did not take it well, the poisoning, but then, she
didn?t know about the arrangement. She was furious and told others about it,
and I heard of it, and my wrath was, understandably, quite extreme. He was
punished, but he was still alive, so you were not mine yet. He came up with
another plan to keep you, however. ?Better a child he?d never met than his
baby dragon?, is what he said to me, in his one moment of defiance.?

?My father would have never ?? Draco began.

?I had said he had to give me ?his child? but had not specified which one. A
technicality, but truth all the same. He killed her for you, Draco. He knew
she couldn?t have another child, she should have died the first time. But he
did it for you. Maybe not on purpose. He wasn?t thinking clearly and only
sought a way to keep you, his first child. Maybe he didn?t kill her directly
for you, but indirectly, surely.?

Draco was shaken, and he was sure, if he had the time to process things,
he?d be shocked. As it was, he could only stare at his mother?s dead body
and force himself to breath steadily through his nose because allowing
himself to suffocate wouldn?t accomplish anything. ?He didn?t bring her
back because he wanted her,? he said out loud. ?He wanted the baby.?

?Yes. Because until a child is born, its soul is bound to the mother?s. He did
not have the necessary spell items to raise the dead child. The bits of hair he
pulled from Narcissa?s brush, or even the body, as it was still inside her,
anything of the child?s necessary for the ritual to be effective. So he tried to
bring her back, and the baby as well, so she could finish it.?

Draco?s eyes were drawn to his mother?s stomach, distended with wisps of
dusty funeral clothes draped over it. He hadn?t even thought about the baby.

?A girl,? Voldemort said gently, stroking Narcissa?s arm. ?It would have
been a little girl, had your mother been strong enough to survive it, your
father strong enough to finish this. A pretty little child, and she would have
been mine.?

?Don?t touch her,? Draco whispered, feeling sick.


?Instead,? Voldemort continued, ignoring him. ?He failed and the spell
backfired, sapped his strength and destroyed his mind. Three souls caught in
between death and life, all waiting for a wizard strong enough to finish it.?

?Finish it,? Draco growled. ?Stop it, she?s hurting, she?s not supposed to be
here, let her go.?

?Now that all depends, Draco, on you. I can finish it, easily. I can return her
to you.? As proof, he drew his wand from his pocket and whispered a spell
Draco didn?t catch, gently drawing Narcissa?s soul the rest of the way into
her body, easing the incredibly agony that had been tearing her apart.

Draco?s eyes widened with something like wonder when his mother?s body
relaxed, the horrible breathing calming into something weak, sporadic, but
soft, normal. Her gray face seemed to fill out around her skull, colour
blossoming there, like a flower, her lips their normal coral colour. Her hair,
while still tangled and dirty, was vibrant blonde again. Most miraculous of
all, her eyes closed slowly and, when they opened, they were a little glazed,
but their normal dark blue, sparkling, and wonderfully alive.

?Draco?? she whispered, voice raspy. Her hands, still shackled to the
platform, curled into weak claws.

?Mother,? he cried softly, touching her dusty face. It was warm.

?Nothing comes without a price,? Voldemort whispered behind him, his


breath stirring the hairs on the back of Draco?s neck.

Draco ignored him for the moment. Narcissa?s face twisted suddenly as an
interrupted contraction tore through her. When it had faced, she was panting,
whimpering. ?What?s happening?? she whimpered. ?Where?s Lucius??

Draco smiled reassuringly at her, even if his eyes had welled up with tears.
He took her hand, his other stroking her face soothingly. ?Shh, now,
Mother,? he scolded gently. ?Everything?s fine.?

?Then why are you crying?? she asked with a faint smile.

?Crying, Mother?? he teased her, very softly. ?You should know better than
most that Malfoys never cry.?
Her hand clenched around his with another contraction, and Draco closed his
eyes slowly. She was about to give birth to the baby that had killed her
months before: Draco?s sister.

?What do you want from me?? he asked over his shoulder, not tearing his
eyes from his mother?s face.

?What I?ve always wanted,? Voldemort replied almost lazily. ?Your loyalty.
You.?

?I?m not my father,? Draco whispered, even as he stroked his mother?s face.

?Are you sure?? It was silky, and very tempting.

?Yes. I won?t? I won?t give myself up to you. Not even? Not even for her.?

?But the child, Draco,? Voldemort hissed. ?Not even for the innocent child?
A beautiful little girl??

Draco closed his eyes. ?Not for anyone,? he lied.

Fury flashed in Voldemort?s eyes and growled, tightening a hand on his


wand as he began the complicated incantation to undo the spell Lucius had
begun and he had finished only moments before.

?I?m sorry, Mother,? Draco whispered, kissing her cheek.

?For what? What?s happening?? she asked, and he nuzzled her hand, still
shackled there. She stroked his face.

?Nothing,? he reassured her, his voice hoarse.

?Draco?? she whispered, eyes flying wide, breathing through her nose.
?Draco, what?s? what?s happening??

Her skin was slowly turning gray, sliding off her skull like silk or water,
until it was hanging limply again. Her breathing grew shaky once more, and
her eyes were twitching in their sockets, as though they longed to start
rolling again but force of will held them trained on Draco?s face.

The hand he still held in his became gaunt, skeletal.


?Nothing, Mother,? Draco lied, smiling reassuringly.

Voldemort finished the incantation in a hiss and Narcissa?s body convulsed


once as her soul was torn from it. Her lips pulled back in a shriek that
twisted in her throat and emerged as a hiss, her last breath leaking from her
dead lungs.

?Your father was linked to her, he?s gone as well,? Voldemort said
scathingly, sounding almost like Professor Snape, delivering a punishment
for a disappointing answer in class. ?Your weakness has cost you
everything.?

?My weakness?? Draco asked quietly, still staring at his mother. ?You?ve
got no idea about my weaknesses, and you never will. Get out of my house.?

?I can make you do as I say,? Voldemort hissed.

?You said it yourself, loyalty is the most important thing to you, and
Imperius will hardly make me want to follow you. What sort of loyalty is
that?? Draco spat, letting go of his mother?s hand. It had grown cold in a
second.

?You were always a foolish boy.?

?Maybe. But I?m not yours, so it shouldn?t matter to you. Get out of my
house.? Draco was so exhausted, he didn?t even wait to see if Voldemort
would go. He turned and walked out of the dungeons, feeling dirty and very,
very tired. More than anything, he wanted to be back at Hogwarts, curled up
beside Harry and fast asleep.

He walked into his bedroom, started a huge fire in the hearth to keep the
shadows away, and collapsed on his bed, falling asleep in his grimy clothes
without bothering to get under the covers.

His dreams, understandably, were very dark.

***

Waking was startling for Draco, whose nightmares had been the type that
grasp tightly and drive all remembrance out of the consciousness. One
moment he was terrorized, shadows dancing in his dreams, the next, his eyes
were opened and staring at the roof of his bedroom, his breathing ragged.

?Draco?? the voice was soft, pleading, and Draco?s entire body stiffened.

?Harry,? he hissed, sitting up and turning to stare at the other boy, whose
face was cast in darkness from the shadows flickering in the hearth. ?You
shouldn?t be here!?

Harry drew back, as if stung. ?Draco, I only? are you alright??

?How did you find me?? Draco slid off his bed and stalked to the fire,
throwing more wood in as if that would keep the things that threatened
Harry away. He was threatened by more than shadows, however, and Draco
was terrified.

?I can always find you,? Harry whispered.

Draco glared at him, and Harry sighed.

?Ron brought me here, on the knight bus. I knew which room was yours
because it?s the only one with a fire burning? I? I was worried.?

?You shouldn?t worry about me, don?t you get it?? Draco shouted, patience
running out. He spun around and glared at Harry. ?You don?t get it. You
shouldn?t be here! I don?t want you to be here!?

?I heard about your father,? Harry replied warily, trying not to look hurt.

?Well you didn?t hear all of it, all the nasty details, and hopefully you never
will,? Draco said grimly.

?Are you alright?? Harry had come closer, his eyes searching Draco?s face.
He reached up and touched his cheek gently. ?It must be so hard.?

Draco flinched and pushed Harry roughly away. ?Don?t touch me,? he
hissed. ?You don?t understand. You?ve got to leave, you?ve got to go, right
now.?

?Draco, I?m not going to leave you,? Harry swore. ?You need me.?
Narrowing his eyes, Draco took a deep breath. Better to hurt Harry and keep
him safe than to protect him now only to lose him later. It was panicky
reasoning at best, but the only thing he knew was that Harry needed to get
out, now. He closed his eyes and let his face relax into familiar, cold lines.
Then he drawled almost lazily, ?Honestly, Potter, need you? You?ve
certainly got a high opinion of yourself.?

Harry blinked. ?What?? He took a step back and Draco rolled his eyes.

?You thought I wanted you here? In the same house as my father?? He


laughed scornfully. ?You said so yourself, that I didn?t understand what it
was not to have a father and now I do. You should be glad.?

?Draco.?

?Harry.? His voice was heavy with loathing. The shadows were dancing in
the corners and Draco watched them carefully. Voldemort could be lurking,
after all, and he didn?t want him to know of Draco?s one weakness: Harry.

?Why are you doing this??

?Did you think it would last? That I?d choose you over everything my father
had built for me?? He laughed again. ?You?re mad. It was a game. The ink,
the journal, all of it. Amusing, but it grew old fast.?

?You?re lying.?

?Why would I lie to you, Potter? After all we?ve been through together?? He
smirked, openly mocking, even while flinching at the way Harry?s eyes
dilated with shock. Draco forcibly restrained himself from reaching out and
touching him, reassuring him. After all, there?d be time to explain, when
they were away from all of this and no one could hurt them. No one could
hurt Harry.

Harry breathed deeply through his nose, his lids half closed over dark green
eyes as he struggled to understand. Draco shoved him roughly towards the
door.

?Why?? Harry whimpered, his eyes shining unnaturally in the firelight.

?Someone made me a better offer,? Draco smirked.


?Voldemort.?

?Who else? Besides. I don?t want you anymore.?

?I ??

?Get out of here! Don?t ever come here again! Leave me be, I?m sick of
your? your glasses and your stupid green eyes and your messy hair and all of
you! The way you look at me, like you think I handed you the world and
then shattered it while you watch! I hate everything about you, I always
have! You think these months are enough to fight destiny? This is where I?m
meant to be, what I?m meant to do and nothing, not even loving the? the
taste of you?? he trailed off, swallowing, and then finishing firmly. ?Nothing
will change that.?

?If that?s the way you feel, Draco,? Harry said quietly, reaching for the door,
?then you don?t deserve me.?

He walked away without looking back. Had he glanced over his shoulder, he
would have seen Draco looking stricken and pale, but he didn?t, and the
door swung shut behind him.

***

Furious was a much safer way to feel than hurt, and that was the only reason
Harry didn?t cry. His eyes were stinging, of course, but with angry tears,
which was a thousand times better, he reasoned, as he stumbled almost
blindly towards the lower floors of Malfoy Mansion. A house elf had
answered his knock before and had let him in and he had made his own way
from there, and now, he couldn?t quite remember the way.

He glanced around, eyes narrowing, and looking for an elf to ask directions
from. There was no one and he kept walking, shaking his head from time to
time and mumbling out loud to himself. He?d wait until he was back at
Hogwarts to fall apart, however. Now was certainly not the time. He was
sure everything would make sense, once he was away from Draco with his
burning, furious eyes and his smug smirk that Harry recognized from years
and years of having it turned upon him. It had to make sense, some sort of
sense that escaped him at the moment, because there was no way he would
ever believe that Draco would hate him for that episode in his room that
morning, with Ron.
Then there was his father, and Harry had no idea what was going on with
that. What if Lucius had said something, something to change Draco?s
mind?

Dumbledore had been right, this wasn?t Harry?s world. He didn?t belong
here.

Harry had just made it to the entrance hall and was about to open the front
door, when the shadows behind him started to whisper and flicker.

It was dark, there were no torches lit here, and he turned slowly, eyes
narrowing. ?Hello?? he called. ?Draco??

Whispery laughter answered him and Harry?s stomach went cold in sudden
fear. He recognized that laughter. ?Voldemort.? He drew his wand quickly
and held it up in a defensive position, still searching the shadows for
Voldemort, eyes narrowed. He took a few steps forward, squinting into the
darkness.

?Where are you??

Laughter again, this time from behind him, and Harry spun. Voldemort was
standing by the door, watching him indulgently. ?Hello, Harry,? he said with
a smile.

?Get away from the door.?

?You?re hardly in a position to give orders, Harry.?

?Let me pass.?

?Harry.?

?I mean it!? All the wild emotions of the past few hours crashed upon Harry
and he started screaming. ?Let me through! I want nothing to do with you, I
didn?t come here to battle with you, I don?t want anything to do with you, so
let me pass!?

Voldemort just smiled, and before Harry had any idea of what to expect, the
dark wizard had drawn his wand, a snake-like flick of a wrist. Harry raised
his own in defence, but before he had time to say a single word, he was
cursed into darkness.

***

Draco went a little mad. It was all too much to deal with, honestly. The
death of his father, the raising and destroying of his mother, finding out the
reasons behind his father?s loyalty to Voldemort, speaking with Voldemort,
and then shouting at Harry. Hurting Harry.

Shouting with wordless fury, he kicked his wardrobe over, sending it


crashing to the ground, and still, the rage burned uncontrollably. He?d never
believed in fate, but apparently fate had a way of fucking you over whether
you believed in it or not.

By the time the hot anger had faded into something far more dull and
painful, Draco?s bedroom was in ruins. He?d destroyed the wardrobe, the
mirror, the bed, the paintings on the wall, torn the curtains from the window,
and only just barely managed to restrain himself from lighting the entire
mess on fire.

He was breathing heavily when he finally paused to survey the destruction,


feeling oddly satisfied and emptier than before.

Swearing softly, he made his way to the window, sitting in the alcove there
and staring blindly out at the grounds below.

It took a few seconds for it to register, and when it did, Draco nearly started
to cry.

There was a carriage parked on the street outside, Weasley just visible
inside, Harry nowhere in sight. He?d never made it out.

?He just got lost in the halls, that?s all,? Draco reassured himself. ?I suppose
it would be hard to find your way out if you hadn?t grown up here.?

He hurried from his room, calling Harry?s name. In all his panic, he forgot
his wand.

No one answered his calls and in the entrance hall, Draco found proof of
why. Harry?s wand was lying on the floor, forgotten; he?d made it this far
but something had prevented him from walking out the door and to
Weasley?s carriage?

Draco snarled furiously, picked up the wand, and stalked down the stairs
towards the dungeon.

The rage lasted only until his foot touched the stone floor and then it was
replaced by the coldest, darkest fear he?d ever known. His mother?s body
had been taken from the stone platform and was lying on the floor, her head
tilted awkwardly, her eyes glassy. On the platform in her place, Harry lay on
his back, his head tilted back and exposing his throat, his arms spread on
either side of him and hanging limply over the edges of the platform. His
eyes were closed, his face very, very pale, and his robes were soaked with
blood. The scent of blood lay heavily on the air, as did the mild aftertaste of
dark magic, and Draco approached Harry carefully.

?Harry?? he whispered, but Harry didn?t stir. ?Harry, it?s me. It?s Draco.
Wake up.? The words of the prophecy were whispering in the back of his
mind, over and over again, faster and faster, and the room was beginning to
spin.

A sacrificial dagger lay on the floor, a pattern of snakes carved into the
blade, stained with Harry?s blood.

?No,? Draco whispered, picking it up. It was cold. ?Harry.?

He?d seen enough ancient texts of rituals to know that the dark ones always
required blood, spilt with this type of dagger. Harry had been bled, had lost
too much blood? Draco had let Voldemort have him, had let Harry walk
right into him, alone, thinking that Draco didn?t love him anymore. ?No,? he
whimpered, gently lifting Harry?s arms and moving them closer to his body.
From her place on the floor, Narcissa?s dead eyes, glinting in the torchlight,
watched. He could feel those eyes on him and he started to panic. It was
startlingly similar to losing his mind.

Lying Harry?s wand beside him carefully, Draco tiled Harry?s head down
and tried to pull him up, into a seated position. ?You?ll be alright,? he said
brightly, pulling Harry?s limp body against his chest, wrapping his arms
around his shoulders. ?C?mon, Harry, you?ll be fine,? he repeated, voice
sharp, about to break. He kissed Harry?s forehead.
Harry?s head was lolling limply against Draco?s shoulder, and Draco?s
panicking mind lit upon a sudden, wild idea. ?He needs blood,? he
whispered, laying Harry gently back down. Without a thought, he slit his
own wrist and held it to Harry?s lips. His blood smeared on Harry?s face,
very little actually getting into his mouth, and Draco started breathing
quickly, hyperventilating.

?I won?t let you leave me,? he hissed, shaking him now. ?I won?t let you go.
Take mine. Take my blood, it?ll help you. You lost yours, have mine.? It
was flawed logic at best, but that didn?t occur to Draco. This entire situation
was fundamentally flawed. Harry wasn?t supposed to be hurt.

?That?s not going to help him,? Voldemort drawled from behind him.

Draco?s eyes narrowed but he didn?t listen, because he?d felt breath against
his arm, held to Harry?s mouth. Faint, weak, barely there, but there all the
same. He wasn?t dead. But he was so cold.

Harry?s chest shuttered with a cough, and Voldemort sighed, coming closer
and touching Draco?s shoulder, one finger stroking the side of his neck.
?You?re going to drown him, pet.?

?Don?t. Touch. Me.?

Voldemort leaned closer and whispered in his ear, ?Do you want him to
die??

Draco stiffened and pulled his wrist away, turning to look at Voldemort.
?You already took my mother and father as punishment, why are you doing
this to me??

?Draco,? Voldemort admonished. ?Not everything is about you. Besides,


you gave him to me.?

?I didn?t.?

?You didn?t want him, you told him so, you shouted it, up in your bedroom.
Why should I have had him if you didn?t want him??

?You were there.? Draco?s eyes widened in horror.


Voldemort smiled very slowly. ?Draco, I was always there. You think I
haven?t watched you? You were mine, you?ve always been mine, of course
I watched you. I?ve always watched you. When you fell in love with Harry
Potter, I watched you. You were hardly discreet about it and there are people
in Hogwarts who are loyal to me. And imagine, you loved him and still let
me take him.?

?I didn?t,? Draco whispered, eyes wide. ?I wouldn?t ever have hurt him. I
lied, of course I want him, I?ve always wanted him, if you watched the
whole time than you had to have known that. You know I?d never hurt him,
you know it!?

An indulgent smile twisted Voldemort?s lips. ?Of course I know it.?

Draco?s eyes widened and he glanced at his mother, dead and wooden on
the floor, and then at Harry, fighting to breathe. ?What do you want from
me?? he whispered.

?Surely you know,? Voldemort chided. ?What have I always wanted??

Draco closed his eyes and laid his head on Harry?s chest, listening to his
faltering heart. ?Me,? he said out loud, faintly.

?You?re already mine, I shouldn?t offer you anything in return for that.
However, I?m feeling remarkably generous today. I can stop the bleeding,
you know. Harry?s still bleeding. Would you like me to stop it??

?Yes.?

Voldemort took Harry?s wrist gently and stroked his finger down the bloody
underside, skimming over the precise knife wounds there, his other hand
fingering his wand as he whispered a healing spell. He did the other next,
and then almost tenderly lay his arms back on the stone slab. The smell of
burnt flesh filled the air; Voldemort had cauterized the wounds.

?He?ll live now,? Voldemort said casually. ?If I leave him be.?

?Will you?? It was too much to hope for, really, and Draco wished suddenly
he hadn?t left his wand in his room. Harry?s lay there, but even with his own
wand, Draco was no match for the Dark Lord.
?Do you want me to? After you gave him up and sent him away??

?Please,? Draco whispered, suddenly understanding how his father could


have begged Voldemort for anything. If it was important as all of this, Draco
would have begged anyone in the world.

?It could be arranged.?

?What did you do to him? The spell you used on him.?

?Your father taught you some of the dark spells, Draco, don?t you recognize
the markings on his arms??

Taking Harry?s hand and tracing the seared flesh on his wrists, markings
that enacted the ancient spell Voldemort had used. He did recognize them,
and he whispered, ?Is it painful? That spell??

?Very. But it doesn?t last long. He screamed, however. Quite weak, the boy
you chose to fall in love with, Draco. You wouldn?t have screamed.?

?Not for you,? Draco said quietly. ?What do you want from me??

?I need you,? Voldemort said, sounding businesslike. ?I?ve been studying


the ancient prophecies of the old families, in their original High Hakiran
form, the ancient language of the prophets, and I need you.?

??The bearer of light shall carry to the feet of the Serpent lord, a child. That
child shall deliver into the hands of the Dark One his own Destruction,
choose life over love, and become His loyalist disciple,?? Draco repeated
dully.

?A plebeian form of the prophecy, yes, but the idea is there. Besides. You?re
mine. I own you, I?ve come to claim you.?

?And if I let you have me, you?ll let him go??

?I will. And if you remain loyal to me, he will live. Loyalty that is achieved
through gifts and bribery is useless, Draco, because a higher bribe can
always be offered. Loyalty achieved by threats is the only true form because
it cannot be bought away.?
Draco stared at him blankly, unable to form a single word, let alone a
sentence.

?It?s true. If you?re ever disloyal to me in action, I?ll kill him without
remorse. If I die, so does he, so don?t even think about betraying me that
way. I?ve been trying to kill this stupid boy for seventeen years, it?ll be far
easier to keep him alive, you need not fear his death by my hand, so long as
you are true to me.?

?True to you. You want me to follow you, against my will, and think that it
would be true loyalty.?

?In action. I care not if you are loyal in your thoughts or heart, as long as
you act loyal, be loyal. Think whatever you like about me, say whatever you
like about me, I care not. Just do not betray me, and your precious Harry will
survive this with only a few more scars to show for it.?

Draco didn?t have to think about it. He?d lost his mother all over again and
some sister he?d never met tonight, as well as his father, who had done more
for him than he?d ever realized. He?d lost his family and maybe his mind as
well. He repeated the words of the damned prophecy in his mind again,
smiling a little, and leaning down towards Harry, not caring for the moment
that Voldemort was there, that he could see.

He traced Harry?s lips and breathed, ?Oh, Harry. Not for my life, I?d never
give it up for mine. For yours.? He stroked Harry?s face. ?We spent so long
trying to prove fate didn?t exist,? he whispered, and Harry shifted a little,
moaning softly. ?Wake up,? Draco called softly, nuzzling the side of
Harry?s face. ?C?mon, love, wake up.?

Harry?s eyelids fluttered open and his eyes, glazed with weakness, flickered
to Draco?s face. He smiled. ?I knew you?d come for me.?

?Of course I did. I will always come for you,? Draco scoffed, very gently.
He touched Harry?s face.

?I?m dead, Draco, I?m dead,? Harry whispered. ?It was Voldemort, he killed
me.?

Draco smiled soothingly. ?You?re not, he didn?t.?


Harry touched his face, fingers stained with his own blood. ?I knew you?d
come for me?? he said again.

?Of course,? Draco replied again, gathering Harry up against his chest. He
couldn?t help his eyes stinging with tears, and he hoped Harry wouldn?t
notice. Harry rested his head weakly on Draco?s shoulder and Draco forced
a soft laugh. ?There you go, trying to die on me again,? he teased, smoothing
his hand over Harry?s clammy face.

?I?m sleepy,? Harry mumbled.

?Sleep then, I?ll take care of you.?

?You?ll stay with me? You?ll stay here while I sleep??

?Yes,? he lied, kissing Harry?s forehead.

?I think this is a dream,? Harry said now, voice thick with sleep.

?What??

?This. Can?t be real. Maybe I did die and go to heaven, because I thought
you didn?t love me anymore??

Draco stiffened but didn?t say anything, just kept stroking him soothingly,
waiting for him to fall asleep again.

?This could be heaven,? Harry decided; he was smiling. ?I love you, you
know. I didn?t say it before.?

?I know,? Draco whispered.

?Alright. And you?ll be here when I wake up??

?Where else would I be??

?That?s right,? Harry mumbled, closing his eyes. ?Because this is heaven.?
And then he drifted back to sleep.

Voldemort was shaking with silent laughter, but Draco paid him no heed. He
smoothed Harry?s hair back and kissed his scar tenderly, before saying
coldly over his shoulder, ?I?m taking him out to his friend, I?ll be right
back.?

?Oh, feel free, this is most touching,? Voldemort mocked.

Draco ignored him and lifted Harry gently, tucking his wand in his robes.

He left Voldemort behind and carried Harry up the stairs, holding him
protectively. Harry didn?t wake, even as they left the manor and stepped into
the frigid night.

Weasley was sleeping in the carriage, and Draco rolled his eyes. He set
Harry carefully inside and touched his face gently, kissing him softly
goodbye. ?Not everything ends the way you think it should,? he said,
repeating the words Harry had said to him that night on the tower, the first
time he had let Draco know he remembered their first kiss. Then he smiled,
painfully. ?You?ll be alright, Harry. You?re stronger than me.?

The moonlight was dim and Harry?s blood nearly invisible in the darkness.
Draco was glad, that meant Weasley wouldn?t kill him for it, wouldn?t
notice it until they were back at Hogwarts.

He turned, shaking Weasley. As soon as the other boy was awake, he


snarled, ?Why did you bring him here??

Weasley blinked at him, startled. ?Malfoy? What? Where?s Harry?? He saw


him in the carriage then and looked relieved.

?Why did you bring him here?? Draco asked again, furious.

?For you,? Weasley replied blankly. ?Why else? He must be very tired,
sleeping that way.?

?He is,? Draco said absently, refusing to glance at Harry. ?Get him back to
Hogwarts, as fast as you can, and bring him to Dumbledore. Take? Take
care of him, alright??

?Of course? Malfoy, are you alright?? Weasley looked honestly worried.

?Fine,? Draco snapped. ?Just get him out of here.?


He stood up and turned to go, and Weasley caught his arm. ?Malfoy. I?m?
I?m sorry. About your father.?

Draco stared down at him for a long moment and then nodded. ?Thank you.?

?Will you be coming back soon??

?No.?

?What should I tell Harry, then??

?Tell him I love?Don?t? Don?t tell him anything.? Draco swallowed


heavily.

?Malfoy ??

?Get out of here! You never should have come here!? Draco snapped,
slamming the door.

He watched for a long time even after the carriage had faded away into the
darkness.

It's not like I'll inherit all the Earth if I destroy the meek
It's not that I am special
It's not that I'm indifferent
It's not that I'm cowardly or vain
It's not that I am angry
It's not that I'm violent
I don't objectify my pain
Oh, but I could break you if I wanted to

-?Broken?, Matt Caplan

Chapter thirteen

I think God made you wise


I think he made you crazy.
That's why you can only see what's underneath.
Who knows what you see in my eyes.
Now I'm gone and I've left you with memories
And they're fragile and fading
Like great ghostly entities.
And I swear if you listen, they're sending you energy.
You are not lost, you are not wrong.
You are not that which you most fear.
Tell your demons to disperse, they are not welcome here.
And if I miss you, and if we falter, we will rendezvous
Under the water.

"I swear, Draco, winter broke last night. It shattered, do you believe a
season can shatter? I didn't, but that was before everything. Now I know
anything can shatter? mirrors, seasons, ice on top of lakes cracked apart by
squids, even people. It's turning spring, I could feel it. That's what I meant,
about winter cracking. It's like ice, so tense, and then sometimes you can feel
it break. It'll be spring soon, I just thought you'd like to know? I've always
liked the spring. And I felt it crack through winter last night, sitting up on
our tower, and thought of you."

Harry smoothed his fingers along the edge of the parchment, staring off into
space. He couldn't sleep, he rarely did anymore, and his body was feeling the
strain of that. Rather disconnected, like he wasn't in it at all. His eyes looked
like bruises, dark, empty black pools, and his face was pale, and too thin. He
didn't much like eating, either.

"I hate you, I hate you so much you can't even comprehend. I want to beat
you and hurt you and make you bleed, make you scream, for doing this to
me. But then sometimes, like when I walk alone by the lake when it's cold
outside, I miss you so badly that it feels like I'm shattering too. Like the
winter, like the ice on the lake. Breaking into little pieces and there's no one
here to pick them up again because you left me. You promised you wouldn't
leave me. I hate you. I cannot help but hate you. I wish I could hate you.
God. I'm falling apart."

His quill was trembling too badly to finish the letter, and Harry carefully set
it aside, waiting for the ink to dry and then folding it, slipping it into a small
wooden chest on the table. It was already nearly full of letters, all unread,
untouched.

"Harry."
He was surprised, and exhaustion had made him jumpy. Harry leapt to his
feet and spun around. It was Hermione, in her white nightgown, her hair
wild around her, her eyes concerned. "It's late, Harry, why are you still up?"
She had known he would be, of course. He always was.

"Can't sleep," he said, relaxing a little.

She glanced from him to the quill and blank parchment on the table, beside
the small chest. "Who were you writing to?"

"No one."

She sighed. "Harry, won't you tell me what happened?"

Harry stiffened, face going even stonier than before. "No." He hadn't told
them, not a thing. What they had guessed, he had no idea, but he hadn't told
them what had happened, the night Ron had brought him back to Hogwarts
those weeks before, broken, bloody, and asleep. He hadn't wanted them to
know, because he hadn't sorted it out himself yet. He remembered going to
Draco, and Draco sending him away. And then Voldemort? He didn't
remember the rest clearly at all, and that was why he didn't sleep. His
dreams were plagued with shadowy remembrances, and he was terrified of
sleeping, terrified of reliving that.

The rest of the school had been told that Draco had transferred somewhere
else, and no one else questioned it. No one else except Hermione, Ron, and
Ginny, but Harry wouldn't tell them anything.

They were his riddles to decipher; Draco's riddles had always been his that
way. Everything about Draco had always been his.

Hermione had come closer now, and touched his face gently. "Harry," she
said, just as tenderly. "You've got to sleep. You're wasting away."

"Maybe that's how it should be," he replied distantly, a small smile


flickering over his lips.

"Of course it's not," she snapped. "I could kill him for doing this to you."

For the first time, Harry's gaze sharpened, coming to rest on her face, and a
hot sort of possessive fury burned there, turning his eyes from their empty
black back to vibrant green. "Doing what?" he snarled in a low, warning
tone.

"Hurting you," she said soothingly, stroking his face. "It's alright. Go to
sleep."

"I can't." The fury was gone and now there was only that same aching pain.
"I can't sleep, I have nightmares."

"I know," she whispered, hugging him. "I'll stay with you, if you like."

"Will you?" The prospect of someone there, even if only Hermione, to wake
him if his nightmares started again, made Harry shake in relief. He was so
tired.

"Of course," she said, taking his wrist and tugging him back up the stairs to
his dorm. Everyone else was sleeping, it was late, and she waited patiently
while Harry carefully put the small chest in his trunk, stripped to his boxers,
and crawled into his bed. It had been this way at least once a week since
she'd returned from Christmas Holidays, and she was glad that there was
something she could do, even if it meant being so tired that she could hardly
focus on her studies. Her grades were slipping, but she didn't care. Even
class wasn't so much a priority anymore, because she was terrified that
Harry was slipping away from them all.

She smoothed Harry's blanket up to his chin, ignoring him when he


protested that he wasn't a child. "Sleep, Harry, I'll wake you if you start to
dream," she said softly, so as not to wake anyone else in the room.

Harry smiled at her and closed his eyes. Pulling his glasses off and setting
them aside, Hermione curled up on the chair beside his bed and waited for
him to fall asleep. It would only be an hour or so until the dreams would
start, but an hour was better than nothing, and she would be here when they
did.

Falling asleep quickly, Harry slept peacefully for the first little while, and
Hermione shivered in her chair, staring out the window. The snow was
melting quickly, it was almost spring, and she was wearily glad. It had been
weeks since Harry had come back to them broken, and surely time would
heal him.
He just seemed to be fading more and more away, however.

She sighed and rested her head on her arm, closing her eyes.

An hour later, when Harry started to whimper in his sleep, she was there to
wake him.

***

Saturday found Harry in the library, in the back, darkest table (sometimes
when he closed his eyes, he could almost swear he could smell the faint
scent of cherries), with piles of books all around him. He spent most of his
time either in class, or here, researching. He didn't even know what he was
looking for, he hardly remembered what had happened after Voldemort had
taken him and Draco had left him. But he wanted an explanation, and if he
couldn't get one for why Draco had chosen Voldemort over him, he'd get one
for what, exactly, Voldemort had done to him.

All he remembered, though sometimes his dreams showed flashes of other


things that had happened that night, were some hazy, cloudy images, of
Voldemort, and a knife, and a few words, chanted in a soft, hissing voice,
another language. And the pain, of course, but that had come and gone, like
consciousness. Then there was that strange echo inside himself, almost as if
he wasn't all here, but somewhere else, and if he closed his eyes, he could
almost see it, this other place where the rest of him was. It frightened him
and he didn't much like trying.

And then, most vivid in his mind, was Draco's face, very near, and
whispering.

"C'mon, love, wake up."

"I knew you'd come for me."

"Of course I did. I will always come for you?"

But that, of course, had all been a dream. It could be nothing more, there was
no other explanation. Draco had gone home, been reminded of his loyalties,
lost his father, and hadn't wanted Harry anymore.
And researching whatever Voldemort had done to him was the only thing
that kept Harry from considering that too closely and shattering.

Exhaustion had taken its toll on Harry, and that Saturday, alone in the library
with no one to wake him, the dreams returned, and he lay helpless, his head
pillowed on a stack of books.

In the dream, Draco was sitting before him, holding a knife with snakes
carved into the blade. "It's not worth doing if you don't cut deep enough to
make it bleed," Draco said, scoffing. He reached out and took Harry's hand
and Harry glanced down; there was a trail of blood there, a tiny, bare trail.

"I did draw blood," he replied.

"Not enough. Never enough." And then Draco touched the cold blade to his
hand and slid it upwards, to his wrist, turning as he did. He slipped the tip of
the dagger into Harry's skin (it went in as easily as a knife into butter, or
Draco into Harry) and then it was like painting a delicate painting you've
painted a thousand times before. Every move was precise and deliberate and
yet done with careless ease, as if every line had been memorized. And it was
only after the whole thing was done that it started to bleed, blood welling up
from a lattice of cuts, running hot and red down his arm. Harry looked up.

"It is enough?" he whispered.

"Never for me," Draco replied casually, before dropping the knife (snakes
writhed with the flickering of light over the blade as it fell) and getting to his
knees. "He's coming for you, Harry, are you ready?"

"Who? Who's coming?"

But Draco's face had begun to shift and the blood on his arm was stinging.
Draco's face became longer, sharper, more classically handsome and less
artistically beautiful. His eyes though, his eyes turned a strange purple and
then finally red. He had become Voldemort, and when he spoke, his voice
was a strange mixture of both Draco and Voldemort. He spoke in a tongue
Harry had never heard. "Arr Unda ra teguan. Nayala Heath Na."

And then the blood on his arms began to burn like a fire and Harry fell back,
arching his hips and tilting his head back, screaming. In and out of
consciousness, awareness flickering like a candle flame, and each time he
opened his eyes, Voldemort stood over him, soothing him, petting him.

And then finally the pain faded and Harry opened his eyes, even in the
dream, feeling weak.

Draco sat before him, and leaned close, as if about to share a secret. "Arr
Unda ra teguan. Nayala Heath Na," he whispered.

And Harry woke up with the seared scars on his wrists aching.

His face was damp with sweat, his eyes felt burnt, and he was trembling as
he sat up and ran two shaky hands through his hair. He'd had that dream
before.

"It's pointless," he moaned out loud, burying his face in his hands. He'd been
basically flipping through random spell books looking for a ritual that
involved blood, snake daggers, and strange incantations. He was getting
nowhere.

Breathing heavily, he closed his eyes, whispering, "Arr Unda ra teguan.


Nayala Heath Na? What is that?" Those words had been in every dream and
he'd never considered them much more than random gibberish. Now he
wasn't so sure.

Eyes narrowed, he left his table and went to the language section, having
previously only been searching in the Dark Arts section. He quickly scanned
the titles, most of which were dictionaries and English manuals and, on the
last shelf, found a book simply called Translations. Harry pulled it out and
returned to his desk, opening it. The pages were blank and he was reminded
of Tom Riddle's diary.

Then, at the front of the book was a single word, written over and over in
hundreds of different languages. "Speak."

"Alright," he said out loud, rather bewildered.

Instantly, the book fluttered open and ?Alright' appeared on one of the blank
pages. Then slowly, as though someone were writing, these words followed:
?English. In agreement with. French: d'accord. Bulgarian: ?epeh. Spanish:
de acuerdo. Italian: bene. Latin: bene habet.'
"Enough!" Harry snapped, and the writing stopped accommodatingly, stayed
for about thirty seconds, and then faded away.

Licking his lips, Harry whispered, "Arr Unda ra teguan. Nayala Heath Na."

There was a long pause and Harry felt almost as if the book was hesitating,
not wanting to translate it. But then, finally, the words slowly appeared.
They disappeared much faster than the other, but he still had time to read the
results.

?High Hakiran. In the tongues of the ancients be warned. You Are Mine.'

It didn't bother to go into any more detail, or if it did, Harry didn't watch
long enough to find out. He slammed the book shut and hurried back to the
language section, searching quickly and finding a book on High Hakiran in
the back. He pulled it out and read flipped through it.

?The ancient language of the wizarding race, High Hakiran is the language
prophecy was first spoken in and can be found in its purest form. Also used
in higher level and ancient rituals, any word spoken in this language carries
with it an ancient sort of binding magic, explaining why it was used in
prophecy. There is some doubt as to whether or not it was the prophecy itself
that bound mankind to its fate, or the language in which it was spoken. A
dead language, it has fallen into the shadows of myth and is rarely spoken
any longer, let alone understood.'

"Shadows of myth," he murmured out loud, deep in thought. "Binding


magic." He shook his head. "I don't understand."

He turned his arm over and studied the scars there, identical on either wrist,
both symmetrical designs that made no sense either. It would drive him mad,
these riddles.

He pushed the books away, growling under his breath in frustration. He


picked up a quill and began writing, because the only thing that kept him
sane anymore was this writing. It was just like before, with the journal,
except? except Draco never wrote back. It was still a way, however weak, to
be connected to him. Even if Draco had chosen his family and Voldemort
over Harry, Harry was defiantly holding onto him.
It was obsessive, he knew, and not doing much towards helping him get over
Draco. But he still did it, at least once a day, folding the letters and putting
them in the chest, never looking at them again.

"I feel like I'm walking on the blade of a knife. There's something twisted
inside of me and it's like, if I close my eyes, I can feel?something. Something
dark and shadowy and far away, but something all the same. Sometimes I
pretend it's you. That you've somehow left a part of you behind, in my mind.
And that if I whisper very, very softly (sometimes the softest whisper can be
heard far better than angry screaming because you'd rather hear the
whisper), you'll hear me. You'll feel me. You'll remember. Because I'm sure
you've forgotten. Everything. But I don't whisper, because I'd rather sorta
believe it's you than find out for sure that it's just me. And I've gone mad."

He slipped that letter in with all the others and closed his eyes, thinking
hard. "What have you done to me?" he mumbled, tracing the marks on his
arms. They itched sometimes, like they had insects climbing on them. He
scratched idly, picking up the small chest of letters and leaving the library,
still scratching.

He was distracted, automatically walking back towards Gryffindor Tower,


lost in thought. He didn't even see Snape come up the stairs leading from the
dungeons and walked right into him.

"Clumsy," Snape snapped, shoving Potter away from him. He stumbled and
Snape was about to take house points from Gryffindor for nearly pushing a
professor down the stairs when he noticed Harry scratching his wrist, and his
eyes traced the scars there. When Weasley had come back in the middle of
the night with Potter bloody and weak in that carriage, everyone had
wondered what had happened, of course. Dumbledore hadn't said a word
about it to anyone, punished Weasley severely for taking Potter off the
grounds and let Potter himself off relatively unscathed (apparently nearly
bleeding to death was punishment enough for disobeying the headmaster,
though Snape disagreed). He'd been incredibly curious ever since that,
especially considering that he'd lost his favourite student that same night.
Surely the incidents were connected.

Snape grabbed Harry's hand and pushed his sleeve up the rest of the way,
studying the scars. Then he started to laugh. "Don't tell me that boy was
foolish enough to mark you," he sneered.
Harry looked away and swallowed heavily, his face slowly flushing. "It
wasn't him."

Instantly looking suspicious, Snape studied his face. "Then who?"

His eyes were drawn down to Snape's left arm almost involuntarily, but
nonetheless as if he could see the Dark Mark through his robes. "Who gave
you yours?" he whispered spitefully, snatching his arm back.

Snape's eyes narrowed and he grabbed Harry roughly by the arm and pulled
him downstairs, into the dungeons, and then into his office. "Do you have
any idea what it means?" he ranted as Harry stumbled along behind him.

"I tried to research it," Harry stammered, nervousness inspired by Snape's


reaction. "But I couldn't find ?"

They were in Snape's office now and Snape was going through his
bookshelves, slamming a few texts onto his desk. "In ancient Egypt,
marriage, especially for pharaohs, was forever, in every sense of the word.
When a king died, to ease his life in the underworld, his wife, servants, and
even pets would be killed to journey with him. Marriage consisted of a
binding ritual in which the pharaoh's intended would be bound to him in
blood. The pharaoh would perform the spell, because the blood must be spilt
by his hands, stain his hands. And then they'd be bound, unbreakable even
through death. If he should die, she'd die simultaneously. If she should do
something worthy of punishment, he could kill her with a thought. A
pharaoh could not have a weak-willed wife disobeying him when he had so
many other things to attend to."

Harry's eyes widened with dawning realization. "But if she died, wouldn't
the pharaoh die as well?"

"Of course not. A pharaoh's life was worth a thousand wives, he would
never trust it to her weak handling. It was a one-way binding spell. Don't
even think that if you killed yourself now, all our problems would be solved.
Voldemort never would have bound you to him if it was that simple. What I
don't understand is why he did this and didn't just kill you outright when he
obviously had the chance."

Harry swallowed, his stomach tightening, as even more understanding


suddenly hit him. He wasn't sure he could speak, he wasn't even sure he
remembered how to breathe, but he managed to whisper, "Because it wasn't
me he wanted."

Snape sneered. "He's always wanted you."

"Wanted to hurt me, punish me, and what better way than this? I'm so blind,
shit." He was trembling, his chest heaving almost as if he were about to
vomit, though he didn't think he had the energy for that. He didn't even have
the energy to cry, let alone care about cursing in front of his professor.

"What are you talking about, Potter?" Snape growled. "It can't be that bad; if
he wanted you dead, you'd be dead by now. He bound you to him, he always
knows where you are now, he can feel you, just as you can feel him, I'd
imagine."

"I never wanted to," Harry whispered weakly. "There? I knew there was
someone else in my head but I thought it was? I thought it was Draco. I
didn't? I don't? Oh god."

Snape glared at him. "Potter. Honestly. Calm yourself, you're giving me a


headache. What are you talking about?"

"Is there anyway to break the spell?"

"No."

Harry nodded slowly, eyes glazed as he thought through everything very


quickly. "There wouldn't be," he said absently. "So if he dies, I die as well."

"Yes."

Laughing hysterically, Harry said, "That's ironic. Isn't that ironic? I mean, if
you think about it, it was me. I delivered Draco to him. I? Oh fuck." He was
suddenly choking.

"Potter!" Snape snapped. "You're not making sense! Stop crying, for the
love of Merlin!"

Harry lurched for the door. He was sobbing but tears wouldn't come, and
Snape shouted something after him, but Harry didn't listen. Still clutching
his chest of letters to Draco, he ran to Gryffindor tower, slammed up the
stairs and into his room, threw himself onto his bed and pulled the curtains.

Draco hadn't done it because he hadn't loved him. Hadn't done it because he
wanted to. He had done it for Harry. Because Voldemort had known that
Harry was his weakness and used it against him. Harry was only alive now
because Draco had given himself to Voldemort. It was Harry's fault. And
he'd just left him there. Gone back to Hogwarts, hating Draco for betraying
him, letting Voldemort have him, not even fighting? Which had been, of
course, Draco's intention.

Harry whimpered softly, his entire body trembling.

He thought about it for a long time, repeating both the words of the prophecy
and the words from the spell, over and over, considering everything. There
was only one thing to be done, however. No cure for the binding. No way to
get Draco out.

"This is what it's come to then," he whispered out loud, a strange sort of
reckless calm falling over him. He wasn't shaking anymore.

He took out a piece of parchment and began to write another letter, this one
to Hermione and Ron.

"I don't want this to be one of those ?legend says' sort of things that
everyone talks about, because no matter the outcome, it isn't something
worth repeating. This is what I'm doing and these are the selfish reasons I'm
doing it. You've both been the best friends I've ever had and deserve to know
what happened and how it came to this, and this is the whole story. Tell
whomever you like, it hardly matters anymore, or it won't, by the time you
read this?"

He told them the whole story. The journal and the Gobbler's ink, both
properties of it, the breaking of that spell, the prophecy, everything. All he
left out were a few of the more intimate things, as he didn't want to offend
Ron's delicate sensibilities on that subject, as well as they were his and
Draco's, private and personal.

Ending with a note to explain things to Ginny and tell Mr. And Mrs.
Weasley that he'd be alright, he carefully folded the letter and set it aside. It
was nearly dawn, he'd written all night.
Then, shaking again, he took one last piece of parchment and wrote another
letter to Draco, folding this one and putting it in the chest. He gathered up
his cloak and glanced around his dorm room one more time, studying Ron
for a moment, before going down to the common room, through the portrait,
and up to the owlery.

He tied the letter to Hermione and Ron to Hedwig's leg and whispered,
"Give it to them after I've gone," before kissing the top of her head, letting
her nip him affectionately.

He left the castle with only his cloak, his broom, and his small chest of
letters.

***

Draco had forgotten all about Harry and the way he tasted like something
definitively Harry that reminded Draco of sugar and cool winter nights and
the way he smelled of earth and grass, like he'd just fallen off his broom in
Quidditch. Not to mention the way his eyes lit up whenever Draco walked
into the room, and the way his smile turned a little shy when Draco touched
him. He had forgotten the way Harry laughed, like he was trying not to but
simply couldn't help it, the way he slept with one hand tucked under his
cheek, the way his hair always fell over his forehead and almost managed to
cover his scar. He had forgotten all about it. Really, he had.

Or he should have. He had tried. Sometimes he managed not to dwell on it;


after all, memories were meant to be forgotten. But whenever he managed
not to dwell on those things, other things invariably came to mind, like the
way his eyes widened and his breathing turned shaky when Draco was inside
him, all over him, anything that involved any touching at all, really. The way
his eyes changed from emerald to something deeper and darker just before
they slid shut and?

So, in short, Draco was driving himself mad with remembrances. He had
tried, it had been weeks, after all, but he had decided wistfully that being like
that with Harry Potter was something no one could ever forget, least of all
him, and had almost given up on ever forgetting. He'd lost his heart to Harry,
his soul to Voldemort, his mind to both and nothing would ever change that
and he'd never see Harry again.
Understanding it was easy. Accepting it was another matter entirely because
sometimes he still woke up at night panting and reaching for Harry, who was
never there.

During the day it was easier, pretending to be hollow, not to long for things
he never should have longed for anyway. He'd known it would come to
something like this.

He was only thankful that circumstances had made it easier than it could
have been, being Voldemort's ?loyal disciple' and all. Shortly after Draco's
father had died, Voldemort had finally figured out there was a spy among
the ranks of Death Eaters and gone into hiding until the spy could be drawn
out, taking only Draco with him, as he hardly wanted to risk losing the
possession he had sought for years.

So it had been rather anticlimactic, giving himself to Voldemort in an


attempt to save Harry's life. He had almost expected to be sent out killing
and maiming right away, and instead had languished in a small wooden
house in the outskirts of some little English town, with a lovely garden and
stray dogs that were always looking for scraps of food and willing to be
Draco's friends should he supply them.

In fact, had he not missed Harry more than he would miss his arm or his leg
or any other body part that could have been removed, it would have
probably been the most relaxing, albeit lonely, time of Draco's life.
Voldemort was intent upon gently persuading Draco to agree with him on all
his plans and ideas, content to be patient now that he had something he knew
Draco would never risk losing. So there were odd times in which he was
required to sit with Voldemort and piles of old texts, while Voldemort
explained the ideology behind prophecy and the eventual outcome of
Draco's fate.

Draco had never believed in fate, found prophecy rather dull, but had
nodded his head like an agreeable puppet because it was what was expected
of him and it kept Harry safe.

Sometimes, in the middle of the night, after he remembered why Harry


wasn't there, he'd lay awake with wide eyes and feel almost?guiltily thrilled.
Because he had the power to do something not even Dumbledore could do.
Protect Harry.
After the first month or so, Voldemort had backed off, content that Draco
was his and would not betray him, had been sufficiently brainwashed
without even the expenditure of energy that would have resulted from any
charm or Unforgivable Curse that would have led to his unconditional
obedience. After all, he knew his cause was just, his ideals pure, anyone who
ever had the drive to take their cause as far as Voldemort had didn't do it
because they liked being evil. They did it because they thought they were
right.

And of course Voldemort had convinced Draco of this. After all, the boy
was young, and the young are always easily swayed. Loyalty in the young
could be bought with sweet words and promises of infinite power.

After all, it had worked on little Tom Riddle, hadn't it? He'd given up his
own soul for power, why shouldn't Draco do the same?

He had even explained in rather plebeian terms, he was sure, why exactly it
wasn't that Voldemort wanted Draco. It was that he needed him. And surely
the boy understood need and therefore forgave Voldemort for the extreme
actions he had taken in convincing him. Surely.

Voldemort wasn't stupid. One didn't get to be a major threat to the freedom
of the wizarding world by being stupid. He had everything figured out,
everything that was in his power to comprehend: logic, intelligence, reason,
the rules of war (which were always broken by the ?dark' side and followed
by the ?light' side). The only thing he really didn't comprehend was that
some things aren't controlled by logic or reason or any of it. Some things
weren't controlled at all. Wild and natural, like a thunderstorm or an
earthquake. That was the nature of Draco's love for Harry, something
Voldemort couldn't understand because he had given up his own capacity for
love years before.

And so he was content, after explaining to the Malfoy boy the nature of
prophecy, that Draco was, if not eager for his fate, at least resigned to it.

It had been during the first few weeks, when Draco's eyes were dark and
wide, very empty, and he didn't seem to be listening to a single thing that
Voldemort said. Voldemort had changed tactics, becoming gentle,
reasonable, appealing to the intelligence he knew the boy had somewhere
inside him. Malfoys were known for their intelligence.
"There's a fine art to prophecies, Draco. They're never as simple as a telling
of the future, because the future is never set in stone. One common
destination and a thousand paths to arrive at it. Prophecies never tell of the
final destination, only of a fork in the road on the journey to it. Your family
prophecy was told so long ago, translated from ancient languages to English,
and in the translation, a fork was forgotten. Half of the prophecy was lost,
but I went back and found the original telling of it in an ancient text and
translated it all very carefully, discovering the forgotten fork. The original
prophecy said that you would be my loyal servant ?"

He missed Draco's soft snort of derision, did not even pause to wonder if it
was due to the fact that he'd mentioned ?loyalty' or called Draco a servant.

"But the rest of the prophecy was this: Without the devotion of the child of
light, the Dark Lord will burn. Something to that effect. So you see, Draco, it
isn't just that I wanted you. I needed you."

He didn't know that Draco scoffed at prophecy, fate, all of it. That the only
thing that had any meaning to Draco at all anymore was Harry, and by
putting Harry in danger, Voldemort had firmly pushed Draco off the fence
he'd been happily balancing on and straight onto the side that firmly opposed
him.

However, Voldemort had always misunderstood the Malfoys and their


loyalties to him. He'd always taken Lucius' dark, terrified eyes to mean that
he was loyal, never even suspected him of deliberately keeping Draco to
himself. Just as now, he took Draco's quiet obedience for dedication, loyalty.

Love was something Tom Riddle, whatever part of him still existed inside
Lord Voldemort, had forgotten how to understand, or maybe had never
known. Who needed love, really, when the world belonged to you?

But every day Draco faded, just a little bit more. And sometimes, in the
middle of the night, wide-eyed and so lonely that it hurt, after he'd
instinctively reached for Harry, Draco was so sure that, if he closed his eyes
and thought really, really hard, he could find Harry there, touch him, talk to
him, because surely Harry couldn't be that far away, surely. It felt like he
was close, like he was a part of Draco, still inside him, that he'd never left.

Which was how Draco knew he'd lost his mind. Talking to invisible Harrys,
lying alone at night missing him, talking to stray dogs, being Voldemort's
pet? It was disgusting. It was everything he'd never wanted to become. It
was? so empty that sometimes he wanted to cry.

But he didn't, of course. Because his father never cried and he owed his
father that at least.

Things had blurred into a sort of morbidly boring routine for Draco, and the
one thing that finally broke him out of it and made him actually take notice
of something was when it started to rain one night, while he was out tossing
scraps of food to one of the stray dogs.

When the first drop hit him, his eyes narrowed in annoyance. Tossing
another scrap, he glanced up at the sky, which was rolling with dark clouds.
The snow had been melting rapidly in the last few weeks but he hadn't
noticed, and now it was only a few splotches on the ground. It had turned
springtime and he hadn't even noticed.

The rain didn't annoy him any longer. A few more drops fell and hit him,
and he just turned his face up to it, closing his eyes. Harry liked rain, he
remembered. Springtime and rain and clover.

That night, his dreams of Harry were more intense, wilder, more vivid, and
he woke up with a moan caught in the back of his throat. His eyes widened
and he caught his breath.

For one long, long moment, he didn't move, didn't blink, afraid that it was a
dream, but even more, he was terrified that it was real.

Harry was kneeling there, watching him with shadowed eyes.

Chapter Fourteen

***
Dear my love, haven't you wanted to be with me
and dear my love, haven't you longed to be free
I can't keep pretending that I don't even know you
and at sweet night, you are my own
take my hand
we're leaving here tonight?
***
It had been relatively easy for Harry to find Voldemort, after he understood
the way the binding had worked. That feeling he?d had since he?d come
back from Malfoy Manor, that there was someone else in his head? That
hadn?t been madness and it hadn?t been Draco. It had been Voldemort, in
his mind, violating that as fully as he?d violated everything else of Harry?s.
Harry just had to close his eyes and reach out for that thread of connection to
know where Voldemort was, like the homing instinct of a bird. He took his
broom and flew for hours, south. The further he flew, the milder the weather
grew, the less snow spotted the ground below, and when he finally arrived at
the small English village he just knew Voldemort was hiding in, there was
barely any snow left at all. If winter had just broken into spring at Hogwarts,
it had been spring for at least a week here.

It was raining, and he was already soaked when he landed his broom and
gazed calmly at the small house on the edge of town. It was modest for
Voldemort?s standards, and Harry wondered idly why Voldemort would
choose lodgings like these. A house meant to blend into a village, draw no
notice. He knew that Voldemort was there all the same, he could feel it. His
skin was tingling with heightened awareness, the scar on his forehead ached,
the scars on his wrists itched. Voldemort was there.

He dropped his broom in the grass outside of the house and, still holding the
chest of letters, walked up to the door. He could feel the security charms and
curses pressing against him as he walked, brushing against him, like another
layer of skin, snakeskin, but he didn?t pause. He was Voldemort?s now,
Voldemort had marked him. The spells would not harm him and he knew it.

The locking charms on the door would not keep him out either. He was of
Voldemort now. They fell open as easily for him as they did for Voldemort
himself. Harry walked into the house unchallenged.

Unsure of himself now, Harry paused and glanced around before walking
nervously towards the staircase.

The house was silent and he wondered idly if Dark Lords slept. Confident
that he was well protected in this house surrounded by nasty security
charms, he probably slept very well indeed.

Harry sneered as he made his way up the stairs. Voldemort wasn?t his
primary concern, he had to make sure Draco was alright, if he was even
here.
He probably should have questioned how he knew exactly which room to
find Draco in and that he wasn?t quite sure where Voldemort was, but Harry
didn?t. All he cared about was that Draco was there, he knew he was there,
he was alive, and Harry was about to see him for the first time since that
night at Malfoy Manor.

Opening the door silently and slipping into the dark room, his eyes
immediately focused on the bed. Soft, hazy silver moonlight filtered through
dark rain clouds that obscured the stars, spilt across the floor in puddles, and
up unto the bed as well.

Draco lay there, sleeping, and Harry started trembling. He knew what a light
sleeper Draco was and didn?t want to wake him just yet, so he silently made
his way to the bed, dropping to his knees beside it.

He looked well enough. Draco?s face was still recognizable, pale, though he
looked even thinner than he had before. His hair was a little longer and
almost messy, as if he?d stopped caring what it looked like. The quilt was
tangled around his hips, his chest bare, and one of his hands was resting on
his stomach, the other stretched out beside him, as though he were reaching
for something. He was breathing deeply, his eyelids fluttering as he
dreamed.

Harry wanted to touch him, just to be sure that he was real. Hardly daring to
breathe for fear of waking him, Harry didn?t dare touch him. He just wanted
to watch him, because this had to last forever, it was all they?d have.

Draco could have been mistaken for dead, but for the rise and fall of his
chest, his soft breathing, and Harry?s eyes narrowed carefully as he watched
him, wanting to memorize the way the silver moonlight touched him, the
way his eyelashes lay against his pale skin.

With a low whimper, Draco sucked in a deep breath, shifting restlessly, and
Harry wondered if he was having a nightmare, and had just resolved to wake
him, when Draco?s eyes flew open and locked on his face, a dark, hungry
sort of look in them that was quickly overcome by panic.

The first look registered more with Harry, he knew that look. That fierce sort
of possessive darkness, the heavy breathing, he recognized it because he?d
had the same look in his eyes every time he?d woken up from a dream of
Draco. The same look Draco had had every time he wanted Harry, was
touching or kissing Harry.

Not a nightmare after all, then.

Draco opened his mouth to speak, probably to swear or curse, and Harry
grinned recklessly and fell onto the bed, half on top of him, and kissing him,
hard, distracting him from the questions and accusations he knew were
coming.

Harry kissed him for a long time, possessively, almost angrily, weeks of fury
and frustration taking their toll. Moaning, Draco kissed him back, his fingers
tangling in Harry?s hair, his breathing so heavy that Harry feared he was
going to pass out. He ran his trembling hands over Draco?s face, through his
hair, over his shoulders, tracing the ridges of muscles on his chest and belly
that he?d memorized but hadn?t touched in weeks. Draco didn?t caress him,
he just held him close, desperately kissing him back, his heart pounding
erratically.

Pulling back finally, panting, Harry breathed, ?I missed you.?

Draco?s eyes flew open, dark and aching. He pushed at Harry?s chest
suddenly, panicking. ?What are you doing here?? he hissed, sitting up and
running a hand through his hair.

?Where else should I be?? Harry asked indulgently, tracing Draco?s


features.

?I hate you,? Draco lied weakly.

Harry smiled. ?You think I?ll fall for that again? How stupid do you think I
am? You couldn?t hate me anymore than you hate yourself.?

His eyes were closed again and Draco was shaking. ?You?ve got to get out
of here, Harry, it isn?t safe. Why did you even come here, you should have
stayed where you were safe!?

?I came because you?re mine, Draco, and he can?t have you.?

?Sometimes you don?t get a choice in the matter!?


?I?m sick of people telling me to lie back and let fate take care of
everything. All my life I have, Draco, until you. You don?t expect me to
start again now, do you? I know why you?re doing this, I know what spell he
used on me, and I?m not letting me be the thing that forces you into this, that
destroys you. I?m not your weakness, Draco, I refuse to be. I will not leave
you here with him.?

?What are you going to do?? Draco whispered. His anger was gone, replaced
by an intense fear, like nothing he?d ever felt before. ?Please, Harry, just
go.?

?I?m going to kill him.?

?You can?t, Harry. You think if it was that easy, he wouldn?t be dead
already? Besides, if? if he dies, so do you.?

?If I die,? Harry said quietly, solemnly taking Draco?s hand and holding it
firmly. ?You?re free.?

Draco flinched. ?No.?

?One of us has to die, Draco, to end this. I?m not playing by his rules
anymore. Don?t make it both of us,? Harry begged. ?This is the way it?s got
to be.?

?It?s always been both of us! All or nothing, Harry, you know that. How
would I live without you??

?You will, Draco, I promise you will. You?re strong.?

?Not as strong as you. Don?t leave me.?

?You left me. That night at your house, you left me. You didn?t even
explain??

?I let you go. There?s a difference. It was for your own good.? Draco kissed
him desperately.

Rage at himself for not realizing everything sooner, fury at Draco for letting
him go, trying to protect him, tore through Harry, and he hissed, ?If you
ever, ever, do anything like that, for my own good, ever again, Draco, I
swear?? Up until now, his face and tone had been furious. A devilish glint lit
up his eye and a slow smile spread across Harry?s lips. ?I?ll never shag you
again.?

?Don?t you get it? I can do what they can?t. I can keep you safe! The one
thing your parents couldn?t do for you, the one thing Dumbledore failed at,
the one thing Weasley and Granger are too weak to do. I can do it. I can
protect you.? Harry?s face was still resolute, and Draco grabbed his hands,
pleading. ?You think if it worked that way, I wouldn?t have done it for you,
months ago? If I died, Voldemort wouldn?t succeed. But I didn?t, because
any life is better than none at all. Even? Even a life without you.? His eyes
widened and Draco glanced away, because the words had burned like ashes
in his throat and even Harry knew it was a lie.

He trailed his fingers down Draco?s cheek. ?It?s my life, Draco. To live with
you, or give for you.?

?Don?t,? Draco whispered, his voice breaking. ?I won?t let you.?

?Not everything ends the way you think it should.?

Draco?s eyes widened and he shook his head. ?If you loved me ??

?Don?t,? Harry snapped. ?He?s hunted me my entire life, Draco. This time
he went too far. This time I?m hunting him. He?s mine. I?ll tear him apart,
or die trying, and either way, I?ll win, because he won?t have you anymore.
You?ll be free, that?s all that matters now. I wasn?t really living before you
anyway, and after you left me, I remembered what that was like, not really
living, not feeling. Only it was a thousand times worse because you?d taught
me what really living felt like. I?d rather be dead than live without you.?

Draco?s eyes narrowed dangerously. ?You?re so stupid, Potter. You and


your bloody hero complex. You can?t save everyone.?

?What?s the point in being able to save anyone at all if I can?t save you??

Startling even himself, Draco laughed harshly. ?You know, Snape was right
after all, when he said you?ve got a death wish.?

Harry rolled his eyes and smiled. ?Forget Snape. Forget everything. It?ll be
alright, you?ll see.?
?Harry ??

One finger touched his lower lip and Draco stopped talking, swallowing a
shaky breath. Harry traced his lip and then kissed him gently, stroking his
face, trying to soothe him, make him understand. It was painful, a more
painful good-bye than words ever could have been because Draco couldn?t
fight it, couldn?t argue with it. He?d never been able to resist Harry when he
kissed this way.

?Where is he?? Harry whispered against Draco?s lips.

?I won?t tell,? Draco replied, his eyes still closed.

?Then I?ll find him myself.?

He climbed off the bed and strode resolutely towards the door. Cursing
savagely, Draco leapt off the bed, grabbing his trousers up off the floor and
jerking them on, even while hopping after Harry, who tossed one faintly
amused smile over his shoulder and slipped out of the room.

?He?s not here!? Draco snapped finally.

Harry froze and turned slowly, his eyes narrowing. ?Not here? He?s got to
be here, I followed him here, he?s in my head. He?s here.?

?He?s not. You think you would still be alive if he was here??

?Yes. He wouldn?t risk losing you by hurting me.?

?Exactly. So all of this is pointless. He?ll just laugh at you, Harry.?

?Maybe at first.? Harry frowned, considering. ?He?s really not here??

?He left before sunset, won?t be back until just before dawn he said. He?s
meeting Wormtail, they?re trying to identify the spy, no one knows we?re
here, we?ve been hiding. Not even Wormtail.?

Harry considered for a moment. ?It won?t be that long then, the sun?s almost
rising. I can wait.?
Grabbing his arm and spinning him around roughly, Draco snarled, ?You
think I?ll let you? You?re out of your fucking mind. Get out of here, he
never has to know you were here!?

?I?ll only leave if you come with me,? Harry replied easily.

?I can?t,? Draco argued. ?You know I can?t, it?ll be disloyal, he?ll kill you.
Harry, I won?t be able to stop him from killing you or you?ll die anyway
because I was disloyal! Don?t you understand? You can?t put me in this
position.?

Harry kissed him quickly. ?I know you won?t be able to stop him, that?s the
point.?

?I could curse you,? Draco threatened. ?I could but the full-body bind on
you and get you out of here before he gets back.?

Harry smiled indulgently. ?You left your wand in your bedroom.?

?Stop smiling at me! This isn?t a game, Harry!?

?I know. It?s dead serious.? He walked past Draco and down the stairs, into
the front room, where a couch and a large armchair sat before an empty
hearth. Draco followed him. ?Voldemort sits there?? Harry asked, pointing
to the armchair.

?Yes.?

Harry nodded once before throwing himself back into Voldemort?s chair.
There was a table against the wall with a few glasses and a bottle of scotch.
Harry summoned it with a flick of his wand and poured himself a drink, and
then one for Draco, who collapsed weakly on the couch and stared at him.

?You really do have a death wish,? he whispered.

Harry smiled rather recklessly and sipped the scotch. It was going to his
head, this recklessness, almost like alcohol. The knowledge that no matter
the outcome here, he couldn?t lose, it was an intoxicating idea. He couldn?t
lose because no matter what, after tonight, Draco would be free. After years
of fearing his destiny, Harry wasn?t afraid any longer. It was in his hands
now, for once he was in control. Maybe he was going to die, but he was
doing it on his terms.

He?d never been reckless before. Oh, he?d done reckless things, but never
with the intent to be reckless. Understanding of that recklessness had only
come in hindsight. This was walking in with wide-eyed understanding that
he wouldn?t be coming out.

It was exhilaration in the purest sense of the word. Either way, what had
been years of worry, darkness, and terror? It ended tonight, at Harry?s hand.

?Drink up,? Harry said, jerking his head at Draco?s glass of scotch. ?You
look like you could use something to calm your nerves.?

Draco slammed his glass on the table. ?This isn?t a fucking game, Harry!
He?ll kill you.?

?Not right away,? Harry said easily. ?I suspect I?ll have to make him really
mad first. Besides, I?m going to try to kill him first, you know. That way
he?s gone and everyone else is safe, not just you.?

?He?ll hurt you! And I won?t be able to stop him!?

?That?s the point, Draco. I don?t want you to stop him. I don?t want you to
do anything. I don?t even want you to be here.? He took another sip and
studied Draco in the darkness before flicking his wand at the hearth and
lighting a fire.

Draco swallowed heavily and left the couch, kneeling in front of Harry and
speaking very gently, as if speaking to the mentally ill. ?Alright, Harry,? he
said soothingly, taking Harry?s hand and squeezing it. ?I understand, I do.
He killed your parents, he hurt you, he terrorized you, all of that, and you?re
angry.?

?He took you away too,? Harry reminded him.

?Yes. But it?s nothing to lose your head over. Calm down, go back to
Hogwarts, talk to Dumbledore, even Snape if you want to. We?ll think of
another way. Alright? This isn?t necessary.?

Harry smiled indulgently at him. ?There is no other way, Draco.?


?Then you?ll just let him win?? Draco cried. ?Let him have you??

?It won?t be him winning because?? Harry frowned thoughtfully. ?Because


it?ll be my choice. Besides, he doesn?t want me dead anymore, he wants
you. You could run with me. We could go away and leave nothing behind
except our dirty glasses. He?d never find us.?

?And how far would we get before he realized that I?d gone with you and
killed you with a thought?? Draco growled. ?You?ve lost your mind. You?re
mad. I should knock you out and sent you to St. Mungo?s, maybe they can
sort you out.? He got up and began to pace the room furiously. ?It?s
disgusting! You?re so weak! Stupid, I?ve always known you were stupid,
Harry, but I didn?t know you were mad as well!?

Harry sighed got to his feet and placing both hands bracingly on Draco?s
shoulders. ?Draco,? he said gently. ?It?s alright to be scared.?

Scowling furiously, Draco glanced away. ?I?m not,? he lied.

Harry kissed his cheek and rested his head on Draco?s shoulder, arms
wrapping around him. ?Alright,? he agreed, if only to soothe him. ?I?m
scared, if it helps any. I mean? I don?t? I don?t want to leave you.? His voice
cracked a little. ?But fuck it, if I can?t have you neither can he.?

He suddenly realized that Draco was trembling, and Harry took him gently
by the hand, tugging him back to the large armchair, curling up on it and
pulling Draco down beside him. Letting himself collapse against Harry,
Draco rested his head on the other boy?s chest, his ear over Harry?s heart.
Wrapping an arm around him and resting his cheek on Draco?s head, Harry
closed his eyes, suddenly feeling very tired.

***

?Where the hell have you been?? Hermione snapped, and Ron stopped, eyes
widening as his face flushed guiltily.

?I? I was?? The truth was that he had been out after hours meeting with
Pansy, of course, but he?d hardly confess that to her.
?Forget it,? she snarled. ?I don?t care if you were out with Pansy, I honestly
don?t.? Strangely enough, it was no longer a lie. She?d recently had her
priorities shifted drastically. ?Harry?s gone.?

?Gone? Gone where?? Ron asked, frowning. He and Hermione had both
been worried about Harry in the weeks since Malfoy?s father had died and
he had gone to live with a relative or something. Harry had never explained,
and Ron had personally decided that Malfoy had attacked him or something
that night at the manor. That they?d broken up or something, which would
explain why they no longer kept in touch. He would have killed Malfoy for
it, had he known where to find him. As it was, he could only watch Harry as
he went about life with dark, bruised eyes.

?After Malfoy,? Hermione snapped, shoving a thick wad of parchment at


him. ?He left this.?

?Fucking Malfoy,? Ron snarled. ?Did he do something? Why now? I


thought he was getting over it. I never should have brought him there.?

?Ron,? Hermione said, her face very grave. ?He explained it all in the letter,
but there isn?t enough time for you to read it, I?ll explain on the way. We?ve
got to go after him.?

?What the hell did Malfoy do this time??

She touched his face and smiled painfully. ?He didn?t do anything,? she
whispered, sounding as if she were about to cry. ?He never did anything. I?ll
explain, but we?ve got to go after him.?

?Do you know where he went??

?No. I was hoping? Maybe Pansy would know where to find him??

Ron frowned. ?She might. Come on, and explain on the way.?

She told him all she?d read in the letter as they made their way down to the
Slytherin dungeon, about the Gobbler?s Ink and what had really happened
that night at the Manor, the binding spell, all of it. ?He?s only just figured it
out for himself,? she whispered. ?The spell, and why Malfoy said all he did
at the Manor. He?s gone after him. He doesn?t intend to come back.?
Ron, who?d whispered the password so Hermione wouldn?t overhear it
(Pansy had made him swear not to tell anyone), glanced over his shoulder at
her, horrified. ?What??

?He?s gone to kill Voldemort for daring to take Draco from him, and
Snape?s told him that if Voldemort dies, so does he. We?ve got to bring him
back before he does something stupid.?

Aware of the urgency now, Ron led the way into the empty common room
and left Hermione there, running up the stairs to Pansy?s room. When she
came down the stairs five minutes later in her nightdress, she glared at
Hermione, crossing her arms over her chest.

?What on earth are you doing here?? she snapped. ?Ron told me you needed
me.?

Hermione didn?t waste time and said bluntly, ?Do you know where Draco
is??

Instantly, Pansy looked wary. ?No. Why??

?Because we need to find him and I figured if anyone knew where he was, it
would be you.?

?Well I don?t, so if Potter?s having some melodramatic snit and wants to


take it out on Draco, he can just forget it, because I won?t tell.?

?The fact that you won?t tell implies you?ve got some information you?re
keeping secret,? Hermione snarled.

?Pansy,? Ron said, more gently. ?It?s important, do you know where he is?
Harry?s gone after him.?

?Gone after?? Pansy trailed off, her eyes widening. ?What is he, mad?
Draco?s gonna kill him, if You?Know-Who doesn?t first!?

?You know he?s with Voldemort?? Hermione asked, eyes narrowing.


?Dumbledore told everyone he?d gone to live with relatives.?

Pansy looked at her in silence for a long moment, tucking her long hair
behind her ear. ?Only those who didn?t know any better would have
believed it. My family and the Malfoys have known each other forever. He
has no relatives.?

?And you just let him go? With Voldemort?? Hermione whispered in shock.
?I thought he was your friend.?

?What was I supposed to do?? she snapped. ?Dumbledore told me there was
nothing to be done, that Draco was safe for now, until he could think up
some way to get him back without? without?? She glanced at Ron nervously.

?Without killing Harry,? Ron finished for her in a shocked whisper. ?Pansy,
why didn?t you tell me??

?They told me it was important that Harry didn?t know. So that he didn?t do
something stupid like this??

?Can the binding spell be broken?? Ron asked her urgently.

?No,? she whispered.

?It doesn?t matter, none of this matters, just get me to him before he does
something stupid,? Hermione cried, interrupting them. ?Do you know where
he is??

?No,? Pansy said quietly. ?But I can find him. There?s a game we used to
play as children, like hide-and-go-seek. I still remember the spell for it.?

?Spell?? Hermione asked, frowning. ?Can?t wizard children do anything


without magic??

Pansy sneered. ?It?s going to help us now, isn?t it?? she snapped. ?Besides,
usually it only works as children, during the game, but? Draco and I were
friends, we saw each other nearly every day, and he always used to tell me
he was going to run away from home. So we? sort of made the spell
permanent. So if he ran away, I could always find him. I bet he?s forgotten.?
Her face was a little flushed, and Ron was looking suspicious and a little
jealous.

?Right, just do the spell,? Hermione snapped.


Pansy, not looking at Ron, nodded and went back upstairs to get her wand.
She returned, still in her white nightdress, though looking more awake now.
She pushed some chairs and tables away from the center of the room,
clearing a large space, and pointing her wand at it. ?Finden sie Draco,? she
whispered, and there was a ripple on the stone floor, the veins of quartz in
the old granite rearranging themselves into a type of map, a glowing star in
the center.

All three of them studied it for a long moment, before Hermione said, ?I
know where that is. It?s a few hours away from my home.?

?That?s hours away,? Ron groaned.

?We?ll fly to Hogsmeade and Floo from there to my house,? Hermione said.
?Then fly from there. It won?t take too long.?

?I?m going with you,? Pansy decided, giving them no time to argue. She ran
up to her room to get dressed.

They left a few minutes later, sneaking out of the castle and mounting their
brooms. Ron had his Firebolt Hermione and Harry had got him for his last
birthday and Pansy, who had a Nimbus 2001, had stolen Draco?s Firebolt to
lend to Hermione. They made fast progress to Hogsmeade, Floo?d with their
broomsticks in hand, and dawn was just lightening the sky when they took to
the skies again.

***

?I?ll fight you, you know,? Draco said quietly. They?d sat there together for
a while in silence, weeks of being apart and missing each other so badly that
it was hard to breathe melting into some sort of panic, all the more painful.
Draco felt like he was caught in some sort of whirlwind he couldn?t escape.
He?d lost all control of everything.

?I?ve always known that when it came down to it, we?d be on opposite
sides.?

Draco wrinkled his nose. ?That?s not true. It was always us against the
world, Harry. We?re on the same side here? You?re just? trying to be a
sodding hero again. And I?m not going to let you.?
Harry kissed the top of his head and whispered soothingly, ?Of course not.?

It was quiet for a moment, except for the cracking of flames in the hearth,
and finally, Draco shifted a little and said, ?How are you going to do it? Kill
him, I mean. You don?t know any spells strong enough to kill him, and he?s
got himself wrapped up in so many spells to prevent that sort of attack that
it?s impossible.?

?I don?t know,? Harry replied thoughtfully. ?I hadn?t really thought that far
ahead. It?s all been easier than it should have been so far.?

?Do you even know any spells to kill? They don?t teach that at Hogwarts.?

?Do you know his weaknesses??

?Even if I did, I couldn?t tell you. It would be disloyal and what if he


overheard??

Harry nodded and then, tightening his hold possessively on Draco, he stared
into the fire. ?Arrogance, I think,? he whispered out loud. ?His weakness is
that he thinks he hasn?t got one. He thinks everyone else is weaker than
him.?

?You are weaker than him.?

?Not everything comes down to how many anti-Avada Kedavra spells


you?ve wrapped yourself in, nor how many death charms you know. There
are other ways to kill.? Harry trailed off, frowning. There was a building
pressure in his head, quickly blooming into pain, a pain he recognized. His
scar was slowly beginning to burn. ?He?s close,? he whispered, and Draco
lifted his head, eyes wide.

?How do you know??

Before he could reply, Harry hissed a painful breath through his teeth, his
scar burning worse than ever, the burn marks on his arm itching like fire was
dancing along his skin. He jerked away and turned his face towards the
doorway. Voldemort stood there, looking almost pleasantly surprised to see
him.
Draco scrambled off the chair, his face pale. ?I didn?t let him in,? he said
quickly. ?I didn?t betray you. I wasn?t disloyal, I ??

?Draco,? Harry said quietly, climbing out of the chair and taking Draco?s
hand. ?Shh.?

?You?re looking better than when I saw you last,? Voldemort greeted
finally, smiling in a vaguely polite manner. ?But honestly, I can?t for the life
of me imagine what would have brought you here.?

?Can?t you?? Harry asked in a deceptively casual tone.

?You seem to be under the mistaken impression that you mean anymore to
me than the irritating son of a foolish father and a Mudblood mother.?

Harry smiled sharply. ?That?s funny, your blood?s just as dirty as hers was.?

?She died for hers,? Voldemort said coldly, all amusement gone from his
face.

Shrugging easily, Harry said silkily, ?And you?ll die as well, though not for
something as trivial as your bloodline. Something far more personal.?

?Insolent boy,? Voldemort sneered, walking past him and picking up


Draco?s abandoned drink. ?You think you?re anything more to me than an
irritating child??

?You think you?re anything more than a Mudblood on a power trip?? Harry
countered sharply.

?Harry,? Draco snapped.

Harry turned to him with wide eyes and an innocent smile. ?Yes, Draco??

?Get out of here.?

Turning back to Voldemort with a bright smile, Harry ignored him. ?I think
it?s rather amusing, personally,? he drawled casually.

Voldemort?s eyes narrowed, and he fought to hide his scowl, lifting the
glass to his lips. ?What is??
?The fact that you tried to hide the fact that you were too weak to kill me by
pretending you did it on purpose, that it was all some master plan. It?s
pathetic, really.?

?Again, Potter, this has nothing to do with you. Perhaps you had some
illusion of grandeur, thinking you were my arch nemesis or something
equally respectful, but you were never that to me. Just an annoyance. A little
boy playing at being hero who could be exterminated at any time.?

?Like when I was a baby and I nearly destroyed you?? Harry hissed.

?Lucky chance,? Voldemort answered lightly. ?Having nothing personally to


do with you.?

?Like at the Triwizard Tournament? You couldn?t even beat me in a duel,?


Harry laughed.

Voldemort slammed the glass down so hard that it cracked. ?That,? he


snarled, ?was no doing of yours but a coincidence. It was your wand!?

Harry nodded sagely. ?Of course, and none of this has anything to do with
the fact that you?re just too weak to kill a useless boy like me.?

Voldemort did smile now, though it was by no means a pleasant smile. ?It?s
not going to work, you know,? he said in a conversational tone. ?I?m not
going to kill you.?

?No,? Harry said brightly. ?You?re not. I?m going to kill you.?

Voldemort laughed, and Draco snapped, ?That?s enough, Harry, I?ve had
enough of this. Just go home, you couldn?t kill him if you tried and you
know it! Just go! If it was that easy, he?d be dead by now!?

For the first time, Voldemort focused his attention on Draco. ?That nearly
sounds like disloyalty,? he said silkily, and Draco snapped his mouth shut
with a furious scowl.

Harry?s eyes narrowed and he pulled his wand out of his pocket. ?What sort
of loyalty is bought anyway?? he snarled.
Voldemort turned back to him, all amusement gone from his face. ?I grow
tired of your games, Potter,? he spat. ?I will not kill you, but that doesn?t
mean I won?t hurt you. But I?ll give you another chance, just because I fear
Draco wouldn?t enjoy watching me bleed you again. Get out of here now
and you go unscathed.?

Harry didn?t reply. He still had the scotch glass in his hand and, desperate to
provoke Voldemort, he threw it at him. It hit the wall behind him and
shattered.

?Harry!? Draco snarled, marching forward and grabbing Harry roughly by


the arm, dragging him towards the door. ?That?s it, I?m not letting you do
this, so stop, you?re being a prat, get out of here.?

Voldemort?s wand was in his hand now, and he hissed something low
between his teeth. Draco was suddenly torn away and slammed into a wall
across the room, a low moan of pain escaping his lips.

?Suddenly I want him to stay,? Voldemort whispered, watching Harry like a


snake.

Harry was staring at Draco, wide-eyed and stunned. He?d never expected
Draco to get hurt by this.

Cold rage made his eyes darken as he turned back to Voldemort, clutching
his wand in whitened fingers, his lips pulled back over his teeth in a silent
snarl. ?If you ever hurt him again ??

?Come now, Harry,? Voldemort chided. ?Do you still think you?re in
control here? You haven?t been in control of anything for your entire life,
why should that change now, just because you?ve decided you want to die? I
am not going to kill you, but I can certainly make you wish you were dead.
Crucio.?

Pain erupted inside Harry?s body, but he?d expected it and, having been
under the curse before, knew how it felt, how it started like a nail running
along exposed nerves, the agony working up his body to from his toes before
taking his mind last, making it nearly impossible to breathe and think. He
fell to his knees, his jaw locked shut against the pain, refusing to scream. He
didn?t know how long it lasted, was blind and deaf to anything going on
around him except the pain, and when it faded, he was lying on his side on
the floor, his body twitching a few times, bathed in sweat, and Draco was
there, calling his name in a panic-stricken tone, kneeling beside him.

Harry shoved him away and got shakily to his feet, a lopsided, grim smile on
his lips. ?Creative,? he rasped, ignoring that his voice was rough from the
pain. ?Rely on Voldemort to always fall back on the Unforgivables.
Honestly, I expected better.?

Voldemort was furious at that, his anger all the more blinding because Harry
dared to defy him, even after that curse, that he hadn?t broken. ?You want
creativity?? he snarled. ?Diffindo.? He snapped his wand like a whip, and
there was a crack in the air, the force of the spell hitting Harry in the face,
tearing into it like a clawed hand, ripping three long, deep gashes. The force
of it knocked him off his feet and left him stunned, blood running from the
cuts in a hot stream.

He was on his hands and knees, fighting to get to his feet, when suddenly
Draco was kneeling before him, touching his bloody face with trembling
fingers. ?Stop it, stop it, please, Harry. Don?t you understand that losing you
would destroy me more than he ever could??

Harry turned and looked solemnly at Voldemort, who was watching them
with a smug, self-satisfied smile. He turned back to Draco with a small,
gentle smile, shaking his head a little. Drops of blood splattered the floor.
?No,? he whispered. ?You?re stronger than you think.?

?If I have to be strong, so do you. Don?t do this.?

Harry just smiled and got to his feet. ?Petrificus Totalus!?

The spell hit Voldemort and made him stumble a tiny bit, but nothing more.
He was laughing. ?A first year body bind?? he sneered. ?You think that?s
strong enough to stop me??

While he was gloating, Harry snapped his wand and shouted, ?Stupefy!?

It was only slightly more effective, in that it stopped the arrogant laughing.
There were other spells after that, spells which Harry absently tried to duck
or block, though he put more effort into trying to think up anything that
would be effective. He was tossed around, bruised, and bleeding more than
ever, having only managed to cast a few weak attempts at leg-locker charms,
conjured a few snakes which were quickly ignited by Voldemort, and sent
one silver stag prancing about the room. It was a ridiculously unfair fight
and he knew it. That wasn?t the point, however. The point was in not letting
Voldemort incapacitate him instead of kill him. Draco was foolish enough to
remain loyal to Voldemort in defense of him even if he were no more than a
mindless shell, Harry was sure. As long as he still breathed, Draco would be
foolish enough to let Voldemort control him.

?Cassesprit,? Voldemort hissed, and Harry ducked quickly to avoid it. After
all, having his mind broken wouldn?t solve a thing.

Draco was shouting again, though Harry wasn?t really listening. He was
trying desperately to think of a spell that could be in anyway effective.
Draco shoved passed him suddenly and Harry watched him almost numbly
as he ran from the room. For one wild moment, he thought Draco was
running away, but the other boy took off up the stairs instead of out the door,
still cursing savagely under his breath.

His eyes narrowed, Harry resolved to go after him and turned back to
Voldemort, shouting ?Incendio!? as he ran from the room. His wand had
swung wildly and, rather than a small, sedate fire that usually resulted when
that spell was used while pointed at a hearth, the armchair, curtains, and
wooden walls burst into flames.

Harry didn?t pause to see if it slowed Voldemort down at all. He was


worried about just what Draco was up to, and he took the stairs three at a
time, slamming into Draco in the hall outside the room he?d originally found
him in, nearly knocking him over. Draco had fetched his wand.

?What are you doing?? he panted, his hands braced on Draco?s chest to
steady himself. His face was still bleeding, his body felt bruised all over,
torn and nearly broken. He probably had a few broken ribs judging from the
lancing pain that tore through him whenever he breathed, and Draco had to
practically hold him up.

He leaned close, his hands clasped around Harry?s arms, and hissed,
?Sommeilmort. When I squeeze your hand, point your wand at him and say
that, alright? Fuck, Harry, you?re crazier than I thought, coming into this
with charms to make him dance or switch his knees around. Honestly.?

?But? but it?ll be disloyal?? Harry gasped.


?We?ll deal with that after, hopefully it?ll happen too fast for him to kill you
before it hits him. I think both of us casting it will make it strong enough to
harm him. Come on.?

Draco tightened his hold on Harry?s hand and tugged him down the stairs
again, where Voldemort was still extinguishing all the flames, looking quite
irritated. If the Muggle fire department showed up to deal with this, it would
mean a lot of wasted time, killing them all. He didn?t have the patience for
little boy dueling tactics.

Draco raised his wand and glanced at Harry, squeezing his hand tightly,
knowing this could backfire horribly and result in Voldemort killing Harry
instantly, but he couldn?t stand to see Harry hurt anymore without doing
something. ?Sommeilmort!? he shouted, Harry?s voice echoing his.

There was a crack in the air and a flash of almost soothing pale blue light,
and he waited with breathless anxiety, his eyes trained on Voldemort,
waiting for either the Dark Lord or Harry to crash to the ground.

Voldemort fell; he wasn?t breathing.

Draco let out a shaky breath and dropped Harry?s hand.

?He?s dead?? Harry cried, startled. ?Why aren?t I? If he?s??

?He?s not. It?s a Bewitched Sleep, I learned it the summer after fourth year.
It?s what Dumbledore used on the people he put in the lake during the
second challenge.? Draco was feeling incredibly weak, he just wanted to
collapse to the ground and cry. ?You?re not dead because it happened too
fast for him to kill you, and now he?s dreaming and has forgotten all about
this fight. I don?t know how long it will last on him though. He could wake
up at anytime.?

Harry was walking around Voldemort, studying him. The ground was
scarred with scorch marks, and it was giving him a vague, hopeful idea.
?Right then,? he said calmly, glancing up at Draco and idly wiping his
bloody face on his sleeve. ?I?d best hurry.?

?With what??
?Killing him. Before he wakes up.? Even as he spoke, Harry was walking
from the room, determination in his stride. He glanced out the window into
the back garden, the predawn light casting a ghostly glow over it. There was
a shed out there, and he asked, ?Did Muggles live here, before you and
Voldemort came here??

?Kill him?? Draco cried. ?But then you?ll die! Honestly, stop being so
dense, Harry, we?re not going to kill him. We?ll keep him in the bewitched
sleep forever. Drop him to the bottom of the ocean while we look for a way
to break the binding spell he used on you. He can?t kill you if he?s like this
forever.?

Harry glanced at him indulgently. ?You said yourself that it won?t last
forever, he?s too strong for that. I?m going to kill him, Draco. Now,
Muggles used to live here, didn?t they??

?Yes,? Draco replied, feeling numb. Even after he?d helped him, Harry was
still going ahead with his plan? ?It?s a summer house, but Voldemort killed
the people that lived here months ago, before Christmas, and took it over to
hide out until he?d drawn the spy out.?

?Summer home. Good.?

Harry let himself out the back door. It was still raining and the cool rain
soothed his torn face and aching body as he limped to the shed, unlocking
the padlock with a flick of his wand and then lighting the tip of it as he
stepped inside. It was cold and dusty, a forgotten fishing boat in the back,
and a few bikes with rusted chains. In the corner was a plastic tank of gas for
the little boat.

He picked up the gas and carried it back into the house. Standing at the door
and frowning, Draco watched him. ?What?s that?? he asked.

?Voldemort?s weakness. He never thought the Muggles could ever produce


anything that could hurt him so he didn?t ward himself against them.
Hopefully. It?s petrol.?

?How is that going to kill him?? Draco growled, following Harry back into
the main room and watching as he splashed the gasoline over Voldemort?s
unconscious body and then liberally around the room, on the armchair, the
floor, the walls.
?It?s extremely flammable,? Harry replied with a shrug. ?I?m sure even dark
wizards burn well. It?s how they used to kill witches and wizards in the old
days, isn?t it??

?They?d cast a spell so they didn?t feel the flames,? Draco whispered,
watching in horror as the liquid splashed onto the floor and over Harry as
well.

?Which just means they weren?t immune to the flames themselves,? Harry
said thoughtfully, dropping the empty tank. ?He can?t protect himself from
the flames when he?s out like that.? Finally, Harry glanced up at Draco. ?I?d
better light it before he wakes up.?

Draco laughed desperately. ?I told you, I?d fight you, you?re not doing this.
I won?t let you kill him, Harry, you?ll die as well.?

Irritated, Harry snapped, ?You think if you keep saying that, it?ll make me
change my mind? I know what it?ll mean if he dies, Snape told me, alright??
He jerked his sleeves up to show Draco the seared scars on his wrists, which
were covered now in blood and bruises. ?I?ve studied the scars he marked
me with. I know what it means and it doesn?t matter! Nothing matters except
that he doesn?t have you anymore.? Harry grabbed Draco by the arm and
jerked him close, kissing him hard. It tasted of blood and gasoline. ?Now
stop it, Draco. There?s no other way and this isn?t making it easier.? He
stepped back and smiled gently. ?You?ll be fine, Draco. Wait here.?

He hurried up to Draco?s room and found the small chest of letters on the
floor. He picked it up, his hands leaving smudges of dirt and blood on it, and
carried it back to Draco, pushing it into his hands. ?Take this and go,? he
said.

?No,? Draco snapped, though he instinctively took the chest. ?What is it??

?It?s yours. It?s enchanted so only you and I can open it, you?ll see what it
is later, now go.?

He turned away, as if he honestly expected Draco to listen. ?Incendio,? he


whispered, pointing his wand at Voldemort. Flames erupted, greedily
streaking along the gasoline, until they?d consumed Voldemort and were
dancing along the floor, up the walls.
Draco was still standing there looking defiant when Harry turned. ?You
honestly think,? he said in a furious hiss, ?that I?d leave you in here to die??

Harry sighed. ?I?m going to die whether you?re here or not, Draco.?

?Don?t you remember?? Draco whispered painfully, setting the small chest
aside. ?In the great hall, that last night. You said you wouldn?t be scared to
die if I was there to hold your hand.?

Harry flinched, his eyes going wide. ?I didn?t mean like this.?

The flames were spreading, swirling all around, singeing Harry?s clothes,
reflecting in his glasses. Draco took his hand. ?Doesn?t matter. It?s always
been us against the world, all or nothing, remember?? He smiled gently,
rubbing some of the soot off Harry?s lower lip with his finger. ?If you stay,
so do I.?

The fire was so hot now that Harry could feel it burning his skin, flickering
on his clothes. ?No,? he whispered, grabbing up the chest of letters and
taking Draco roughly by the hand, tugging him towards the front door. The
roof over the front room had collapsed now, the dry wood inside the house
lighting up like paper. Ashes, sparks, and soot were falling from the ceiling,
the rain outside useless to slow the flames.

?Get out!? Harry shouted, shoving Draco towards the back door. The
foundations of the house had weakened from the heat, he could hear them
groaning, shifting, and knew it was all about to come crashing down. ?You
don?t have to do this!?

Draco shook his head very slowly, strangely untouched, unmarred by the
ashes, and cinders, his face still smooth, perfect. Carved from marble, Pansy
would have said.

?I won?t,? he said calmly. ?You brought this on us both, you think I?d let
you go without me??

Harry?s shoulders slumped and he glanced from Draco to the calm, cooling
rain on the other side of the glass door. ?Please,? he whispered.

?Come with me,? Draco replied, taking his hand. ?Walk away with me.?
?I?m bonded to him. I?ll die anyway.?

?We?ll take him. Heal him. He?s not dead yet or you would be too. We
could keep him alive and unconscious forever.?

?That?s not possible and you know it.?

?Then I?m staying too.?

?Draco!? Harry screamed, furious. ?You?re not, I won?t let you, I won?t!?

His screams were lost in the sudden roar of flame and crashing sounds as the
house fell down around them, the roof plunging down. Draco?s eyes
widened as he saw it coming and, acting purely on instinct, he shoved Harry
with all his strength, straight through the glass door, stumbling onto the
slippery grass and falling to his hands and knees. The chest of letters rolled
away, landing on its side.

?No,? Harry whispered, scrambling to his feet, spinning around to stare at


the ruin before him.

The house was a ball of flame, and he could see Draco, partially buried
beneath some of the burning rubble, his perfect face marked now, seared and
dirty, bleeding a little, his hair singed.

?No, no, no,? Harry chanted, falling to his hands and knees and pulling the
burning chunks of wood off of Draco, struggling to pull the other boy away
from the fire. He was sobbing dryly and, as if to make up for his inability to
cry, the sky suddenly opened further and rain that punished and stung
pounded down on him, trampling out the remaining flames that hadn?t been
smothered when the house collapsed.

A heavy haze of smoke covered the area now, suffocating him, and Harry
coughed weakly, shaking Draco, who was limp in his arms. His eyes didn?t
open, and Harry couldn?t tell if he was breathing.

?Please, please,? Harry cried, clutching Draco?s shoulders. ?Please??

And then, his body aching from the flames and all the wounds he had
sustained, Harry finally gave into the blackness that had been calling him,
and, whether it be to follow Voldemort into death or just because he had
nothing to stay alive for any longer, he gave himself up to it, exhaling gently
as he let his eyes slowly shut, his arms still wrapped around Draco, his head
resting on the other boy?s chest.

***
All I want is to give my life only to you
I've dreamt so long I cannot dream anymore
let's run away, I'll take you there
forget this life
come with me
don't look back, you're safe now
unlock your heart
drop your guard
No one's left to stop you.

Chapter Sixteen

Like morning will keep us


locked in our arms
roses for weepers
not easy to charm
and I am not a fool.
***

They smelled the smoke long before they saw it, and when they did, Pansy,
Ron, and Hermione fought the urge to panic.

?We?re not too late,? Hermione started to chant under her breath, and no one
had the nerve to reply.

The black smudge was a haze over the horizon and they flew as quickly as
they could, until Hermione swore savagely under her breath. ?Muggles,? she
hissed. ?The whole place is surrounded by Muggles.? She cast a quick spell
to make them invisible as they flew lower, ditching their brooms behind a
tree and hurrying towards the cluster of Muggles, staring at the burnt ruins.

?We?re not too late,? Ron said quietly as they ran, unconsciously picking up
Hermione?s earlier chant.
?Of course not,? Hermione snapped.

Pansy was silent, pale, her eyes fixed on the smoking ruins.

The Muggles were whispering quietly, and Hermione reached them first.
?What happened?? she asked. ?Has anyone called the fire department??

Uncertain around Muggles, Ron and Pansy held back, watching nervously.
The man Hermione spoke to said in a monotone, ?Fire, happened so fast, we
didn?t have time to help? We don?t have a fire department, we called over in
the next town, they?re coming, but it?s already too late. The fire?s mostly
out.?

?Was there? was there anyone inside?? she whispered.

He looked at her sharply. ?We didn?t see anyone. Why? Do you know if
anyone was in there??

She shook her head slowly and backed away. ?I don?t,? she said, feeling like
she was going to faint. Hurrying back to Pansy and Ron, she said shakily,
?They didn?t find anyone, they don?t know if? if there was anyone inside,
the rubble?s too hot to search.? She swallowed heavily.

?Maybe? maybe they aren?t here. It could have just been a fire. Let me do
the spell again,? Pansy whispered.

Ron glanced at her and nodded solemnly. ?Alright. Behind the tree, where
the Muggles won?t see.?

This time, the grass and sticks littering the ground rearranged themselves
into a small map, more specific now that they were this close. It showed the
house, and the shed, and a softly glowing star between them. ?They?re in the
back,? Pansy whispered.

?Oh fuck,? Ron moaned. If they were back there, wouldn?t they have been
found by now? If they were? alright, anyway. It had been too hot to go that
near to search there so far, but surely if they were alive, they would have
walked away. They wouldn?t still be there.

?Does? does the spell track people who aren?t? aren?t alive?? Hermione
asked shakily.
Pansy was very, very pale. ?I don?t know.?

?We?ve got to get back there,? Ron hissed.

?But what about the Muggles?? Pansy asked.

?I?ll take care of them,? Hermione growled, stalking towards them with a
determined look on her face. Her wand was out of her pocket now and in her
hand, and with a few well-aimed Confundus charms and a couple Obliviate
spells, the Muggles began wandering back to their homes, a vaguely pleased
look on their faces. ?C?mon,? she called to Pansy and Ron, running around
the smoking pile of rubble.

She saw Harry and Draco almost instantly, curled up together in the grass,
though they were so covered in soot and ash that it was nearly impossible to
tell them apart. She stumbled to a stop, her hand flying up to her mouth as
she stifled a low cry. They were dead, both of them, they wouldn?t be that
still if they weren?t. She sunk weakly to her knees, both hands covering her
face.

?Oh shit,? Ron whispered weakly, stopping beside her. It was Pansy who,
with an irritated glare, hurried past them and knelt beside the two boys, her
narrowed eyes running over them critically.

?Help me,? she snapped. ?Stop panicking. It might not be too late for Draco
at least. I bet Voldemort was inside, he?s probably? probably dead.? She
glanced up at Ron. ?I?m sorry. Harry?s probably??

?You stupid boy,? Hermione hissed, crawling the short distance that
separated her from the two boys. ?When are you going to learn not to go off
on things like this without talking to me first? It would have been so much
easier on you both??

Pansy glanced at her sharply. ?What are you going on about, Hermione??

Hermione ignored her. She?d pulled the boys gently apart, using her sleeve
to tenderly wipe the blood and soot off Harry?s face. ?He?s breathing, only
just,? she announced, leaning her head down to Harry?s lips. ?Check
Draco.?
?Hermione,? Ron said gently, taking her hand. ?He can?t be breathing. You-
Know-Who was in the fire, he?s dead.?

?You don?t know that! He?s Voldemort, for god?s sake! What if the fire
didn?t kill him? And don?t tell me you?re just as thick as Harry is! It?s so
fucking obvious, why don?t any of you see it?? she snarled, her eyes
blazing.

?See what?? Ron asked, kneeling between the two of them and helping
Pansy clear some of the mess of Draco.

?How could Voldemort bind Harry to him if Harry was already bound to
someone else??

Ron?s eyes widened. Before he could ask the thousand questions burning in
his eyes, she said quietly, not looking up from Harry, ?Blood-bindings can
never be broken. The Gobbler?s ink wasn?t a blood-binding but it needed
one to activate the second property. Harry wrote that his blood mixed with
the ink the first night, when he cut his finger. The blood-bond was
intensified even more when they used both of their blood to break the bond
formed through the ink. Even that bond-breaking couldn?t touch the blood-
bind, however. Nothing can. They can never be broken. Or replaced. Harry
hadn?t followed his bond to Voldemort to find them tonight? he followed his
bond to Draco.?

?He?s alright?? Ron asked eagerly, bending over Harry.

?He?s not. He?s slashed up and broken,? she whispered. ?I?ve done all I can,
we?ve got to get him to Hogwarts and Dumbledore.?

She glanced over at Pansy, who had remained unnaturally silent throughout
her whole explanation. ?Is Malfoy okay?? she asked after a pause, her eyes
trained on Pansy?s pale face.

Pansy lifted her dark eyes to Hermione and stammered, ?I?I don?t know, I
can?t get him to? to breathe.?

Hermione swore and crawled over to him, gently stroking his face in the
rain. There were still streaks of black, wet soot there, the rain hadn?t washed
it away, had only made it sticky and thick, like a sort of paste. ?Draco,? she
called softly, as if talking to him would really help. ?C?mon, don?t do this.?
She searched for a pulse, bending close to his lips to feel for breath. ?He?s
cold,? she whispered.

?He?s always cold,? Pansy replied stubbornly. ?It doesn?t mean a thing.?
She stroked his face a little. ?He?s my best friend,? she said in a choked
tone. ?He?ll be fine.?

Ron wrapped an arm around her and she buried her face in his shoulder.

?Flag down the Knight Bus,? Hermione said briskly, still bent over Draco.
?We?ve got to get them to Dumbledore. I don?t know? Draco is? Pansy, he
could be alright. I don?t know.?

Ron flagged down the Knight Bus and it arrived in seconds. He carried
Harry inside, ignoring the driver?s questions, and Hermione pointed to
something a short distance away. ?That,? she said to Pansy. ?Bring that too.
And the brooms.?

She lifted Draco?s heavy body with the aid of a lightening spell while Pansy
went to fetch the small chest that was lying in the grass a short distance
away and then she went and found the brooms.

Hermione lay Draco on the same bed as Harry, close enough to touch, and
then went to explain a bit better to the driver. She didn?t notice Draco?s
chest slowly rise in a gentle breath that whispered out between his lips and
ruffled Harry?s hair.

***

??I don?t understand, I don?t understand, how can you be gone? After all
we promised each other and all you said to me, how could you let me go?
You told me that everything we had was real, but now it?s gone, and all I?m
left with is this. It?s so empty, I never noticed how much I relied on you,
even before I loved you, you were everything I measured myself by?It?s a
nightmare, Draco, and I?m just waiting to wake up.?

The parchment slipped from shaking fingers, falling to the bed and lying on
a pile of others, all similar, their tones ranging from hysterical denial to fury,
and sometimes the odd tender letter. He picked up another.
?Potions today, just got out. We were reviewing for exams, it was lovely,
Draco. Do you sense my sarcasm? I chopped the roots too coarsely and
added them before the wormwood, which for some reason created a weak
version of something Snape called ?Swill?. I tried not to be offended, really.
It was even a little funny when the potion splashed a little and splattered on
Neville. He instantly started growing rather hairy warts. Amusing, yes, but I
fear I?ll fail Potions without you here to make it make sense to me?

And still, another letter. ?The sun?s gone down now, night?s always the
hardest. That leaf you gave me (you did give it to me, didn?t you? That red
one from the hollow?), it?s not red anymore. I didn?t even notice it start to
die, and the other day I looked at it and it wasn?t crimson anymore, it was
brown. I touched it and it crumbled to dust. I really shouldn?t have been
surprised, everything turns to dust. Ashes to ashes, dust to dust, that?s what
Muggle priests say at funerals. What do wizards say? There is only power,
and those too weak to seek it? I suspect it?s something like that, or at least
something equally ironic.?

Draco let that one slip away as well, unable to read further. He took a deep,
steadying breath, and glanced longingly at Harry, who was lying asleep on
the bed that Draco had curled up on.

He hadn?t been awake very long and still wasn?t quite sure what had
happened, how they had come to be in the hospital wing at Hogwarts. All
Draco knew was that he had woken up on the bed beside Harry?s, aching,
disoriented, and panicking, because he hadn?t wanted to wake up at all if
Harry wasn?t there to wake up with.

But Harry had been there. Nearby at least. Not near enough to touch, but that
was easy enough to counter. Draco had slipped shakily from his bed and
climbed into Harry?s, at first not daring to believe it was possible, that Harry
was there, and that he was alive, still breathing. He?d traced Harry?s
features, his entire body trembling with something too profound even to be
called relief. He hadn?t wanted to wake him, however, because Harry?s face
still bore healing wounds from Voldemort?s attack on him. He was still pale
with exhaustion, dark circles under his eyes, three freshly healed slashes on
his cheeks that might leave faint scars. So Draco had let him sleep, resolving
to watch over him while he did.
No one had come to check on them, they obviously hadn?t expected him to
wake up so soon, but Draco didn?t mind. He was curled up beside Harry,
could reach over and touch him whenever he liked, and somehow, they were
both still alive.

He had noticed the small chest Harry had given to him on a table nearby and
had leaned over Harry to reach it. As Harry had said before, it only opened
for the two of them and it opened easily in Draco?s hands.

It was filled with letters, and for the last twenty minutes, Draco had been
going through them, reading over them. He understood, of course. Harry
wrote to him because he couldn?t stand to let him go, the same way Draco
would go on and on for hours about Harry to those sodding stray dogs he
had befriended.

There was one letter he hadn?t read, besides skimming the date on it. He?d
dropped it as though it had scalded him and avoided it since, and now, hands
trembling, he picked it up again.

It was dated the night that Harry had left Hogwarts, determined never to
return. It was his good-bye letter, and Draco wasn?t sure he had the strength
to read it.

The words pulled him in, however, as soon as he unfolded the parchment.

Draco,

Before I say another word, I want you to know that everything I?m about to
do is because I love you. I know you?ll sneer and mumble something about
my ?hero complex? or my ?sodding Gryffindor courage?, but courage is the
last thing you could describe this as. It?s fear, simple as that. Terror even.
That I could lose you to something you?ve fought against your whole life
just because I was too weak to trust you, to have faith in you, even when you
pushed me away. I really should have known. Don?t hate me for this, it has
nothing to do with Voldemort or your father or Dumbledore, and everything
to do with me and you. I don?t care if it kills me, Draco, he will not have
you.

I also think it?s a little bit amusing, because I can?t figure out if this is
proving fate exists or giving irrefutable proof that it doesn?t. Everything in
my life led me up to loving you, taught me how to love you by first teaching
me what it is to NOT love you, and all of that then led to this. Had I never
loved you, he would never have been able to claim you, we both know it. Yet
even with this choice before me, I cannot say I regret everything that came
before, even if this were the only possible result. I?d rather die this young
having loved you for a little bit than live forever and never have known you
as I do now.

?Do you believe in fate, Draco??

The voice startled him and Draco dropped the letter, glancing up.
Dumbledore stood in the doorway.

?No,? Draco replied softly, not wanting to wake Harry. ?I never have.?

Smiling, Dumbledore nodded, swept into the room, and said, ?Glad to hear
it, Mister Malfoy. And glad you have returned to us.?

Still feeling wary, Draco watched him carefully. ?How did I get here?? he
asked. ?I mean, the fire? and Voldemort? I would have thought you
wouldn?t want me back here, after what I did.?

?What you did? Oh, you must mean how you gave yourself to Voldemort so
Harry would live. Obviously a call for expulsion.? He smiled a little and
shook his head. ?Any who wish my assistance are always welcome to it,
Draco. I could no more have turned you away than I could turn any other of
my students away, had they returned to Hogwarts as injured and in need of
help as you did.?

Draco was only slightly reassured, and he looked at Harry solemnly for a
long moment, gently stroking some of his hair out of his face, momentarily
forgetting the Headmaster?s presence.

?He?ll be alright, Draco,? Dumbledore said very quietly. ?He?s only


resting.?

His eyes were burning when Draco looked up, and he whispered, ?Not for
long, Voldemort must have survived the fire, and he?ll kill Harry, he can do
that, he did a binding and ??

?We aren?t sure if Voldemort survived, but even if he did, Harry is quite
beyond his reach now. He can?t harm him, Draco.?
?But ??

?Full explanations will be given, I promise you, just not quite yet. Harry is
waking, and I suspect he won?t be in the mood for a long discussion of
exactly why he survived. Though maybe, if the two of you consider it
carefully, you?ll figure it out for yourselves.? Dumbledore smiled deviously.
?I?ve got three hysterical students pacing the halls panicking over both of
your conditions that must be dealt with, lest they storm the hospital wing and
send Mister Potter into a nervous fit with the force of their relief. He?s still
quite weak, Voldemort took a lot out of him. I?ll expect a full accounting of
that battle later, Draco,? he finished sternly, before sweeping from the room,
closing the door softly behind him.

Draco stared at the door with narrowed eyes for a long moment, before his
attention was jerked from it and back to the bed, because Harry was stirring.
His lips parted the tiniest bit and Harry moaned softly through them, turning
restlessly and instinctively moving closer to Draco, his hand reaching out in
sleep and resting on Draco?s chest. Burying his face in Harry?s hair, Draco
breathed deeply and closed his eyes, tightening his arm around Harry?s
shoulders, the letters falling to the floor like huge snowflakes.

?Draco?? Harry murmured sleepily.

Draco hadn?t known he was awake. ?Yes??

Snuggling closer and sliding his hand around Draco?s lower back, pulling
him closer, Harry smiled, his eyes still closed. ?You?re here.?

?Yes.?

It was quiet for a long moment, Harry slowly waking up, reluctantly leaving
that half-awake stage when the only thing that mattered was that Draco was
there, holding him.

His entire body suddenly stiffened and his eyes flew open wide. Draco felt
the change and tightened his arm around him, one hand soothingly stroking
his back. ?Breathe,? he whispered. ?It?s alright.?

?Voldemort? the fire? Draco, you were? I? what happened?? Harry said,
words spilling out of his mouth without thought, tripping over each other.
?Shh,? Draco replied gently. ?Everything?s fine.?

Harry pulled away, reaching for his glasses. Draco had half a second to
wonder at the fact that he knew exactly where Madam Pomfrey would have
left them, that?s how often he?d woken up disoriented in the hospital wing.
Then Harry was searching his face, his eyes bright and worried. ?Are you
alright? Are you really alright? God, Draco, you?re alright.?

Laughing softly, Draco nodded. ?I am. I don?t know? Dumbledore said he?d
explain later.

?I don?t care why,? Harry moaned, collapsing against Draco again. ?I don?t
care, as long as you never leave me again.?

?I had no choice,? Draco cried, though he was smiling almost tenderly,


content to lay there with Harry wrapped around him, face buried in his chest.

Harry growled under his breath but didn?t reply, closing his eyes. He was
shaking, his entire body trembling, and he pressed closer.

?Harry,? Draco said gently now, tilting his face up so that he could see his
eyes. ?Calm down, Dumbledore says you?re still weak, and I can even see
that you?re not healed yet. Don?t start falling apart, okay? It?s over. Just
rest, it?ll be fine, I?ll never leave you again, alright??

His eyes narrowed and Harry pressed his trembling lips to Draco?s, sliding a
little and kissing the line of his jaw. ?I?m fine,? he replied, moving a little so
he was half on top of Draco, his head once again on his chest. ?Just don?t let
go.?

Draco wouldn?t have, not for the world. He wrapped his arms around Harry
and held him very close, closing his eyes, his own hands shaking, just a
little.

The door flew open and Hermione, Ron, and Pansy rushed into the room.
?Hurry,? Hermione was panting. ?Dumbledore?ll be after us soon.? Her eyes
flew to Draco?s and she smiled shakily. ?You?re awake.?

Harry?s eyes opened but he didn?t turn to look, only buried his face in
Draco?s chest again.
?Is Harry?? Ron started to ask, frowning at the way they were tangled
together on the bed. Not because it looked wrong or anything of the sort.
Because Malfoy was clinging to Harry just as much as Harry was clinging to
him.

?I?m alright,? Harry said quietly.

?Oh, god, Harry,? Hermione moaned, collapsing into a chair beside the bed.
Harry finally rolled away from Draco to smile weakly at her, and she took
his hand.

Pansy was shaking, a trembling smile on her lips, and she touched Draco?s
face with shaking fingertips. ?Hey, Draco,? she greeted softly.

He smiled teasingly. ?You?re not going to cry, are you? In public? What
have I told you about letting people see you cry??

She laughed even as she fell to her knees on the opposite side of the bed
from Hermione, and tears suddenly burst from her eyes. Sobbing and
clinging to his hand, she started wailing, even as Draco rolled his eyes
indulgently and held her hand tightly. ?It?s alright,? he kept saying, laughing
a little helplessly.

Ron came up behind Pansy and knelt beside her, one hand on her back as he
studied Draco in silence. Finally, he asked, ?Did you really do that? Go with
Voldemort to save Harry??

Draco?s eyes turned dark and wary. ?Yes.?

?Why?? Ron whispered.

?Because I love him,? was the simple reply, and Draco?s tone dared Ron to
find something wrong with that.

He smiled shakily instead. ?Oh. Makes sense then.?

Draco surprised them both by laughing suddenly, and Harry turned towards
him at the sound, smiling a little.

?I still don?t understand how we got here,? he said sleepily.


?We brought you,? Hermione said with a shrug. ?Pansy knew that Draco
was with Voldemort but Dumbledore had told her not to tell so that you
wouldn?t go after him, Harry.?

?Dumbledore knew?? Harry whispered dangerously, his eyes narrowing.


?He knew that Draco was with Voldemort??

As if on cue, the door flew open and Dumbledore stood there, frowning
sternly, though his eyes still sparkled a little. ?I believe you?ve had long
enough to reassure yourselves that they?re still living,? he said, glancing at
Hermione pointedly.

She laughed a little, though her eyes still burned with relieved tears, and got
to her feet. ?Yes, Professor,? she gave in gracefully, slipping out the door.
Pansy and Ron followed, closing the door behind them, and Harry finally sat
up, his eyes narrowing dangerously.

?You?re here to yell at me for going after him,? he said coldly.

?Now, Harry,? Dumbledore said very gently. ?Don?t jump to conclusions.


Though I admit, going after him was very foolish ??

?Someone had to! And you knew! You knew why he left, you knew he was
gone against his will, and you didn?t tell me! You didn?t protect him!?

?Harry, there was nothing he could do,? Draco said patiently.

?You?re both wrong,? Dumbledore said solemnly. ?I did protect him, as best
I could, though the situation was tricky, Harry. Draco was safe for the time
being, and we were working on a way to get him out without hurting you.
He was protected. If anything changed, he would have been removed from
the situation immediately.?

Draco frowned. ?How would you have known??

Smiling faintly, Dumbledore went back to the door and opened it, speaking
softly for a moment, before stepping aside.

A large black dog slipped into the room, and both Harry and Draco gasped,
though for different reasons. ?I know that dog!? Draco cried. The dog
looked up at him with patient, sparkling eyes and then walked around the
bed to Harry?s side and hopped onto it, licking his face, making him smile
reluctantly. ?That? that?s one of the stray dogs,? Draco whispered.

Harry had thrown his arms around the dog?s neck and buried his face in its
fur. ?It?s safe now, I believe, Sirius.?

And then the dog was gone and in its place, Sirius Black sat on the bed,
Harry clinging to him.

Draco blinked. ?What?? he asked rather slowly. ?That?s Sirius Black.?

?It is,? Dumbledore agreed.

?He?s my godfather,? Harry whispered.

?Voldemort went into hiding right after he took you because I told him there
was a spy,? Sirius told Draco quietly. ?I was the spy, of course, but he didn?t
know that, just as he didn?t know I was an unregistered Animagus. No one
knew I worked for him, because I was so close to Dumbledore, he didn?t
want to risk Dumbledore ever finding out that I was double crossing him,
though really, I was double crossing Voldemort. And when he showed up
with Malfoy, I knew that I had to keep him safe, so I told Voldemort there
was a spy and have been pretending to be working to identify the spy this
whole time, so that we could keep both Voldemort and Malfoy under
supervision until the curse on Harry could be lifted.? He shrugged and
smiled at Draco.

?But why would you care?? Draco asked quietly, glancing at Sirius and then
back at Dumbledore. ?I mean, I thought everyone would just? let me go.?

?How could I not care?? Sirius replied with another smile. ?Harry?s been
sending me letters for months now, and all he could talk about was you.?

Draco blinked and glanced at Harry, who looked a little embarrassed. ?You
told him about me??

?Who else was I supposed to tell?? Harry asked, though his face was slowly
turning pink.

The whole idea that Harry would write to his godfather about him, as if? as
if he wasn?t embarrassed about it or trying to hide it was novel and very,
very appealing to Draco, who, for the first time in months, slowly smiled, a
genuine, perfect, lopsided grin. ?Oh god, Harry,? he teased. ?That?s so
corny.?

Harry glared at him in mock anger and rolled his eyes. ?Shut up,? he said,
his blush intensifying. Draco just smiled in reply and for a long moment,
they were unable to tear their eyes away from each other.

Dumbledore cleared his throat and both boys blinked and looked startled.
They?d forgotten anyone else was in the room. ?Oh, sorry, Professor,? Harry
said breathlessly. Draco just smirked.

Dumbledore left, after implying that it would be beneficial for Draco to get
back into his own bed before Pomfrey discovered him in Harry?s (a
suggestion that was promptly ignored by both Harry and Draco). As soon as
the door closed behind him, Draco dove under the covers and curled up
beside Harry, his legs tangling with the other boy?s, his arms locking around
Harry?s waist.

Harry was giggling. ?What are you doing?? he whispered, as Draco pressed
as close to him as he could, so that every inch of their bodies were touching
somehow, tangled together some how. So that he could feel the heat of
Harry?s body through the itchy starched hospital-wing pajamas they both
wore. Draco pulled off Harry?s glasses and set them aside.

?Shh,? Draco scolded. ?If anyone comes in here, pretend to be asleep,


alright? Then they?ll leave.?

?Who else would come ??

There was a hesitant knock on the door.

?Oh bloody everlasting hell,? Draco hissed, before forcing Harry to close his
eyes and closing his own as well.

The door opened and there were cautious footsteps. ?Harry? Are you awake?
Hermione said ?? There was a pause. ?Oh, I guess you?re asleep. I didn?t
come here to talk to you anyway.?

It was Ginny, and Draco snorted softly, masking the sound for a snore.
And then she touched his face. ?I came to talk to Malfoy.?

Only Harry felt the surprise tear through Draco?s body, causing his breath to
catch a little. He smiled against the hollow of Draco?s throat and flicked his
tongue there, lightly, enjoying Draco?s discomfort.

?I guess he?s asleep too. Doesn?t matter, this?ll be easier to say if he?s not
able to hear it.? It was silent for a moment, and then Ginny said in a rush,
?When they told me you were gone, Malfoy, I wanted to hunt you down and
rip you apart for hurting Harry. I wanted to curse you until your eyes dried
up in your skull and I wanted to make you scream. I was so angry that he?d
fallen in love with someone who could leave him and hurt him instead of
me. But? But Ron told me what happened, why you really left, and? I guess?
I wanted to?thank you. Because? you deserve him, Malfoy, if you?re that
brave.?

She kissed his cheek lightly.

?And you do a better job of taking care of him than I ever could,? she
whispered.

She walked around the bed and brushed Harry?s hair off his forehead,
kissing him as well. ?And I?ll always love you, Harry.? And then she was
gone.

The instant the door closed, Harry?s eyes flew open and he hissed, ?If you
ever mention that you heard that, Draco, or tease her for it, I?ll ??

Draco cut him off, kissing him lightly. ?Why would I ever do that?? he
whispered.

Studying his face suspiciously, Harry replied, ?Why would you disguise
yourself as me and make out with her on Halloween??

?Because it was fun.?

?And teasing her about this wouldn?t be fun??

Draco looked appalled. ?No, of course not! It would hurt her. Despite what
you think of me, Harry, I?m not a monster.?
Slightly convinced, Harry sighed with a smile. ?I don?t think you?re a
monster,? he said quietly, snuggling back against him.

?I should hope not.?

?It?s just that she?s my friend and I hurt her already and I just don?t want
her to be hurt anymore and??

?Harry.?

?What??

?Hush. I won?t hurt your precious Ginny.?

Harry smiled a little. ?Good.?

It was silent for a long time, and Harry smiled against Draco?s throat.

?Close your eyes,? Draco whispered.

Harry closed his eyes quickly, and Draco smiled as he felt his eyelashes
brush against his skin. ?They are closed,? Harry said softly. ?Have been all
this time.?

Kissing the top of his head, Draco smiled a little. ?Then go to sleep.?

?I am asleep,? he lied.

Draco laughed quietly and held him even tighter. ?I love you,? he said
solemnly.

?I love you too,? Harry replied softly, sleepily.

They fell asleep a few moments later, at the same time, their breathing
deepening, mingling in the air between them.

***

Spring had come quickly, bursting on Hogwarts with characteristic


suddenness and bringing with it milder winds, melting snow, rains, and
flowers. The lake had changed colours, from the cobalt blue of winter to
something lighter, the grounds turned greener, and the forest stopped being
so skeletal, began to fill out.

By the time Draco and Harry were released from the Hospital wing and
given their grounds privileges back, spring was full on them and winter just
a memory.

Everyone in the school had heard of Draco and Harry by now, though the
story was often obscure and exaggerated, the only fact remaining the same in
every telling were that somehow the two boys had fallen in love. The
Slytherins told the rest of the tale focusing on how Draco had saved Harry
from Voldemort, and the Gryffindors told of how Harry had saved Draco,
while the Ravenclaws struggled to work out just how this had all happened
without their knowledge and the Hufflepuffs giggled and sighed about how
romantic the entire thing was.

Harry and Draco remained immune to the whispers, however. If anyone


disapproved, they didn?t notice. If anyone thought that Harry should have
left Draco in Voldemort?s clutches or that Draco should have laughed while
Voldemort killed Harry, they didn?t hear it, because they were completely
wrapped up in each other. For their parts, Ron, Hermione, Ginny, and Pansy
spent a lot of time hotly defending them, but they didn?t notice that either. If
Ron suddenly had more bruises and cuts on his face, he blamed it on fights
with Crabbe, and if Pansy had more detentions for cursing fellow students in
the hall, she didn?t mention it. As for Hermione, never one to sit idly by
when she didn?t understand something, she had decided, with much
determination, that there must be something about Slytherins that made
going to hell and back worth it, and she had decided to do some research to
discover what. Blaise, while certainly not unwilling, could hardly be called
all that willing, but that had never stopped Hermione before when she was
determined to prove a point; what, exactly, her point was this time, she
hadn?t deigned to explain.

Harry had been right when he had said that being with Draco was the easiest
thing he?d ever done, and now that Ron was accepting and even supporting
the relationship, Ginny wasn?t hurt any longer, and Hermione had accepted
that Draco didn?t mean to hurt him, being with Draco was the most natural
thing in the world. They fit together perfectly, both physically and in every
other sense of the word.
Walking together around the lake for the first time since Draco had been
taken, Harry refused to let go of his hand, and gazed around in wonder that
spring had come while he?d been locked inside for his own protection.

Draco was talking this time, and Harry hadn?t heard a word he had said. It
didn?t matter what he said, as long as Harry got to hear his voice, and he
smiled a little as he let Draco tug him by the hand, still deep in his narrative
that had something to do with Quidditch. Quidditch had stopped being a
priority for Harry sometime ago, however.

They ducked under a low-hanging branch that was heavy with apple
blossoms and leaves, brushing against it and causing the fragile flowers to
fall apart, a pale pink shower of them raining down like snow.

??And then, fifth year, in that game we played against Hufflepuff, I tried
doing that move I saw you do against Ravenclaw in the game before only I
totally lost control of it and that?s why I fell! It wasn?t because you
suddenly showed up in the stands with that stupid banner Finnegan made
about how much I sucked so hard that you??

Harry smiled indulgently and wondered rather blissfully what Draco was
going on about and kissed him lightly. Draco kissed back and then pulled
away, continuing with the story.

There was a leaf in his hair and Harry pulled it out, holding it up and
studying the way the sunlight painted a gold splash pattern on it. He traced
the edges, which were tinged with silver, and twirled the stem between his
fingers, glancing up at Draco and watching the way his eyes sparkled as he
described some complicated Quidditch maneuver that really no longer
interested Harry. He was wearing his Slytherin Quidditch robes, had just
come from practice, and Harry studied the way the green of the robes
contrasted with his silver eyes. Green and silver.

He laughed suddenly, and Draco glanced over at him, exasperated. ?Harry,?


he scolded. ?Have you not heard a word I?ve said??

?Every word,? Harry lied sweetly, before tucking the leaf back into Draco?s
hair.

Suspicious, Draco pulled it out, glancing at it and then back at Harry. ?It?s a
leaf.?
?Yes.?

?Why??

Harry wrinkled his nose and grinned. ?It?s a gift. In thanks for the red and
gold one you gave me.?

He glanced back at the leaf and then at Harry, still skeptical. ?But Harry, this
is just a regular leaf,? he said, pretending to pout. ?The one I gave you was
red and gold. What?s so special about this one??

Harry smiled. ?Slytherin colours,? he said brightly, slipping ahead.

Draco was silent for a long moment and then, smiling faintly, he tucked it in
his pocket. ?Wait for me,? he called, hurrying after Harry.

Harry breathed deeply and the air smelled of clovers. He smiled. Beautiful
was not a word Harry Potter used often, but if anything deserved that term,
this spring would be it. He?d always loved the spring; Things came to life
instead of died. More of a beginning than an ending, and he loved every
second of it.

I am not a fool.
if you want to take the world on now
I will be right there beside you
but if you want to sleep the whole day through
I will be right there beside you.
***
~THE END~

You might also like